Title: The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Subject:
Author: Livy
Keywords:
Creator:
PDF Version: 1.2
Page No 1
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Livy
Page No 2
Table of Contents
The History of Rome, Vol. IV............................................................................................................................1
Livy ..........................................................................................................................................................1
Book 26. The Fate of Capua....................................................................................................................1
Book 27. Scipio in Spain.......................................................................................................................33
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain ..................................................................................................65
Book 29. Scipio in Africa......................................................................................................................95
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War................................................................................................118
Book 31. Rome and Macedon ..............................................................................................................143
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War..............................................................................................167
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
i
Page No 3
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Livy
Translated by Reverend Canon Roberts
Book 26. The Fate of Capua
Book 27. Scipio in Spain
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain
Book 29. Scipio in Africa
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War
Book 31. Rome and Macedon
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War
Book 26. The Fate of Capua
The new consuls, Cn, Fulvius Centimalus and P. Sulpicius Galba, entered upon office on the 15th of March,
and at once convened a meeting of the senate in the Capitol to discuss questions of State, the conduct of the
war and the distribution of the provinces and the armies. The retiring consulsQ. Fulvius and Appius
Claudiusretained their commands and were instructed to prosecute the siege of Capua unremittingly until
they had effected its capture. The recovery of this city was the main concern of the Romans now. What
determined them was not only the bitter resentment which its defection had evoked, a feeling which was
never more justified in the case of any city, but also the certainty they felt that, as in its revolt it had drawn
many communities with it, owing to its greatness and strength, so its recapture would create amongst these
communities a feeling of respect for the power whose sovereignty they had formerly acknowledged. The
praetors of the past year, M. Junius in Etruria and P. Sempronius in Gaul, had their commands extended and
were each to retain the two legions they had. M. Marcellus was to act as proconsul and finish the war in
Sicily with the army which he had. If he needed reinforcements he was to take them from the troops which P.
Cornelius was commanding in Sicily, but none were to be selected from those who had been forbidden by the
senate to take a furlough or return home before the end of the war. The province of Sicily was assigned to C.
Sulpicius, and he was to take over the two legions which were with P. Cornelius; any reinforcements he
needed were to be supplied from the army of Cn. Fulvius which had been so disgracefully routed and cut up
the previous year in Apulia. The soldiers who had so disgraced themselves were placed under the same
conditions with regard to length of service as the survivors of Cannae. As an additional brand of ignominy the
men of both these armies were forbidden to winter in towns or to construct winter quarters for themselves
within ten miles of any town. The two legions which Q. Mucius had commanded in Sardinia were given to L.
Cornelius, and any additional force he might require was to be raised by the consuls. T. Otacilius and M.
Valerius were ordered to cruise off the coasts of Sicily and Greece respectively with the fleets and soldiers
they had previously commanded. The former had a hundred ships with two legions on board; the latter, fifty
ships and one legion. The total strength of the Roman armies engaged on land and sea this year amounted to
twentyfive legions.
At the beginning of the year a despatch from L. Marcius was laid before the senate. The senators fully
appreciated the successful way in which he had conducted his operations, but a good many of them were
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 1
Page No 4
indignant at the honorific title he had assumed. The superscription of the letter was "The propraetor to the
senate," though the imperium had not been conferred upon him by an order of the people nor with the
sanction of the senate. An evil precedent had been set, they said, when a commander was chosen by his army,
and the solemn procedure at elections, after the auspices were duly taken, was transferred to camps and
provinces far away from the magistrates and the laws, and left to the caprice of the soldiers. Some thought the
senate ought to take the matter up, but it was thought better to adjourn the consideration of it until the
horsemen who had brought the despatch had left the City. With regard to the food and clothing of the army,
they ordered a reply to be sent to the effect that both these matters would be attended to by the senate. They
refused, however, to allow the despatch to be addressed "To the propraetor L. Marcius," lest it should appear
that the question which was to be discussed had been prejudged. After the messengers had been dismissed the
consuls gave this question priority over everything else, and it was unanimously agreed that the tribunes
should consult the plebs as soon as possible as to whom they wished to have sent to Spain with the imperium
as commanderinchief to take over the army which Cn. Scipio had commanded. The tribunes undertook to
do so, and due notice of the question was given to the Assembly. But the citizens were preoccupied with a
controversy of a very different nature. C. Sempronius Blaesus had fixed a day for bringing Cn. Fulvius to trial
for losing his army in Apulia, and made a very bitter attack upon him beforehand in the Assembly. "Many
commanders," he said, "have through rashness and inexperience led their armies into most dangerous
positions, but Cn. Fulvius is the only one who has demoralised his army by every form of vice before
betraying them. They may with perfect truth be said to have been destroyed before they saw the enemy; they
owed their defeat to their own commander, not to Hannibal.
"Now no man, when he is going to vote, takes sufficient trouble to find out what sort of a man it is to whom
he is entrusting the supreme command of the army. Think of the difference between Tiberius Sempronius and
Cn. Fulvius. Tiberius Sempronius had an army of slaves given to him, but in a short time, thanks to the
discipline he maintained and the wise use he made of his authority, there was not a man amongst them who
when he was in the field of battle gave a thought to his birth or his condition. Those men were a protection to
our allies and a terror to our enemies. They snatched, as though from the very jaws of Hannibal, cities like
Cumae and Beneventum and restored them to Rome. Cn. Fulvius, on the other hand, had an army of Roman
citizens, born of respectable parents, brought up as free men, and he infected them with the vices of slaves,
and made them such that they were insolent and riotous amongst our allies, weaklings and cowards in face of
the enemy; they could not stand even the warcry of the Carthaginians, let alone their charge. Good heavens!
no wonder the soldiers gave ground, when their commander was the first to run away; the wonder is that any
stood their ground and fell, and that all did not accompany Cn. Fulvius in his panic and flight. C. Flaminius,
L. Paulus, L. Postumius, and the two Scipios, Cnaeus and Publius, all chose to fall in battle rather than desert
their armies, when they were hemmed in by the foe. Cn. Fulvius came back to Rome as the allbut solitary
herald of the annihilation of his army. After the army had fled from the field of Cannae it was deported to
Sicily, not to return till the enemy had evacuated Italy, and a similar decree was recently passed in the case of
Fulvius' legions. But, shame to relate, the commander himself remained unpunished after his flight from a
battle brought on by his own headstrong folly; he is free to pass the rest of his life where he passed it in
youthin stews and brothelswhilst his soldiers, whose only fault is that they copied their commander, are
practically sent into exile and have to undergo a service of disgrace. So unequal are the liberties enjoyed in
Rome by the rich and the poor, the men of rank and the men of the people."
In his defence Fulvius threw all the blame upon his men. They clamoured, he said, for battle, and he led them
out, not at the moment, for it was late in the day, but on the following morning. Though they were drawn up
on favourable ground, at an early hour they found either the terror of the enemy's name or the strength of his
attack too much for them. When they were all flying in disorder he was swept away by the rush as Varro was
at Cannae and as many other commanders have been at different times. What help would he have given to the
republic by staying there alone? unless indeed his death would have warded off other national disasters. His
failure was not due to lack of supplies, or to incautiously taking up a position on unfavourable ground; he had
not been ambushed through insufficient reconnoitring; he had been beaten in a fair fight on an open field.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 2
Page No 5
Men's tempers, on whichever side they were, were beyond his control, a man's natural disposition made him
either brave or cowardly. The speeches of the prosecutor and the defendant occupied two days, on the third
day the witnesses were produced. Besides all the other serious charges brought against him, a great many
men stated on oath that the panic and flight began with the praetor, and that when the soldiers found that they
were left to themselves, and thought that their commander had good ground for fear, they too turned their
backs and fled. The prosecutor had in the first instance asked for a fine, but the evidence which had been
given roused the anger of the people to such an extent that they insisted upon a capital charge being laid. This
led to a fresh contest. As the prosecutor during the first two days had limited the penalty to a fine and only on
the third day made the charge a capital one, the defendant appealed to the other tribunes, but they refused to
interfere with their colleague. It was open to him by ancient custom to proceed either by statute law or by
customary precedent, whichever he preferred, until he had obtained judgment, whether the penalty were a
capital or a pecuniary one. On this Sempronius announced that he should prosecute C. Fulvius on the charge
of treason and requested the City praetor to convene the Assembly for the purpose on the appointed day.
Then the accused tried another way of escape. His brother Quintus was in high favour with the people at the
time, owing to his former successes and the general conviction that he would soon take Capua, and the
defendant hoped that he might be present at his trial. Quintus wrote to the senate for their permission,
appealing to their compassion and begging to be allowed to defend his brother's life, but they told him in
reply that it would militate against the interests of the State for him to leave Capua. Just before the day of trial
Cn. Fulvius went into exile at Tarquinii. The plebs affirmed by resolution his legal status as exile and all the
consequences it involved.
Meanwhile the whole stress of the war bore on Capua. The blockade was proving more effective than direct
assault; the common people and the slaves could not endure the famine, nor could they send messengers to
Hannibal owing to the strict watch which was kept. At last a Numidian was found who promised to get
through with the despatches, and he succeeded. He escaped through the Roman lines by night, and this
encouraged the Capuans to attempt sorties in all directions while they still had some strength left. Numerous
cavalry encounters took place in which they generally had the advantage, but their infantry got the worst of it.
The gratification which the Romans derived from their infantry successes was considerably damped by their
finding themselves beaten in any arm by an enemy whom they had invested and almost conquered. At length
they devised a clever plan by which they could make up for their inferiority in the mounted arm. Young men
of exceptional speed and agility were selected from all the legions and supplied with bucklers somewhat
shorter than those used by the cavalry. Each was furnished with seven javelins, four feet long and tipped with
iron heads similar to those on the darts of the velites. The troopers each took one of these upon his horse and
trained them to ride behind and leap down briskly at a given signal. As soon as their daily training had given
them sufficient confidence, the cavalry advanced against the Capuans, who were drawn up on the level
ground between the Roman camp and the city walls. As soon as they came within range the signal was given
and the velites sprang down to the ground. The line of infantry thus formed made a sudden attack on the
Capuan horse; shower after shower of javelins was flung at the men and horses all along the line. A great
many were wounded, and the novel and unexpected form of attack created widespread consternation. Seeing
the enemy shaken the Roman cavalry charged home, and in the rout that followed they drove them with much
loss right up to their gates. From that time the Romans had the superiority in their cavalry also. The velites
were subsequently incorporated in the legions. This plan of combining infantry and cavalry in one force is
said to have originated with one of the centurionsQ. Navius, and he received special honour from his
commander in consequence.
Such was the position of affairs at Capua. During this time Hannibal was drawn in two directions; he was
anxious to get possession of the citadel of Tarentum and he was equally anxious to retain his hold on Capua.
Regard for Capua however carried the day, for he saw that it was the spot to which all eyes were turned, of
friends and foes alike, and its fate would show conclusively, one way or the other, the consequences of
defection from Rome. Leaving therefore his baggage and heavyarmed troops in Bruttium, he hurried into
Campania with a force of horse and foot selected for their capacity for rapid marching. Swift as his advance
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 3
Page No 6
was, however, three and thirty elephants followed him. He took up his position in a secluded valley at the
back of Mount Tifata which overlooked Capua. On his march he captured the fortified post of Calatia. He
then turned his attention to the besiegers of Capua, and sent a message to the city telling them at what time he
intended to attack the Roman lines, so that they might be ready to make a sortie and pour in full strength out
of all their gates. The investing force was thrown into a state of great alarm, for while Hannibal was
delivering his assault on one side, the whole of the forces of Capua, mounted and unmounted, supported by
the Punic garrison under Bostar and Hanno were making a vigorous sortie on the other. Realising their
critical position and the danger of leaving a portion of their lines unprotected by concentrating their defence
in any one direction, the Romans divided their force; Appius Claudius confronted the Capuans, Fulvius was
opposed to Hannibal; the propraetor C. Nero with the cavalry of the six legions held the road to Suessula, and
C. Fulvius Flaccus with the cavalry of the allies took up a position towards the Volturnus. There was not only
the usual shouting and uproar when the battle commenced; the din of horses and men and arms was
aggravated by the noncombatant population of Capua. They crowded on to the walls, and by clashing
brazen vessels together, as people do in the dead of the night when there is an eclipse of the moon, they made
such a dreadful noise that it even distracted the attention of the combatants.
Appius had no difficulty in driving the Capuans from his earthworks, but Fulvius had to meet a much heavier
attack from Hannibal and his Carthaginians on the other side. Here the sixth legion gave way and a cohort of
Spaniards with three elephants succeeded in getting up to the breastwork. They had penetrated the Roman
line, and whilst they saw their chance of breaking through into the camp they saw also the danger of being cut
off from their supports. When Fulvius saw the disorder of the legion and the danger which threatened the
camp, he called upon Q. Navius and other centurions of the first rank to charge the enemy's cohort which was
fighting just under the breastwork. "It is a most critical moment," he told them; "either you must allow the
enemy to go on, in which case they will break into the camp with less difficulty than they found in breaking
through the closed ranks of the legion, or you must dispose of them whilst they are still below the breastwork.
It will not be a hard fight; they are a small body, cut off from their support; and the very fact of the Roman
line being broken will be an advantage if both sections close on the enemy's flanks, who would then be
hemmed and exposed to a double attack." On hearing this Navius took the standard of the second maniple of
hastati from the bearer and advanced with it against the enemy, threatening at the same time to throw it into
their midst if his men did not promptly follow him and take their share in the fighting. He was a huge man
and his armour set him off, and as he lifted the standard high in the air, he attracted all eyes. But when he was
close to the Spaniards they hurled their javelins at him from all sides, and almost the whole of their line
turned their attention to this one man. Neither the number of the enemy, however, nor the force of their
missiles were able to check the gallant fellow's onset.
M. Atilius now brought up the leading maniple of the sixth legion against the Spanish cohort; L. Porcius
Licinius and T. Popilius, who were in command of the camp, were keeping up a fierce struggle in front of the
breastwork, and killed some of the elephants whilst they were actually clambering over it. Their bodies rolled
down into the fosse and filled it up, making a bridge for the passage of the enemy, and a terrible carnage
began over the prostrate elephants. On the other side of the camp the Capuans and their Punic garrison had by
this time been repulsed, and the fighting went on right up to the city gate which leads to the Volturnus. The
efforts of the Romans to break in were frustrated not so much by the arms of the defenders as by the ballistae
and scorpions which were mounted over the gate and kept the assailants at a distance by the missiles they
discharged. A further check was given them by a wound received by Appius Claudius; he was struck by a
heavy javelin in the upper part of the chest under the left shoulder, whilst he was riding along the front
encouraging his men. A great many of the enemy were however killed outside the gate; the rest were driven
in hasty flight into the city. When Hannibal saw the destruction of his Spanish cohort and the energy with
which the Romans were defending their lines, he gave up the attack and recalled the standards. The retiring
column of infantry was followed by the cavalry who were to protect the rear in case the enemy harassed their
retreat. The legions were burning to pursue them, but Fulvius ordered the "retire" to be sounded, as he
considered that he had gained quite enough in making both the Capuans and Hannibal himself realise how
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 4
Page No 7
little he could do in their defence.
Some authors who describe this battle say that 8000 of Hannibal's men were killed that day and 3000
Capuans, and that 15 standards were taken from the Carthaginians and 18 from the Capuans. In other
accounts I find that the affair was nothing like so serious, there was more excitement and confusion than
actual fighting. According to these writers the Numidians and Spaniards broke unexpectedly into the Roman
lines with the elephants, and these animals, trotting all over the camp, upset the tents and created terrible
uproar and panic during which the baggage animals broke their tethers and bolted. To add to the confusion
Hannibal sent some men got up as Italians, who could speak Latin, to tell the defenders in the name of the
consul that as the camp was lost each man must do his best to escape to the nearest mountains. The trick was,
however, soon detected and frustrated with heavy loss to the enemy, and the elephants were driven out of the
camp with firebrands. In any case, however it began or ended, this was the last battle fought before Capua
surrendered. The "medix tuticus," the supreme magistrate of Capua, happened for that year to be Seppius
Loesius, a man of humble birth and slender fortune. The story goes that owing to a portent which had
occurred in his mother's household she consulted a soothsayer on behalf of her little boy, and he told her that
the highest official position in Capua would come to her son. As she was not aware of anything which would
justify such expectations she replied, "You are indeed describing a desperate state of things in Capua when
you say that such an honour will come to my son." Her jesting reply to what was a true prediction turned out
itself to be true, for it was only when famine and sword were pressing them sorely and all hope of further
resistance was disappearing that Loesius accepted the post. He was the last Capuan to hold it, and he only did
so under protest; Capua, he declared, was abandoned and betrayed by all her foremost citizens.
Finding that his enemy could not be drawn into an engagement and that it was impossible to break through
their lines and relieve Capua, Hannibal decided to abandon his attempt and march away from the place, for he
was afraid of being cut off from his supplies by the new consuls. He was anxiously turning over in his mind
the question of his future movements when the idea occurred to him of marching upon Rome, the head and
guiding spirit of the whole war. He had always set his heart upon this, and men blamed him for letting the
opportunity slip, immediately after the battle of Cannae; he himself admitted that he had made a mistake in
not doing so. He was not without hope of seizing some part of the City in the confusion caused by his
unexpected appearance, and if Rome were in danger, he expected that both the consulsor at all events, one
of themwould at once quit their hold on Capua. Then, as they would be weakened by their forces being
divided, they would give either him or the Capuans the opportunity of fighting a successful action. One thing
made him anxious, the possibility of the Capuans surrendering as soon as he had withdrawn. Amongst his
men there was a Numidian who was ready for any desperate enterprise, and he induced this man, by the offer
of a reward, to carry a despatch and enter the Roman lines in the guise of a deserter, then steal away on the
opposite side and enter Capua. He wrote in a very encouraging strain, and pointed out that his departure
would be the means of saving them, as it would draw off the Roman generals from their attack on Capua to
defend Rome. They were not to be despondent, a few days' patience would completely break up the siege. He
then ordered the boats which were on the Volturnus to be seized and brought up to a fort which he had
previously constructed to secure the passage of the river. He was informed that there was a sufficient number
of them to admit of his entire army being taken across in one night. Ten days' rations were supplied to the
men; they marched down to the river, and all his legions were across before daybreak.
Fulvius Flaccus was informed by deserters of this project before it was put into execution, and at once sent
intelligence of it to the senate. The news was received with varying feelings as men's temperaments differed.
Naturally, at such a crisis, a meeting of the senate was instantly convened. Publius Cornelius Asina was for
recalling all the generals and armies from every part of Italy for the defence of the City, regardless of Capua
or any other object they had in view. Fabius Maximus considered that it would be a disgrace for them to quit
their hold on Capua and allow themselves to be scared by Hannibal and marched up and down at his beck and
menaces. "Do you suppose," he asked the senators, "that the man who did not venture to approach the City
after his victory at Cannae, really hopes to capture it now that he has been driven away from Capua? His
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 5
Page No 8
object in coming here is not to attack Rome but to raise the siege of Capua. The army which is now in the
City will be sufficient for our defence, for it will be aided by Jupiter and the other gods who have witnessed
Hannibal's violation of treaty engagements." P. Valerius Flaccus advocated a middle course, which was
ultimately adopted. He recommended that a despatch should be sent to the generals commanding at Capua,
telling them what defensive force the City possessed. They themselves would know what troops Hannibal
was bringing and how large an army was required to maintain the siege of Capua. If one of the generals
commanding could be sent with a part of the army to Rome without interfering with the effective conduct of
the siege by the other general, Claudius and Fulvius might arrange which of them should continue the
investment of Capua and which should go to Rome to prevent their own city from being invested. When this
decision of the senate reached Capua, the proconsul Q. Fulvius, whose colleague had been obliged to leave
for Rome owing to his wound, selected a force out of the three armies and crossed the Volturnus with 15,000
infantry and 1000 cavalry. When he had definitely ascertained that Hannibal was advancing by the Latin
Road, he sent men on in advance through the burghs situated on the Appian Way and also to some lying near
it, to warn the inhabitants to have supplies stored in readiness in their towns and to bring them in from the
outlying fields to the line of march. They were further to call in their fighting men to defend their homes, and
each municipality was to provide for its own protection.
After crossing the Volturnus Hannibal fixed his camp a short distance from the river, and the next day he
marched past Cales into the Sidicine territory. One day was devoted to laying waste the district, and then he
proceeded along the Latin Road through the lands of Suessa, Allifae, and Casinum up to the walls of the
lastmentioned place. Here he remained encamped for two days and ravaged the whole of the surrounding
country. From there he went on past Interamna and Aquinum into the territory of Fregellae as far as the Liris.
Here he found that the bridge had been destroyed by the people of Fregellae in order to delay his advance.
Fulvius too had been delayed at the Volturnus, owing to Hannibal having burnt his boats, and he had
considerable difficulty in procuring rafts for the transport of his troops, owing to the lack of timber. When,
however, he had once crossed, the remainder of his march was uninterrupted, as he found ample supplies of
provisions waiting for him in each city he came to, and also put out by the side of the road in the country
districts. His men, too, in their eagerness urged one another to march more quickly, for they were going to
defend their homes. A messenger who had travelled from Fregellae for a day and a night without stopping
created great alarm in Rome, and the excitement was increased by people running about the City with wildly
exaggerated accounts of the news he had brought. The wailing cry of the matrons was heard everywhere, not
only in private houses but even in the temples. Here they knelt and swept the templefloors with their
dishevelled hair and lifted up their hands to heaven in piteous entreaty to the gods that they would deliver the
City of Rome out of the hands of the enemy and preserve its mothers and children from injury and outrage.
The senators remained in session in the Forum so as to be at hand should the magistrates wish to consult
them. Some received orders and went off to execute their commissions, others offered their services in case
they could be of use anywhere. Troops were posted at the Capitol, on the walls, round about the City and
even as far as the Alban Mount and the fortress of Aesula. In the midst of all this excitement word was
brought that the proconsul Q. Fulvius was on his way from Capua with an army. As proconsul he could not
hold command in the City, the senate therefore passed a decree conferring upon him consular powers. After
completely destroying the territory of Fregellae in revenge for the destruction of the bridge over the Liris,
Hannibal continued his march through the districts of Frusinum, Ferentinum and Anagnia into the
neighbourhood of Labicum. He then crossed Algidus and marched on Tusculum, but he was refused
admittance, so he turned to the right below Tusculum towards Gabii, and still descending, came into the
district of Pupinia where he encamped, eight miles from Rome. The nearer his approach the greater was the
slaughter of those who were fleeing to the City at the hands of the Numidians who rode in front of the main
body. Many, too, of all ages and conditions were made prisoners.
In the midst of this turmoil and excitement Fulvius Flaccus entered Rome with his army. He passed through
the Porta Capena and marched right through the City past the Cavinae and the Esquiliae, and out again
through the Colline Gate, entrenching himself on ground between the Colline and Esquiline Gates. Here the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 6
Page No 9
plebeian aediles furnished him with provisions. The consuls, attended by the senate, visited him in his camp,
and a council was held to consider what measures the supreme interests of the republic demanded. It was
decided that the consuls should form entrenched camps in the vicinity of the Colline and Esquiline Gates, the
City praetor taking command of the Citadel and the Capitol, and that the senate should remain in permanent
session in the Forum in case any sudden emergency should need to be provided against. Hannibal had now
moved his camp to the Anio at a distance of three miles from the City. From this position, he advanced with a
body of 2000 cavalry towards the Colline Gate as far as the temple of Hercules, and from that point he rode
up and made as close an inspection as he could of the walls and the situation of the City. Flaccus was furious
with indignation at this calm and leisurely proceeding and sent some cavalry with orders to clear the enemy
and drive them back to their camp. There were some 1200 Numidian deserters stationed on the Aventine at
the time, and the consuls sent orders to them to ride through the City to the Esquiliae, as they considered none
more fitted to fight amongst the hollows and garden walls and sepulchres and enclosed paths all around that
part of the City. When those on guard at the Citadel and the Capitol saw them trotting down the Publician hill
they shouted out that the Aventine was taken. This caused so much confusion and panic that, had not the
Carthaginian camp been outside the City, the terrified population would have poured out of the gates. As it
was, they took refuge in the houses and various buildings, and seeing some of their own people walking in
the streets, they took them for enemies and attacked them with stones and missiles. It was impossible to calm
the excitement or to rectify the mistake, as the streets were packed with crowds of country people with their
cattle, whom the sudden danger had driven into the City. The cavalry action was successful and the enemy
were driven off. It became necessary, however, to quell the disturbances which, without the slightest reason,
were breaking out in many quarters, and the senate decided that all who had been Dictators, consuls or
censors should be invested with the imperium until the enemy had retired from the walls. During the
remainder of the day and throughout the night, many such disturbances arose and were promptly repressed.
The following day Hannibal crossed the Anio and led out the whole of his force to battle; Flaccus and the
consuls did not decline the challenge. When both sides were drawn up to decide an action in which Rome
was the victor's prize, a tremendous hailstorm threw the two armies into such disorder that they had difficulty
in holding their arms. They retired to their respective camps, fearing everything rather than their enemy. The
following day, when the armies were drawn up in the same position, a similar storm separated them. On each
occasion, after they were once more in camp, the weather cleared up in an extraordinary way. The
Carthaginians looked upon the occasion as preternatural, and the story runs that Hannibal was heard to say
that at one time he lacked the will, at another the opportunity, of becoming master of Rome. His hopes were
further damped by two incidents, one of some importance, the other less so. The more important was his
receiving information that while he was actually in arms near the walls of Rome a force had marched out
fully equipped, under their standards, to reinforce the army in Spain. The other incident, which he learnt from
a prisoner, was the sale by auction of the spot on which he had fixed his camp, and the fact that, in spite of his
occupation of it, there was no abatement in the price. That any one should have been found in Rome to buy
the ground which he was holding in possession as spoil of war, seemed to Hannibal such an insulting piece of
arrogance that he instantly summoned a crier and made him give notice of the sale of the silversmiths' shops
round the Forum of Rome.
These incidents led to his withdrawal from Rome, and he retired as far as the river Tutia, six miles distant
from the City. From there he marched to the grove of Feronia and the temple, which was celebrated in those
days for its wealth. The people of Capena and other cities round used to bring their firstfruits and other
offerings, according to their ability, and they had also embellished it with a considerable quantity of gold and
silver. Now the temple was despoiled of all its treasures. Great heaps of metal, where the soldiers, struck by
remorse, had thrown pieces of uncoined brass, were found there after Hannibal's departure. All writers are
agreed as to the plundering of this temple. Coelius tell us that Hannibal diverted his march to it while he was
going from Eretum to Rome, after marching from Amiternum by Reate and Cutiliae. According to this writer,
on leaving Capua, Hannibal entered Samnium, and from there passed to the Peligni; then, marching past the
town of Sulmo, he crossed the frontiers of the Marrucini and then advanced through the Alban territory to the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 7
Page No 10
country of the Marsi, and from there to Amiternum and the hamlet of Foruli. There can be no uncertainty as
to the route he took, for the traces of that great commander and his large army could not have been lost in so
short a space of time; the only point at issue is whether that was the route he took when he marched to Rome
or whether he followed it on his return to Campania.
The energy with which the Romans pressed the siege of Capua was far greater than that which Hannibal
exhibited in its defence, for he hurried away through Lucania to Bruttium in the hope of surprising Regium.
Though the siege was in no way relaxed during Fulvius' absence, his return made a sensible difference in the
conduct of operations, and it was a matter of general surprise that Hannibal had not returned at the same time.
The Capuans gradually learnt through their conversations with the besiegers that they were abandoned and
left to themselves, and that the Carthaginians had given up all hope of saving Capua. In accordance with a
resolution of the senate, the proconsul issued an edict which was published in the city, that any Campanian
burgher who went over to the Romans before a certain day would be amnestied. Not a single man went over;
their fears prevented them from trusting the Romans, for they had in their revolt committed crimes too great
for any hope of pardon. But whilst no one would provide for his own safety by going over to the enemy, there
was nothing done for the public safety in the way of wise or prudent counsel. The nobility had deserted their
public duties; it was impossible to get together a meeting of the senate. The supreme magistracy was held by
a man who conferred no honour on his office; on the contrary, his unfitness detracted from its authority and
power. None of the nobility were to be seen in the forum, or indeed anywhere in public; they shut themselves
up at home waiting for their country's downfall and their own destruction. All responsibility was thrown upon
the commandants of the Punic garrison, Bostar and Hanno, and they were much more concerned for their
own safety than for that of their supporters in the city. A communication was drawn up for the purpose of
forwarding it to Hannibal, in which he was directly charged with surrendering Capua into the enemy's hands
and exposing his garrison to every kind of torture. He had gone off, so the despatch hinted, to be out of the
way, lest Capua should be taken before his eyes, The Romans could not be drawn off from besieging Capua
even when an attack was threatened on their city; so much more determination did the Romans show as
enemies, than the Carthaginians as friends. If Hannibal would return to Capua and turn the whole tide of war
in that direction, then the garrison were prepared to make an attack on the besiegers. He had not crossed the
Alps to make war with Regium or Tarentum; where the legions of Rome were, there ought the armies of
Carthage to be. That was how he had conquered at Cannae, and at Thrasymenus, by meeting the enemy face
to face, army to army, and trying his fortune in battle.
This was the main drift of the despatch. It was handed to some Numidians who had undertaken to carry it on
promise of a reward. They had come into Fulvius' camp as deserters, intending to seize a favourable
opportunity of slipping away, and the famine from which Capua had long been suffering was a very good
reason why they should desert. A Campanian woman, however, the mistress of one of these deserters,
suddenly appeared in the camp and informed the Roman commander that the Numidians had come in as part
of a prearranged plot, and were really carrying a despatch to Hannibal, and that she was prepared to prove it,
as one of them had disclosed the affair to her. When this man was brought forward, he at first stoutly denied
all knowledge of the woman, but gradually he gave way before the truth, especially when he saw that
instruments of torture were being sent for and got ready, and at last made a complete confession. The
despatch was produced, and further evidence came to light, as it was found that other Numidians were at
large in the Roman camp under the guise of deserters. Above seventy of them were arrested and together with
the recent arrivals were all scourged, and their hands were cut off, after which they were sent back to Capua.
The sight of this terrible punishment broke the spirit of the Capuans.
The people went in a body to the senate house and insisted on Loesius summoning the senate. They openly
threatened the nobles who had so long absented themselves from the senate, that they would go round to their
houses and drag them all by main force into the streets. These threats resulted in a full meeting of the senate.
The general opinion was in favour of sending a deputation to the Roman commander, but Vibius Virrius, the
prime author of the revolt from Rome, when asked his opinion, told those who were talking about a
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 8
Page No 11
deputation and terms of peace and surrender that they were forgetting what they would have done had they
had the Romans in their power, or what, as circumstances now were, they would have to suffer. "Why! ," he
exclaimed, "do you imagine that our surrender now will be like the one we made in old days when, in order
to get help against the Samnites, we surrendered ourselves and all that belonged to us to Rome? Have you
already forgotten at what a critical moment for Rome we revolted from her? How we put to death with every
torture and indignity the garrison which we could easily have sent away? What numerous and desperate
sorties we have made against our besiegers, how we have assaulted their lines and called Hannibal in to crush
them? Have you forgotten this last act of ours when we sent him to attack Rome ?
"Now look at the other side, consider their determined hostility to us and see if you have anything to hope for.
Though there was a foreign enemy on Italian soil, and that enemy Hannibal, though the flames of war were
being kindled in every quarter, they neglected everything, even Hannibal himself, and sent both the consuls,
each with an army, to Capua. For two years now have they hemmed us in with their lines of circumvallation,
and are wearing us down with famine. They have endured as much as we have in the extremity of peril, the
utmost severity of toil; often have they been slaughtered about their entrenchments, and all but driven out of
them. But I pass over these things; the labours and dangers of a siege are an old and common experience. But
to show their rage and implacable hatred against us I will remind you of these incidents: Hannibal assaulted
their lines with an enormous force of infantry and cavalry, and partly captured them, but they did not raise the
siege; he crossed the Volturnus and desolated the district of Calenum with fire; the sufferings of their allies
failed to call off the Romans; he ordered a general advance on Rome itself, they disregarded the threatening
storm; he crossed the Anio and encamped within three miles of the City, and at last rode up to its walls and
gates and made as though he would take their city from them if they did not loose their hold on Capua; they
did not loose their hold. When wild beasts are mad with rage you can still divert their blind fury by
approaching their lairs and young ones which they will hasten to defend. The Romans were not diverted from
Capua by the prospect of their city being besieged, or by the terrified cries of their wives and children which
could almost be heard here, or by the threatened desecration of their hearths and altars, of the shrines of their
gods and the tombs of their ancestors. So eager are they to visit us with punishment, so greedily do they thirst
for our blood. And, perhaps, rightly; we should have done the same had fortune favoured us.
"Heaven, however, has ordered otherwise, and so, though I am bound to meet my death in any case, I can,
whilst I am still free, escape the insults and the tortures which the enemy is preparing for me, I can dispose of
myself by a death as peaceful as it is honourable. I refuse to look upon Appius Claudius and Q. Fulvius
exulting in all the insolence of victory; I refuse to be dragged in chains through the streets of Rome to grace
their triumph, and then in the dungeon or bound to the stake, with my back torn with the scourge, pass under
the headsman's axe. I will not see my city plundered and burnt, and the matrons and maidens and noble boys
of Capua ravished and outraged. Alba, the mother city of Rome, was rased by the Romans to its foundations
in order that no memorial of their origin and of the stock whence they sprung might survive; much less can I
believe that they will spare Capua which they hate more bitterly than they hate Carthage. So, for those of you
who intend to meet your fate before you witness all these horrors I have prepared a banquet today at my
house. When you have taken your fill of food and wine, the same goblet that is handed to me will be passed
round to you. That draught will free our bodies from torture, our spirits from insult, our eyes and ears from
seeing and hearing all the suffering and outrage which await the vanquished. Men will be in readiness to
place our lifeless bodies on a vast pile which will be kindled in the courtyard of the house. This is the only
path to death which is honourable and worthy of free men. Even the enemy will admire our courage, and
Hannibal will know that the allies whom he has abandoned and betrayed were, after all, brave men."
This speech of Virrius was received with approbation by many who had not the courage to carry out what
they approved of. The majority of the senators were not without hope that the clemency of the Roman people
so often experienced in former wars would be once more extended to them, and they determined to send
envoys to make a formal surrender of Capua. About sevenandtwenty accompanied Virrius home and
banqueted with him. When they had as far as possible deadened their feelings with wine against the sense of
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 9
Page No 12
impending evil, they all partook of the poisoned cup. Then they rose from table and grasped each other's
hands and took a last embrace of one another, weeping for their own and their country's doom. Some
remained that they might be cremated together on the same funeral pyre, others departed for their homes. The
congestion of the veins caused by the food and wine they had taken made the action of the poison somewhat
slow, and most of them lingered through the whole night and part of the following day. All however, expired
before the gates were opened to the enemy. The following day, the gate called "the Gate of Jupiter," opposite
the Roman camp, was opened by the proconsul's order. One legion was admitted through it and two
squadrons of allied cavalry, with C. Fulvius in command. First he took care that all the weapons of war in
Capua were brought to him; then, after stationing guards at all the gates to prevent any exit or escape, he
arrested the Punic garrison and ordered the senate to go to the Roman commanders. On their arrival in the
camp they were manacled, and ordered to send word for all the gold and silver they possessed to be brought
to the quaestors. This amounted to 2072 pounds of gold and 31,200 pounds of silver. Twentyfive senators
were sent to be kept in custody at Cales, and twentyeight who were proved to have been mainly
instrumental in bringing about the revolt were sent to Teanum
As to the punishment to be meted out to the senators of Capua, Claudius and Fulvius were anything but
unanimous. Claudius was prepared to grant them pardon, but Fulvius took a much sterner line. Appius
Claudius wished to refer the whole question to the senate at Rome. He maintained that it was but right that
the senators should have an opportunity of investigating all the circumstances and finding out whether the
Capuans had made any of the allies or the Latins or the municipal burghs privy to their designs, and if so,
whether any of these had given them assistance in the war. Fulvius, on the other hand, declared that the very
last thing they ought to do was to harass their faithful allies by vague charges and put them at the mercy of
informers who were perfectly indifferent as to what they said or what they did. Any such investigation
therefore he should stifle. After this interchange of views they parted, Appius feeling no doubt that in spite of
his violent language his comrade would, in such an important matter, await instructions from Rome. Fulvius,
determined to forestall any such obstacle to his designs, dismissed the council and ordered the military
tribunes and the officers of the allies to select 2000 horsemen and warn them to be in readiness by the time
the third watch was sounded. Starting with this force in the night, he reached Teanum at daybreak and rode
straight into the forum. A crowd had collected at the first entry of the cavalry, and Fulvius ordered the chief
magistrate of the district to be summoned, and on his appearance commanded him to produce the Capuans
who were in his custody. They were all brought forward and then scourged and beheaded. Then putting spurs
to his horse he rode to Cales. When he had taken his seat on the tribunal and the Capuans who had been
brought out were being bound to the stake, a mounted messenger arrived posthaste from Rome and handed
Fulvius a despatch from the praetor C. Calpurnius containing the decree of the senate. The spectators guessed
the nature of the contents, and those standing round the tribunal expressed their beliefa belief which soon
found expression throughout the Assemblythat the whole question of the treatment of the Capuan prisoners
was to be left to the senate. Fulvius thought so too; he took the letter and without opening it placed it in his
breast and then ordered his marshal to tell the lictor to carry out the law. Thus, those who were at Cales were
also executed. Now he read the despatch and the decree of the senate. But it was too late to prevent a deed
accomplished, which had been hurried on as quickly as possible in order that it might not be prevented. Just
as Fulvius was leaving the tribunal a Capuan named Taurea Vibellius strode through the middle of the crowd
and addressed him by name. Fulvius resumed his seat, wondering what the man wanted. "Order me too," he
cried, to be put to death so that you may boast of having caused the death of a braver man than yourself."
Fulvius declared that the man was certainly out of his mind, and added that even if he wished to kill him he
was prevented from doing so by the decree of the senate. Then Vibellius exclaimed, "Now that my native city
has been taken, my friends and relations lost to me, my wife and children slain by my own hand to save them
from insult and outrage, and since even the opportunity of dying as my fellowcountrymen here have died is
refused me, let me seek in courage a release from the life which has become so hateful to me." With these
words he drew out a sword which he had concealed in his garment, and plunging it into his heart fell dying at
the general's feet.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 10
Page No 13
As the execution of the Capuans and most of the other steps taken were carried out by the instructions of
Fulvius alone, some authors assert that Appius Claudius died immediately after the surrender of Capua.
According to this account, Taurea did not come voluntarily to Cales, nor did he perish by his own hand; when
he had been tied to the stake along with the others he shouted repeatedly, and as owing to the noise they
could not hear what he was saying, Fulvius ordered silence. Then Taurea said, as I have already related, that
he was being done to death by a man who was far from being his equal in courage. At these words, the
marshal, on the proconsul's order gave this direction to the lictor: "Lictor, let this brave man have more of the
rod, and execute the law upon him first of all." Some authors assert that the decree of the senate was read
before the men were beheaded, but there was a proviso in it to the effect that if he thought fit, he might refer
the question to the senate, and Fulvius took this to mean that he was at liberty to decide as to what would be
the best course in the interests of the republic. After Fulvius returned to Capua, he received the submission of
Atella and Calatia. Here too the ringleaders in the revolt were punished; seventy of the leading senators were
put to death, and three hundred Campanian nobles thrown into prison. Others who were distributed amongst
the various Latin cities to be kept in custody perished from various causes; the rest of the population of Capua
were sold as slaves. The question now was what was to be done with the city and its territory. Some were of
opinion that a city so strong, so near to Rome and so hostile to it, ought to be utterly destroyed. Utilitarian
considerations however prevailed. The territory was generally allowed to be the first in Italy in point of
productiveness, and the only reason why the city was spared was that there might be a place for the tillers of
the soil to live in. A motley throng of peasants, freedmen, small tradesmen and artisans were told off to
occupy the place; the whole of the territory with the buildings on it became the property of the Roman State.
It was settled that Capua itself should be simply a lodgment and a shelter, a city merely in name; there was to
be no corporate life, no senate, no council of the plebs, no magistrates; the population were without any right
of public assembly or selfgovernment; they had no common interest and were incapable of taking any
common action. The administration of justice was in the hands of a praetor who was to be sent annually from
Rome. In this way matters were arranged at Capua in pursuance of a policy which commends itself from
every point of view. Sternly and swiftly was punishment meted out to those who had been most guilty, the
civic population was scattered far and wide with no hope of return, the unoffending walls and houses were
spared from the ravages of fire and demolition. The preservation of the city, whilst it was a material
advantage to Rome, afforded to the friendly communities a striking proof of her lenity; the whole of
Campania and all the surrounding nationalities would have been horrorstruck at the destruction of such a
famous and wealthy city. The enemy, on the other hand, was made to realise the power of Rome to punish
those who were faithless to her, and the powerlessness of Hannibal to protect those who had gone over to
him.
Now that the senate was relieved from its anxiety about Capua, it was able to turn its attention to Spain. A
force of 6000 infantry and 300 cavalry was placed at Nero's disposal, and he selected it from the two legions
he had had with him at Capua; an equal number of infantry and 600 cavalry were to be furnished by the
allies. He embarked his army at Puteoli and landed at Tarraco. Here he hauled his ships ashore and furnished
the crews with arms, thus augmenting his strength. With this composite force he marched to the Ebro and
took over the army there from Ti. Fonteius and L. Marcius. He then advanced against the enemy.
HasdrubalHamilcar's sonwas encamped at the Lapides Atri (the "Black Boulders"). This is a place in the
Auretanian country between the towns of Iliturgis and Mentissa. Nero occupied the two exits of the pass.
Hasdrubal, finding himself shut in, sent a herald to promise in his name that he would deport the whole of his
army from Spain if he were allowed to leave his position. The Roman general was glad to accept the offer,
and Hasdrubal asked for an interview the following day. At this conference they were to draw up in writing
the terms upon which the various citadels were to be handed over, and the date at which the garrisons were to
be withdrawn, on the understanding that they should take with them all their goods and chattels.
His request was granted, and Hasdrubal ordered the most heavily armed portion of his army to get out of the
pass as best they could as soon as darkness set in. He was careful to see that not very many went out that
night, as a small body would make but little noise and be more likely to escape observation. They would also
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 11
Page No 14
find their way more easily through the narrow and difficult footpaths. The next day he kept the appointment,
but so much time was taken up in discussing and writing down a number of things which had nothing to do
with the matters they had agreed to discuss, that the whole day was lost and the business adjourned till the
morrow. So another opportunity was afforded him of sending off a fresh body of troops by night. The
discussion was not brought to a close the next day, and so it went on; several days were occupied in
discussing terms, and the nights in despatching the Carthaginians secretly from their camp. When the greater
part of the army had escaped, Hasdrubal no longer kept to the conditions which he had himself proposed, and
there was less and less desire to come to terms as his sincerity diminished with his fears. Almost the entire
force of infantry had now got out of the defile when, at daybreak, a dense fog covered the valley and the
whole of the surrounding country. No sooner did Hasdrubal become aware of this than he sent a message to
Nero begging that the interview might be put off for that day as it was a day on which the Carthaginians were
forbidden by their religion to transact any important business. Even this did not arouse any suspicion of
trickery. On learning that he would be excused for that day, Hasdrubal promptly left his camp with the
cavalry and elephants, and by keeping his movements secret, emerged into safety. About ten o'clock the sun
dispersed the mist, and the Romans saw that the hostile camp was deserted. Then, recognising at last the trick
which the Carthaginian had played upon him and how he had been befooled, Nero hurriedly prepared to
follow him and force him to an engagement. The enemy, however, declined battle; only a few skirmishes
took place between the Carthaginian rear and the Roman advanced guard.
The Spanish tribes who had revolted after the defeat of the two Scipios showed no signs of returning to their
allegiance; there were not, however, any fresh instances. After the recovery of Capua the public interest both
in senate and people centered in Spain quite as much as in Italy; and it was decided that the army serving
there should be increased and a commanderinchief appointed. There was, however, much uncertainty felt
as to whom they ought to appoint. Two consummate generals had fallen within thirty days of each other, and
the selection of a man to take their place demanded exceptional care. Various names were proposed, and at
last it was arranged that the matter should be left to the people, and a proconsul for Spain formally elected.
The consuls fixed a day for the election. They were in hopes that those who felt themselves qualified for such
an important command would become candidates. They were, however, disappointed, and the disappointment
renewed the grief of the people, as they thought of the defeats they had sustained and the generals they had
lost. The citizens were depressed, almost in despair, nevertheless they went out to the Campus Martius on the
day fixed for the election. All turned their eyes to the magistrates and watched the expression of the leaders
of the republic as they looked enquiringly at one another. Everywhere men were saying that the State was in
such a hopeless condition that no one dared to accept the command in Spain. Suddenly, Publius Cornelius
Scipio, the son of the Scipio who had fallen in Spain, a young man barely twentyfour years old, took his
stand upon a slight eminence where he could be seen and heard, and announced himself as a candidate. All
eyes were turned towards him, and the delighted cheers with which his announcement was received were at
once interpreted as an omen of his future good fortune and success. On proceeding to vote, not only the
centuries but even the individual voters were unanimous to a man in favour of entrusting P. Scipio with the
supreme command in Spain. When, however, the election was decided and their enthusiasm had had time to
cool down, there was a sudden silence as the people began to reflect on what they had done, and ask
themselves whether their personal affection for him might not have got the better of their judgment. What
gave them the greatest concern was his youth. Some, too, recalled with dread the fortune that had attended his
house, and regarded as ominous of evil even the name of the man who was quitting two bereaved families in
order to carry on a campaign round the tombs of his uncle and his father.
Seeing how the step which they had taken so impetuously now filled them with anxiety, Scipio called the
voters together and spoke to them about his age and the command which they had entrusted to him, and the
war which he had to conduct. He spoke in such lofty and glowing words that he evoked their enthusiasm once
more, and inspired them with more hopeful confidence than is usually called out by faith in men's promises
or by reasonable anticipations of success. Scipio won people's admiration not only by the sterling qualities
which he possessed, but also by his cleverness in displaying them, a cleverness which he had developed from
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 12
Page No 15
early youth. In his public life he generally spoke and acted as though he were guided either by visions of the
night or by some divine inspiration, whether it was that he was really open to superstitious influences or that
he claimed oracular sanction for his commands and counsels in order to secure prompt adoption. He sought to
create this impression on men's minds from the beginning, from the day when he assumed the toga virilis, for
he never undertook any important business, either public or private, without first going to the Capitol, where
he sat for some time in the temple in privacy and alone. This custom, which he kept up all through his life,
gave rise to a widespread belief, whether designedly upon his part or not, that he was of divine origin, and the
story was told of him which was commonly related of Alexandera story as silly as it was fabulousthat he
was begotten by an enormous serpent which had been often seen in his mother's bedroom, but on any one's
approach, suddenly uncoiled itself and disappeared. The belief in these marvels was never scoffed at by him;
on the contrary, it was strengthened by deliberate policy on his part in refusing to deny or to admit that
anything of the kind ever occurred. There were many other traits in this young man's character, some of
which were genuine, others the result of studied acting, which created a greater admiration for him than
usually falls to the lot of man.
It was the confidence with which he had in this way inspired his fellowcitizens that led them to entrust to
him, young as he was, a task of enormous difficulty, and a command which involved the gravest
responsibilities. The force which he had formed out of the old army in Spain, and that which sailed from
Puteoli with C. Nero, were further reinforced by 10,000 infantry and 1000 cavalry. M. Junius Silanus was
appointed as his second in command. Setting sail from the mouth of the Tiber with a fleet of thirty vessels, all
quinqueremes, he coasted along the Etruscan shore, crossed the Gulf of Gaul, and after rounding the
Pyrenaean Promontory brought up at Emporiae, a Greek city, founded by settlers from Phocaea. Here he
disembarked his troops and proceeded overland to Tarraco, leaving orders for his fleet to follow his
movements. At Tarraco he was met by deputations which had been sent from all the friendly tribes as soon as
they knew of his coming. The vessels were hauled ashore, and the four Massilian triremes which had acted as
convoy were sent home. The deputations informed Scipio of the unsettlement amongst their tribes due to the
varying fortunes of the war. He replied in a bold and assured tone, full of selfconfidence, but no expression
savouring of presumption or arrogance escaped him, everything he said was marked by perfect dignity and
sincerity.
Tarraco was now his headquarters. From there he paid visits to the friendly tribes, and also inspected the
winter quarters of the army. He praised them warmly for having maintained their hold on the province after
sustaining two such terrible blows, and also for keeping the enemy to the south of the Ebro, thereby depriving
them of any advantages from their victories, and also affording protection to their own friends. Marcius,
whom he kept with him, he treated with so much honour that it was perfectly obvious that Scipio had not the
slightest fear of his reputation being dimmed by anybody. Soon afterwards Silanus succeeded Nero and the
new troops were sent into winter quarters. After making all the necessary visits and inspections and
completing the preparations for the next campaign Scipio returned to Tarraco. His reputation was quite as
great among the enemy as among his own countrymen; there was amongst the former a foreboding, a vague
sense of fear which was all the stronger because no reason for it could be given. The Carthaginian armies
withdrew into their respective winterquarters: Hasdrubal, the son of Gisgo, to Gades on the coast, Mago into
the interior above the forest of Castulo, Hasdrubal, the son of Hamilcar, near the Ebro in the neighbourhood
of Saguntum. This summer, marked by two important events, the recovery of Capua and the despatch of
Scipio to Spain, was drawing to a close when a Carthaginian fleet was sent from Sicily to Tarentum to
intercept supplies from the Roman garrison in the citadel. It certainly succeeded in blocking all access to the
citadel from the sea, but the longer it remained the greater was the scarcity amongst the townspeople as
compared with that amongst the Romans in the citadel. For though the coast was clear and open access was
secured to the harbour by the Carthaginian fleet, it was impossible to convey to the population of the city as
much corn as was consumed by the crowd of sailors, drawn from every class, on board the fleet. The garrison
in the citadel, on the other hand, being only a small body, were able to exist on what they had previously laid
in, without any external supply. At length the ships were sent away, and their departure was hailed with more
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 13
Page No 16
delight than their arrival had been. But the scarcity was not in the slightest degree lessened, for when their
protection was withdrawn, corn could not be brought in at all.
Towards the end of this summer M. Marcellus left Sicily for Rome. On his arrival in the City he was granted
an audience of the senate in the Temple of Bellona. After giving a report of his campaign and gently
protesting on his own behalf and on that of his soldiers against not being allowed to bring them home, though
he had completely pacified the province, he requested to be allowed to enter the City in triumph. After a
lengthy debate his request was refused. On the one hand, it was argued, it was most inconsistent to refuse him
a triumph now that he was on the spot after the way in which the news of his successes in Sicily had been
received, and public thanksgivings and special rites ordered while he was still in his province. Against this it
was alleged that as the senate had ordered him to hand over his army to his successor, it was a proof that a
state of war still existed in the province, and he could not enjoy a triumph since he had not brought the war to
a close, nor was his army present to testify as to whether he deserved a triumph or not. They decided upon a
middle course, he was to be allowed an ovation. The tribunes of the plebs were authorised by the senate to
propose as an ordinance to the people "that for the day on which he entered the City in ovation M. Marcellus
should retain his command."
The day previous to this he celebrated his triumph on the Alban Mount. From there he marched into the City
in ovation. An enormous quantity of spoil was carried before him together with a model of Syracuse at the
time of its capture. Catapults and ballistae and all the engines of war taken from the city were exhibited in the
procession, as were also the works of art which had been accumulated in royal profusion during the long
years of peace. These included a number of articles in silver and bronze, pieces of furniture, costly garments
and many famous statues with which Syracuse, like all the principal cities of Greece, had been adorned. To
signalise his victories over the Carthaginians eight elephants were led in the procession. Not the least
conspicuous feature of the spectacle was the sight of Sosis the Syracusan and Moericus the Spaniard who
marched in front wearing golden crowns. The former had guided the nocturnal entry into Syracuse, the latter
had been the agent in the surrender of Nasos and its garrison. Each of these men received the full Roman
citizenship and 500 jugera of land. Sosis was to take his allotment in that part of the Syracusan territory
which had belonged to the king or to those who had taken up arms against Rome, and he was allowed to
choose any house in Syracuse which had been the property of those who had been put to death under the laws
of war. A further order was made that Moericus and the Spaniards should have assigned to them a city and
lands in Sicily out of the possessions of those who had revolted from Rome. M. Cornelius was commissioned
to select the city and territory for them, where he thought best, and 400 jugera in the same district were also
decreed as a gift to Belligenes through whose instrumentality Moericus had been induced to change sides.
After Marcellus' departure from Sicily a Carthaginian fleet landed a force of 8000 infantry and 3000
Numidian horse. The cities of Murgentia and Ergetium revolted to them, and their example was followed by
Hybla and Macella and some other less important places. Muttines and his Numidians were also roaming all
through the island and laying waste the fields of Rome's allies with fire. To add to these troubles the Roman
army bitterly resented not being withdrawn from the province with their commander and also not being
allowed to winter in the towns. Consequently they were very remiss in their military duties; in fact it was
only the absence of a leader that prevented them from breaking out into open mutiny. In spite of these
difficulties the praetor M. Cornelius succeeded by remonstrances and reassurances in calming the temper of
his men, and then reduced all the revolted cities to submission. In pursuance of the senate's orders he selected
Murgentia, one of those cities, for the settlement of Moericus and his Spaniards.
As both the consuls had Apulia for their province, and as there was less danger from Hannibal and his
Carthaginians, they received instructions to ballot for Apulia and Macedonia. Macedonia fell to Sulpicius,
and he superseded Laevinus. Fulvius was recalled to conduct the consular elections in Rome. The Veturian
century of juniors was the first to vote, and they declared for T. Manlius Torquatus and T. Otacilius, the latter
being at the time absent from Rome. The voters began to press round Manlius to congratulate him, regarding
his election as a certainty, but he at once proceeded, surrounded by a large crowd, to the consul's tribunal and
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 14
Page No 17
begged to be allowed to make a brief speech and also asked that the century which had voted might be
recalled. When all were on the tiptoe of expectation to learn what he wanted, he began by excusing himself
on the score of his eyesight. "A man must have little sense of shame," he continued "whether he be pilot of a
ship or commander of an army, who asks that the lives and fortunes of others should be committed to him
when, in all he does, he has to depend upon other people's eyes. If, therefore, you approve, order the Veturian
century of juniors to cast their vote again, and to remember, whilst they are choosing their consuls, the war in
Italy and the critical position of the republic. Your ears can hardly yet have recovered from the uproar and
confusion caused by the enemy a few months ago, when he brought the flames of war almost up to the very
walls of Rome." The century replied with a general shout that they had not changed their minds, they should
vote as before. Then Torquatus said, "I shall not be able to tolerate your manners and conduct, nor will you
submit to my authority. Go back and vote again, and bear in mind that the Carthaginians are carrying war in
Italy, and that their leader is Hannibal." Then the century, swayed by the speaker's personal authority and by
the murmurs of admiration which they heard all around them, begged the consul to call up the Veturian
century of seniors, as they wished to consult their elders and be guided by their advice in the choice of
consuls. They were accordingly called up and an interval was allowed for the two bodies to consult privately
in the ovile. The seniors maintained that the choice really lay between three men, two of them already full of
honoursQ. Fabius and M. Marcellusand, if they particularly wished a new man to be appointed consul to
act against the Carthaginians, M. Valerius Laevinus, who had conducted operations against Philip both by sea
and land with conspicuous success. So they discussed the claims of these three, and after the seniors had
withdrawn the juniors proceeded to vote. They gave their vote in favour of M. Marcellus Claudius,
resplendent with the glory of his conquest of Sicily, and, as the second consul, M. Valerius. Neither of them
had put in a personal appearance. The other centuries all followed the leading century. People nowadays may
laugh at the admirers of antiquity. I for my part do not believe it possible, even if there ever existed a
commonwealth of wise men such as philosophers dream of but have never really known, that there could be
an aristocracy more grave or more temperate in their desire for power or a people with purer manners and a
higher moral tone. That a century of juniors should have been anxious to consult their seniors as to whom
they were to place in supreme authority is a thing hardly credible in these days, when we see in what
contempt children hold the authority of their parents.
Then followed the election of praetors. The successful candidates were P. Manlius Vulso, L. Manlius
Acidinus, C. Laetorius and L. Cincius Alimentus. When the elections were over news came of the death of T.
Otacilius in Sicily. He was the man whom the people would have given to T. Manlius as his colleague in the
consulship, if the order of the proceedings had not been interrupted. The Games of Apollo had been exhibited
the previous year, and when the question of their repetition the next year was moved by the praetor
Calpurnius, the senate passed a decree that they should be observed for all time. Some portents were observed
this year and duly reported. The statue of victory which stood on the roof of the temple of Concord was
struck by lightning and thrown down on to the statues of Victory which stood above the facade in front of the
pediment, and here it was caught and prevented from falling lower. At Anagnia and Fregellae the walls and
gates were reported to have been struck. In the forum of Subertum streams of blood had flowed for a whole
day. At Eretium there was a shower of stones and at Reate a mule had produced offspring. These portents
were expiated by sacrifices of fullgrown victims; a day was appointed for special intercessions and the
people were ordered to join in solemn rites for nine days. Some members of the national priesthood died this
year, and others were appointed in their stead. Manlius Aemilius Numida, one of the Keepers of the Sacred
Books, was succeeded by M. Aemilius Lepidus. C. Livius was appointed pontiff in the room of M.
Pomponius Matho, and M. Servilius, augur, in the place of Spurius Carvilius Maximus. The death of the
pontiff T. Otacilius Crassus did not occur before the close of the year, so no one was appointed in his place.
C. Claudius, one of the Flamens of Jupiter, was guilty of irregularity in laying the selected parts of the victim
on the altar and consequently resigned his office.
M. Valerius Laevinus had been holding private interviews with some of the leading Aetolians with the view
of ascertaining their political leanings. It was arranged that a meeting of their national council should be
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 15
Page No 18
convened to meet him, and thither he proceeded with some fastsailing vessels. He commenced his address
to the assembly by alluding to the captures of Syracuse and Capua as instances of the success which had
attended the arms of Rome in Sicily and Italy, and then proceeded: "It is the practice of the Romans, a
practice handed down from their ancestors, to cultivate the friendship of other nations; some of them they
have received into citizenship on the same footing as themselves; others they have allowed to remain under
such favourable conditions that they preferred alliance to full citizenship. You, Aetolians, will be held in all
the greater honour because you will have been the first of all the oversea nations to establish friendly
relations with us. Philip and the Macedonians you find to be troublesome neighbours; I have already dealt a
fatal blow to their ambitions and aggressiveness, and I shall reduce them to such a pass that they will not only
evacuate those cities which they have wrested from you, but will have enough to do to defend Macedonia
itself. The Acarnanians, too, whose secession from your league you feel so keenly, I shall bring back to the
old terms by which your rights and suzerainty over them were guaranteed." These assertions and promises of
the Roman commander were supported by Scopas, the chief magistrate of Aetolia at the time, and by
Dorimachus, a leading man amongst them, both of whom from their official position spoke with authority.
They were less reserved, and adopted a more confident tone as they extolled the power and greatness of
Rome. What weighed most, however, with the Assembly was the hope of becoming masters of Acarnania.
The terms on which they were to become the friends and allies of Rome were reduced to writing and an
additional clause was inserted that if it was their will and pleasure the Eleans and Lacedaemonians as well as
Attalus, Pleuratus and Scerdilaedus might be included in the treaty. Attalus was king of Pergamum in Asia
Minor; Pleuratus, king of the Thracians; Scerdilaedus, king of the Illyrians. The Aetolians were at once to
commence war with Philip on land, and the Roman general would assist them with not less than twentyfive
quinqueremes. The territories, buildings and walls of all the cities as far as Corcyra were to become the
property of the Aetolians, all the other booty was to go to the Romans, who were also to be responsible for
Acarnania passing under the dominion of the Aetolians. Should the Aetolians make peace with Philip, one of
the conditions was to be that he would abstain from hostilities against Rome and her allies and dependencies.
Similarly, if the Romans made a treaty with him it was to be a provision that he should not be allowed to
make war upon the Aetolians and their allies. These were the agreed conditions, and after a lapse of two
years, copies of the treaty were deposited by the Aetolians at Olympia, and by the Romans in the Capitol, in
order that the sacred memorials round them might be a perpetual witness to their obligation. The reason for
this delay was that the Aetolian envoys had been detained for a considerable time in Rome. No time,
however, was lost in commencing hostilities, and Laevinus attacked Zacynthus. This is a small island
adjacent to Aetolia, and it contains one city of the same name as the island; this city, with the exception of its
citadel, Laevinus captured. He also took two cities belonging to the AcarnaniansOeniadae and Nasosand
handed them over to the Aetolians. After this he withdrew to Corcyra, feeling satisfied that Philip had enough
on his hands with the war on his frontiers to prevent him from thinking about Italy and the Carthaginians and
his compact with Hannibal.
Philip was wintering in Pella when the news of the defection of the Aetolians reached him. He had intended
to march into Greece at the beginning of the spring, and with the view of keeping the Illyrians and the cities
adjacent to his western frontier quiet he made a sudden invasion into the territories of Oricum and Apollonia.
The men of Apollonia came out to give battle, but he drove them back in great panic to their walls. After
devastating the neighbouring district of Illyria, he turned swiftly into Pelagonia and captured Sintia, a city of
the Dardani, which gave them easy access into Macedonia. After these rapid incursions he turned his
attention to the war which the Aetolians, in conjunction with the Romans, were commencing against him.
Marching through Pelagonia, Lyncus and Bottiaea he descended into Thessaly, whose population he hoped to
rouse to joint action with him against the Aetolians. Leaving Perseus with a force of 4000 men to hold the
pass into Thessaly against them he returned to Macedonia, before engaging in the more serious contest, and
from there marched into Thrace to attack the Maedi. This tribe were in the habit of making incursions into
Macedonia whenever they found the king occupied with some distant war and his kingdom unprotected. To
break their aggressiveness he devastated their country, and attacked Iamphoryna, their chief city and
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 16
Page No 19
stronghold.
When Scopas heard that the king had gone into Thessaly, and was engaged in hostilities there, he called up all
the fighting men of Aetolia and prepared to invade Acarnania. The Acarnanians were inferior to their enemy
in strength; they were also aware that Oeniadae and Nasos were lost, and above all, that the arms of Rome
were turned against them. Under these circumstances they entered upon the struggle more in a spirit of rage
and despair than with prudence and method. Their wives and children and all men over sixty years of age
were sent into the adjoining country of Epirus. All who were between fifteen and sixty bound themselves by
oath not to return home unless they were victorious, and if any one left the field, defeated, no man should
receive him into any city or house or admit him to his table or his hearth. They drew up a form of words,
invoking a terrible curse upon any of their countrymen who should prove recreants, and a most solemn appeal
to their hosts, the Epirotes, to respect their oath. They also begged them to bury those of their countrymen
who fell in battle in one common grave and place over it this inscription: "Here lie the Acarnanians who met
their death whilst fighting for their country against the violence and injustice of the Aetolians." In this
determined and desperate mood, they fixed their camp on the extreme limit of their borders and awaited the
enemy. Messengers were despatched to Philip to announce their critical situation, and in spite of his recapture
of Iamphoryna and other successes in Thrace he was compelled to abandon his northern campaign and go to
their assistance. Rumours of the oath which the Acarnanians had taken arrested the advance of the Aetolians;
the news of Philip's approach compelled them to withdraw into the interior of their country. Philip had made
a forced march to prevent the Acarnanians from being crushed, but he did not advance beyond Dium, and on
learning that the Aetolians had retired he returned to Pella.
At the beginning of spring Laevinus set sail from Corcyra and after rounding the promontory of Leucata
reached Naupactus. He announced that he was going on to attack Anticyra, so that Scopas and the Aetolians
might be ready for him there. Anticyra is situated in Locris, on the left hand as you enter the Corinthian Gulf,
and is only a short distance either by sea or land from Naupactus. In three days the attack began in both
directions; the naval attack was the heavier one because the ships were furnished with artillery and engines of
every kind, and it was the Romans who were delivering the attack on this side. In a few days the place
surrendered and was made over to the Aetolians; the booty in accordance with the treaty became the property
of the Romans. During the siege a despatch was handed to Laevinus informing him that he had been made
consul, and that P. Sulpicius was coming to succeed him. Whilst he was there he was overtaken by a tedious
illness, and consequently arrived in Rome much later than was expected. M. Marcellus entered upon his
consulship on March 15, and in order to comply with traditional usage summoned a meeting of the senate on
the same day. The meeting was a purely formal one; he announced that in his colleague's absence he should
not submit any proposals either in respect of the policy of the State or the assignment of provinces. "I am
quite aware," he told the senators, "that there are a large body of Sicilians quartered in the country houses of
my detractors round the City. I have no intention of preventing them from publishing here in Rome the
charges which have been got up by my enemies; on the contrary, I was prepared to give them an immediate
opportunity of appearing before the senate had they not pretended to be afraid of speaking about a consul in
his colleague's absence. When, however, my colleague has come I shall not allow any business to be
discussed before the Sicilians have been brought into the senate house. M. Cornelius has issued what is
practically a formal summons throughout the island in order that as many as possible might come to Rome to
lay their complaints against me. He has filled the City with letters containing false information about a state
of war existing in Sicily, solely that he may tarnish my reputation." The consul's speech won for him the
reputation of being a man of moderation and selfcontrol. The senate adjourned, and it seemed as though
there would be a total suspension of business pending the other consul's arrival. As usual, idleness led to
discontent and grumbling. The plebs were loud in their complaints about the way the war dragged on, the
devastation of the land round the City wherever Hannibal and his army moved, the exhaustion of Italy by the
constant levies, the almost annual destruction of their armies. And now the new consuls were both of them
fond of war, far too enterprising and ambitious, quite capable, even in a time of peace and quiet, of getting up
a war, and now that war was actually going on all the less likely to allow the citizens any respite or breathing
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 17
Page No 20
space.
All this talk was suddenly interrupted by a fire which broke out in the night in several places round the Forum
on the eve of the Quinquatrus. Seven shops which were afterwards replaced by five were burning at the same
time, as well as the offices where the New Banks now stand. Soon after, private buildingsthe Basilicae did
not yet existthe Lautumiae, the Fish Market and the Hall of Vesta were alight. It was with the utmost
difficulty that the Temple of Vesta was saved, mainly through the exertions of thirteen slaves, who were
afterwards manumitted at the public cost. The fire raged all through the next day and there was not the
smallest doubt that it was the work of incendiaries, for fires started simultaneously in several different places.
The senate accordingly authorised the consul to give public notice that whoever disclosed the names of those
through whose agency the conflagration had been started should, if he were a freeman, receive a reward, if a
slave, his liberty. Tempted by the offer of a reward, a slave belonging to the Capuan family of the Calavii,
called Manus, gave information to the effect that his masters, together with five young Capuan nobles, whose
fathers had been beheaded by Q. Fulvius, had caused the fire and were prepared to commit every description
of crime if they were not arrested. They and their slaves were at once apprehended. At first they endeavoured
to throw suspicion upon the informer and his statement. It was asserted that after being beaten by his master,
the day before he gave information, he had run away and had made out of an occurrence which was really
accidental the foundation of a false charge. When, however, the accused and accuser were brought face to
face and the slaves were examined under torture, they all confessed. The masters as well as the slaves who
had been their accessories were all executed. The informer was rewarded with his liberty and 20,000 ases.
When Laevinus was passing Capua on his way to Rome he was surrounded by a crowd of the inhabitants who
implored him with tears to allow them to go to Rome and try if they could not awaken the compassion of the
senate and persuade them not to allow Q. Flaccus to ruin them utterly and efface their name. Flaccus declared
that he had no personal feeling against the Capuans, it was as public enemies that he regarded them, and
should continue to do so as long as he knew that they maintained their present attitude towards Rome. He had
shut them up, he said, within their walls, because if they got out anywhere they would prowl about the
country like wild beasts, and mangle and murder whatever came in their way. Some had deserted to
Hannibal, others had gone off to burn down Rome. The consul would see in the halfburnt Forum the result
of their crime. They had tried to destroy the temple of Vesta, with its perpetual fire, and the image which was
concealed in the sacred shrinethat image which Fate had decreed to be the pledge and guarantee of Roman
dominion. He considered that it would be anything but safe to give the Capuans a chance of entering the City.
After hearing this Laevinus made the Capuans take an oath to Flaccus that they would return within five days
after receiving the reply of the senate. Then he ordered them to follow him to Rome. Surrounded by this
crowd and by a number of Sicilians who had also met him, he entered the City. It seemed just as though he
were bringing in a body of accusers against the two commanders who had distinguished themselves by the
destruction of two famous cities and who would now have to defend themselves against those they had
vanquished.
The first questions, however, which the two consuls brought before the senate were those relating to foreign
policy and the allocation of the various commands. Laevinus made his report on the situation in Macedonia
and Greece, and the unrest amongst the Aetolians, the Acarnanians and the Locrians. He also gave details as
to his own military and naval movements, and stated that he had driven Philip, who was meditating an attack
on the Aetolians, back into the interior of his kingdom. The legion could now be safely withdrawn, as the
fleet was sufficient to protect Italy from any attempt on the part of the king. After this statement about
himself and the province of which he had had charge, he and his colleague raised the question of the various
commands. The senate made the following dispositions. One consul was to operate in Italy against Hannibal;
the other was to succeed T. Otacilius in command of the fleet and also to administer Sicily with L. Cincius as
praetor. They were to take over the armies in Etruria and Gaul, each of which comprised two legions. The
two City legions which the consul Sulpicius had commanded the previous year were sent to Gaul, and the
consul who was to act in Italy was to appoint to the command in Gaul. C. Calpurnius had his office of
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 18
Page No 21
propraetor extended for a year, and was sent into Etruria, Q. Fulvius also received a year's extension of his
command at Capua. The composite force of citizens and allies was reduced, one strong legion being formed
out of the two; this consisted of 5000 infantry and 300 cavalry, those who had served longest being sent
home. The army of the allies was reduced to 7000 infantry and 300 cavalry, the same rule being observed as
to the release of the veterans who had seen the longest service. In the case of the retiring consul, Cn. Fulvius,
no change was made; he retained his army and his province, Apulia, for another year. His late colleague, P.
Sulpicius, received orders to disband his entire army with the exception of the naval force. Similarly the army
which M. Cornelius had commanded was to be sent home from Sicily. The men of Cannae, who practically
represented two legions, were still to remain in the island, under the command of the praetor L. Cincius. L.
Cornelius had commanded the same number of legions the previous year in Sardinia, and these were now
transferred to the praetor P. Manlius Vulso. The consuls received instructions to see that in raising the City
legions, none were enrolled who had been in the army of M. Valerius, or in that of Q. Fulvius. So the total
number of Roman legions in active service that year was not to exceed oneandtwenty.
When the senate had finished making the appointments, the consuls were ordered to ballot for their
commands. Sicily and the fleet fell to Marcellus, Italy and the campaign against Hannibal to Laevinus. This
result utterly appalled the Sicilians, to whom it seemed as though all the horrors of the capture of Syracuse
were to be repeated. They were standing in full view of the consuls, waiting anxiously for the result of the
balloting, and when they saw how it was decided, they broke out into loud laments and cries of distress,
which drew the eyes of all upon them for the moment, and became the subject of much comment afterwards.
Clothing themselves in mourning garb they visited the houses of the senators and assured each of them in
turn that if Marcellus went back to Sicily with the power and authority of a consul they would every one of
them abandon his city and quit the island for ever. He had, they said, before shown himself vindictive and
implacable towards them; what would he do now, furious as he was at the Sicilians who had come to Rome
to complain of him? It would be better for the island to be buried beneath the fires of Aetna or plunged in the
depths of the sea than to be given up to such an enemy to wreak his rage and vengeance on it. These
remonstrances of the Sicilians were made to individual nobles in their own homes, and gave rise to lively
discussions, in which sympathy with the sufferers and hostile sentiments towards Marcellus were freely
expressed. At last they reached the senate. The consuls were requested to consult that body as to the
advisability of a rearrangement of the provinces. In addressing the House Marcellus said that had the Sicilians
been already admitted to an audience he would have taken a different line, but as matters stood, he did not
wish it to be open to any one to say that they were afraid to lay their complaints against the man in whose
power they would shortly be placed. If, therefore, it made no difference to his colleague he was prepared to
exchange provinces with him. He begged the senate not to make any order, for since it would have been
unfair to him for his colleague to have chosen his province without recourse to the ballot, how much more
unfair and even humiliating to him would it be now to have the province which had fallen to him formally
transferred to his colleague! After indicating their wish, without embodying it in a decree, the senate
adjourned, and the consuls themselves arranged to exchange provinces. Marcellus was being hurried on by
his destiny to meet Hannibal, in order that, as he was the first Roman general to win the distinction of a
successful action with him after so many disastrous ones, so he would be the last to contribute to the
Carthaginian's reputation by his own fall, and that just at the time when the war was going most favourably
for the Romans.
When the exchange of provinces had been decided, the Sicilians were introduced into the senate. After
expatiating at some length upon the unbroken loyalty of Hiero to Rome, and claiming the credit of it for the
people rather than for the king, they proceeded: "There were many reasons for the hatred we felt towards
Hieronymus and afterwards towards Hippocrates and Epicydes, but the principal one was their abandoning
Rome for Hannibal. It was this that led some of the foremost of our younger men to assassinate Hieronymus
close to the senatehouse, and also induced some seventy who belonged to our noblest houses to form a plot
for the destruction of Epicydes and Hippocrates. As Marcellus failed to support them by bringing up his army
to Syracuse at the time he promised, the plot was disclosed by an informer, and they were all put to death by
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 19
Page No 22
the tyrants. Marcellus was really responsible for the tyranny, owing to his ruthless sacking of Leontium.
From that time the Syracusan leaders never ceased to go over to Marcellus and undertake to deliver up the
city to him whenever he wished. He would rather have taken it by storm, but when all his attempts by sea and
land failed, and he saw that the thing was impossible, he chose as agents of the surrender an artisan called
Sosis and the Spaniard Moericus, rather than let the leaders of the city, who had so often offered in vain to do
so, undertake the task. No doubt he considered that he would thus have more justification for plundering and
massacring the friends of Rome. Even if the revolt to Hannibal had been the act of senate and people and not
simply of Hieronymus; if it had been the government of Syracuse who closed the gates against Marcellus,
and not the tyrants Hippocrates and Epicydes who had ousted the government; if we had warred against
Rome in the spirit and temper of the Carthaginians, what greater severity could Marcellus have shown
towards us than that which he actually practiced, unless he had blotted Syracuse out from the face of the
earth? At all events, nothing has been left to us beyond our walls and our houses stripped of everything, and
the defaced and despoiled temples of our gods, from which even the gods themselves and their votive
offerings have been carried off. Many have been deprived of their land, so that they have not even the bare
soil on which to support themselves, and all who belong to them, with the remains of their wrecked fortunes.
We beg and entreat you, senators, if you cannot order all that we have lost to be restored to us, at least to
insist upon the restitution of what can be found and identified." After they had stated their grievances,
Laevinus ordered them to withdraw, that their position might be discussed. "Let them stop," exclaimed
Marcellus, "that I may make my reply in their presence, since we who conduct war on your behalf, senators,
must do so on condition of those whom we have vanquished coming forward as our accusers. Two cities have
been taken this year: let Capua call Fabius to account, and Syracuse, Marcellus."
When they had been brought back into the senatehouse, Marcellus made the following speech: "I have not
so far forgotten, senators, the majesty of Rome or the dignity of my office as to stoop to defend myself, as
consul, against the charges of these Greeks, if they concerned me alone. The question is not so much what I
have done as what they ought to have suffered. Had they not been enemies it is a matter of indifference
whether I maltreated Syracuse now or in Hiero's lifetime. But if they have proved false to us, opened their
gates to the enemy, threatened our envoys with drawn swords, shut their city and walls against us and called
in a Carthaginian army to protect them against us, who is there who can feel any indignation at their having
suffered hostile violence after having practiced it? I declined the offers of their leaders to deliver up the city,
and looked upon Sosis and the Spaniard Moericus as much more suitable persons to be trusted in a matter of
such importance. As you make their humble station in life a reproach to others, you do not yourselves belong
to the lowest class in Syracuse, and yet who amongst you promised to open your gates and admit my armed
force into your city? Those who did this are the objects of your hatred and execration; not even in this place
do you shrink from insulting them, showing thereby how far you yourselves were from contemplating
anything of the kind. That low social position, senators, which these men make a ground of reproach, proves
most clearly that I discouraged no man who was willing to render effectual help to the commonwealth.
Before commencing the siege of Syracuse, I made various attempts at a peaceful settlement, first by sending
envoys and then by personal interviews with the leaders. It was only when I found that no reverence for the
persons of my envoys protected them from violence and that I was unable to get any reply from the leaders
with whom I conferred at their gates, that I took action and finally took the city by storm, after a vast
expenditure of toil and exertion by sea and land. As to the incidents attending its capture, these men would be
more justified in laying their complaints before Hannibal and his vanquished Carthaginians than before the
senate of the people who vanquished them. If, senators, I had intended to conceal my spoliation of Syracuse I
should never have adorned the City of Rome with its spoils. With regard to what I, as conqueror, took away
or bestowed in individual cases, I am quite satisfied that I acted in accordance with the laws of war, according
to the deserts of each individual. Whether you approve of my action or not is a question that concerns the
State more than it concerns me. I only did my duty, but it will be a serious matter for the republic, if by
rescinding my acts you make other generals in the future more remiss in doing their duty. And since you have
heard what both the Sicilians and I have had to say in each other's presence, we will leave the House together
in order that the senate may be able to discuss the matter more freely in my absence." The Sicilians were
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 20
Page No 23
accordingly dismissed; Marcellus proceeded to the Capitol to enrol troops.
The other consul, Laevinus, then consulted the senate as to what reply was to be given to the petition of the
Sicilians. There was a long debate and great divergence of opinion. Many of those present supported the view
expressed by T. Manlius Torquatus. They were of opinion that hostilities ought to have been directed against
the tyrants, who were the common enemies of Syracuse and of Rome. The city ought to have been allowed to
surrender, not taken by storm, and when surrendered it ought to have had its own laws and liberties
guaranteed to it, instead of being ruined by war after it had been worn out by a deplorable servitude under its
tyrants. The struggle between the tyrants and the Roman general in which Syracuse was the prize of victory
had resulted in the utter destruction of a most famous and beautiful city, the granary and treasury of the
Roman people. The commonwealth had frequently experienced its generosity, especially in the present Punic
war, and the City had been embellished by its munificent gifts. If Hiero, that loyal supporter of the power of
Rome, could rise from the dead, with what face would any one dare to show him either Rome or Syracuse? In
the onehis own cityhe would see universal spoliation and a large part of it burnt, and as he approached the
other he would see just outside its walls, almost within its gates, the spoils of his country. This was the line of
argument urged by those who sought to create a feeling against the consul and evoke sympathy for the
Sicilians. The majority, however, did not take such an unfavourable view of his conduct, and a decree was
passed confirming the acts of Marcellus both during the war and after his victory, and declaring that the
senate would for the future make the interests of the Syracusans their charge and would instruct Laevinus to
safeguard the property of the citizens so far as he could without inflicting any loss on the State. Two senators
were sent to the Capitol to request the consul to come back, and after the Sicilians had again been brought in,
the decree was read to them. Some kind words were addressed to the envoys and they were dismissed. Before
they left the House they flung themselves on their knees before Marcellus and implored him to forgive them
for what they had said in their anxiety to gain sympathy and relief in their distress. They also begged him to
take them and their city under his protection, and look upon them as his clients. The consul promised that he
would do so, and after a few gracious words dismissed them.
The Capuans were then admitted to an audience. Their case was a harder one, and their appeal for mercy was
all the stronger. They could not deny that they deserved punishment, and there were no tyrants on whom they
could throw the blame, but they considered that they had paid an adequate penalty after so many of their
senators had been carried off by poison, and so many had died under the axe. Some of their nobles, they said,
were still living, who had not been driven by the consciousness of guilt into doing away with themselves, nor
had the victor in his wrath condemned them to death. These men begged that they and their families might be
set at liberty, and some portion of their goods restored to them. They were for the most part Roman citizens,
connected with Roman families by intermarriage. After the envoys had withdrawn, there was some doubt as
to whether they ought to summon Q. Fulvius from Capuathe consul Claudius had died soon after its
capturein order that the matter might be debated in the presence of the general whose proceedings were
being called in question. This had just been done in the case of Marcellus and the Sicilians. When, however,
some senators were seen sitting in the House who had been through the whole of the siegeM. Atilius
Regulus and Caius the brother of Flaccus, both on his staff, and Q. Minucius and L. Veturius Philo, who had
been members of Claudius' staffthey would not have Q. Fulvius recalled, nor the hearing of the Capuans
adjourned. Amongst those who had been at Capua, the man whose opinion carried most weight was M.
Atilius, and he was asked what course he would advise. He replied: "I believe I was present at the military
council which met after the fall of Capua, when the consuls made enquiry as to which of the Capuans had
assisted our republic. They discovered only two, and those were women. One was Vestia Oppia of Atella,
who was living in Capua and who offered sacrifices daily for the welfare and triumph of Rome; the other was
Cluvia Pacula, at one time a woman of loose character, who secretly supplied the starving prisoners with
food. The rest of the Capuans were just as hostile to us as the Carthaginians themselves, and those whom Q.
Fulvius executed were selected rather on account of their higher rank than of their greater guilt. I do not quite
see how the senate is competent to deal with the Capuans, who are Roman citizens, without an order of the
people. After the revolt of the Satricans, the course adopted by our ancestors was for a tribune of the plebs,
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 21
Page No 24
M. Antistius, to bring the matter first before the Assembly, and a resolution was passed empowering the
senate to decide what should be done to them. I therefore advise that we arrange with the tribunes of the plebs
for one or more of them to propose a resolution to that body empowering us to settle the fate o f the
Capuans." L. Atilius, tribune of the plebs, was authorised by the senate to put the question in the following
terms: "Whereas the inhabitants of Capua, Atella and Calatia, and also the dwellers in the valley of the
Sabatus have yielded themselves to the proconsul Fulvius to be at the arbitrament and disposal of the people
of Rome, and whereas they have surrendered divers persons together with themselves, as also their land and
city with all things therein, sacred and profane, together with their goods and chattels and whatsoever else
they had in possession, I demand of you Quirites to know what it is your will and pleasure shall be done in
regard of all these persons and things?" The resolution of the Assembly ran thus: "What the senate, or the
greater part of those who are present, shall, on oath, decree and determine, that we will and order shall be
done."
The plebs having thus resolved, the senate made the following orders: First they restored their liberty and
property to Oppia and Cluvia; if they wished to ask the senate for a further reward, they were to come to
Rome. Separate decrees were made in the case of each of the Capuan families; it is not worth while giving a
complete enumeration. Some were to have their property confiscated, they themselves with their wives and
children were to be sold, with the exception of those of their daughters who had married outside the territory
before they passed under the power of Rome. Others were to be thrown into chains, and their fate settled
afterwards. In the case of the rest, the question whether their property should be confiscated or not depended
upon the amount at which they were assessed. Where property was restored it was to include all the captured
live stock except the horses, all the slaves except the adult males, and everything which was not attached to
the soil. It was further decreed that the populations of Capua, Atella, Calatia and the valley of the Sabatus
should all retain their liberty, except those who themselves, or whose parents had been with the enemy, but
none of them could become a Roman citizen or a member of the Latin League. None of those who had been
in Capua during the siege could remain in the city or its neighbourhood beyond a certain date; a place of
residence was assigned to them beyond the Tiber at some distance from it. Those who had not been in Capua
during the war, nor in any revolted Campanian city, were to be settled to the north of the Liris in the direction
of Rome; those who had gone over to the side of Rome before Hannibal came to Capua were to be removed
to this side of the Volturnus, and no one was to possess any land or building within fifteen miles of the sea.
Those who had been deported beyond the Tiber were forbidden to acquire or to hold either for themselves or
their posterity landed property anywhere except in the territories of Veii, Sutrium and Nepete, and in no case
was such holding to exceed fifty jugera. The property of all the senators and of all who had held any
magistracy in Capua, Atella and Calatia was ordered to be sold in Capua, and those persons whom it had been
decided to sell into slavery were sent to Rome and sold there. The disposal of the images and bronze statues
which were alleged to have been taken from the enemy, and the question which of them were sacred and
which profane, were referred to the Pontifical College. After hearing these decrees. the Capuans were
dismissed in a much more sorrowful state of mind than that in which they had come. It was no longer Q.
Fulvius' cruelty to them, but the injustice of the gods and their accursed fate that they denounced.
After the departure of the Sicilian and Capuan envoys, the enrolment of the new legions was completed. Then
came the question of providing the fleet with its proper complement of rowers. There was not a sufficient
number of men available, nor was there any money at the time in the treasury with which to procure them or
to pay them. In view of this state of things the consuls issued an order requiring private individuals to furnish
seamen in proportion to their income and their rank, as they had done on a previous occasion, and also to
supply them with thirty days' provision and pay. This order excited such a widespread feeling of indignation
and resentment that if the people had had a leader they would have risen in insurrection. The consuls, they
said, after ruining the Sicilians and Capuans, had seized upon the Roman plebs as their next victim to mangle
and destroy. "After being drained by the wartax," they complained, "for so many years, we have nothing left
but the bare and wasted soil. Our houses have been burnt by the enemy, our slaves who tilled our fields have
been appropriated by the State, first buying them for a few coppers to make soldiers of them, and now
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 22
Page No 25
requisitioning them for seamen. Whatever silver or gold we had has been taken to pay the rowers and furnish
the annual wartax. No resort to force, no exercise of authority can compel us to give what we do not
possess. Let the consuls sell our goods, then let them glut their rage on our bodies which are all we have left;
nothing remains with which we can even ransom ourselves." Language of this kind was used not only in
private conversation, but openly in the Forum, before the very eyes of the consuls. A vast crowd had gathered
round the tribunal, uttering angry cries, and the consuls were powerless to allay the agitation either by fair
speeches or by threats. Ultimately they announced that they would give them three days to think the matter
over, and they themselves devoted that time to seeing whether they could not find some way out of the
difficulty. The next day they called the senate together to consider the matter, and many arguments were
advanced to prove that the plebs were acting fairly and reasonably in their protest. At last the discussion came
round to this point, that whether fair or unfair the burden must fall on the individual citizens. From what
source, it was asked, could they procure seamen and sailors, when there was no money in the treasury, and
how could they keep their hold on Sicily, or render the shores of Italy safe against any attempt by Philip, if
they had no fleet?
As there seemed to be no solution of the difficulty and a kind of mental torpor appeared to beset the senate,
the consul Laevinus came to the rescue. "As the magistrates," he said, "take precedence of the senate and the
senate of the people in honour and dignity; so they ought to lead the way in discharging unpleasant and
difficult tasks. If, in laying any obligation on an inferior, you have first decided that it is binding on you and
those connected with you, you will find that all are more ready to obey you. They do not feel an expense to
be burdensome when they see each of their leaders bearing more than his due share of it. We want the Roman
people to have fleets and to equip them, we want each citizen to furnish rowers and not to shirk his duty; then
let us impose the burden on ourselves first of all. Let us, every one of us, bring our gold and silver and bronze
money, tomorrow, to the treasury, only reserving the rings for ourselves, our wives and our children, and the
bullae for our boys. Those who have wives and daughters may keep an ounce of gold for each of them. With
regard to silver, those who have occupied curule chairs should keep the plating on their horsetrappings and
two pounds of silver that they may have a dish and saltcellar for the gods. All the other senators should keep
only one pound of silver. In the case of bronze coin let us retain 5000 ases for each household. All the rest of
our gold and silver and money let us place in the hands of the commissioners of the treasury. No formal
resolution should be passed; our contributions must be strictly voluntary; and our mutual rivalry to assist the
commonwealth may stir up the equestrian order to emulate us, and after them, the plebs. This is the only
course which we consuls have been able to devise after our lengthy discussion, and we beg you to adopt it
with the help of the gods. As long as the commonwealth is safe, each man's property is safe under its
protection, but if you desert it, it will be in vain that you try to keep what you have." These suggestions were
so favourably received that the consuls were even thanked for them. No sooner did the senate adjourn, than
they each brought their gold and silver and bronze to the treasury, and they were so eager to be among the
first to have their names inscribed in the public register that the commissioners were not able to take over the
amounts or the clerks to enter them fast enough. The equestrian order showed quite as much zeal as the
senate, and the plebs were not behind the equestrian order. In this way, without any formal order or
compulsion by the magistrates, the full complement of rowers was made up, and the State put in a position to
pay them. As the preparations for war were now complete the consuls started for their respective provinces.
At no period of the war were the Carthaginians and the Romans alike subjected to greater vicissitudes of
fortune, or to more rapid alternations of hope and fear. In the provinces, the disasters in Spain on the one
hand and the successes in Sicily on the other filled the Romans with mingled feelings of sorrow and joy. In
Italy the loss of Tarentum was felt to be a grievous blow, but the unexpected stand by the garrison in the
citadel made all hearts glad, and the sudden panic at the prospect of Rome being besieged and stormed gave
way to universal rejoicings when Capua was taken a few days later. In the campaign overseas a kind of
balance was struck. Philip began hostilities at an inopportune moment for Rome, but in the new alliance with
the Aetolians and Attalus, king of Pergamum, it seemed as though Fortune were giving a pledge of Rome's
dominion in the East. The Carthaginians, again, felt that the capture of Tarentum was a setoff against the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 23
Page No 26
loss of Capua, and though they prided themselves on having marched unopposed up to the walls of Rome
they were mortified at the futility of their enterprise, and humiliated by the contempt shown for them when a
Roman army marched out on its way to Spain whilst they were actually lying under the very walls. Even in
Spain itself, where the destruction of two great generals with their armies had raised their hopes of finally
expelling the Romans and finishing the war, the higher their hopes had been, the greater the disgust they felt
at their victory being robbed of all its importance by L. Marcius, who was not even a regular general. So
whilst Fortune was holding the scales evenly and everything was in suspense, both sides felt the same hopes
and fears as though the war were only just beginning.
Hannibal's principal cause of anxiety was the effect produced by the fall of Capua. It was generally felt that
the Romans had shown greater determination in attacking than he had in defending the place, and this
alienated many of the Italian communities from him. He could not occupy them all with garrisons unless he
was prepared to weaken his army by detaching numerous small units from it; a course at that time highly
inexpedient. On the other hand he did not dare to withdraw any of his garrisons and so leave the loyalty of his
allies to depend upon their hopes and fears. His temperament, prone as it was to rapacity and cruelty, led him
to plunder the places which he was unable to defend, in order that they might be left to the enemy waste and
barren. This evil policy had evil results for him, for it aroused horror and loathing not only amongst the actual
sufferers but amongst all who heard of them. The Roman consul was not slow in sounding the feelings of
those cities where any hope of recovering them had shown itself. Amongst these was the city of Salapia. Two
of its most prominent citizens were Dasius and Blattius. Dasius was friendly to Hannibal; Blattius favoured
the interests of Rome as far as he safely could, and had sent secret messages to Marcellus holding out hopes
that the city might be surrendered. But the thing could not be carried through without the help of Dasius. For
a long time he hesitated, but at last he addressed himself to Dasius, not so much in the hope of success as
because no better plan presented itself. Dasius was opposed to the project, and by way of injuring his political
rival disclosed the affair to Hannibal. Hannibal summoned them both before his tribunal. When they
appeared, he was occupied with business, intending to go into their case as soon as he was at liberty, and the
two men, accuser and accused, stood waiting, apart from the crowd. Whilst thus waiting Blattius approached
Dasius on the subject of the surrender. At this open and barefaced conduct, Dasius called out that the
surrender of the city was being mooted under the very eyes of Hannibal. Hannibal and those round him felt
that the very audacity of the thing made the charge improbable, and regarded it as due to spite and jealousy,
since it was easy to invent such an accusation in the absence of witnesses. They were accordingly dismissed.
Blattius, however, did not desist from his venturesome project. He was perpetually urging the matter and
showing what a beneficial thing it would be for them both and for their city. At last he succeeded in effecting
the surrender of the city with its garrison of 5000 Numidians. But the surrender could only be effected with a
heavy loss of life. The garrison were by far the finest cavalry in the Carthaginian army, and although they
were taken by surprise and could make no use of their horses in the city, they seized their arms in the
confusion and attempted to cut their way out. When they found escape impossible they fought to the last man.
Not more than fifty fell into the hands of the enemy alive. The loss of this troop of horse was a heavier blow
to Hannibal than the loss of Salapia; never from that time was the Carthaginian superior in cavalry, hitherto
by far his most efficient arm.
During this period the privations of the Roman garrison in the citadel of Tarentum had become almost
insupportable; the men and their commandant M. Livius placed all their hopes in the arrival of supplies sent
from Sicily. To secure a safe passage for these along the coast of Italy, a squadron of about twenty vessels
was stationed at Regium. The fleet and the transports were under the command of D. Quinctius. He was a
man of humble birth, but his many deeds of gallantry had gained him a high military reputation. He had only
five ships to begin with, the largest of thesetwo triremeshad been assigned to him by Marcellus;
subsequently, owing to the effective use he made of these, three quinqueremes were added to his command,
and at last, by compelling the allied cities, Regium, Velliea and Paestum to furnish the ships which they were
bound by treaty to supply, he made up the abovementioned squadron of twenty vessels. As this fleet was
setting out from Regium, and was opposite Sapriportis, a place about fifteen miles from Tarentum, it fell in
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 24
Page No 27
with a Tarentine fleet, also of twenty ships, under the command of Democrates. The Roman commander, not
anticipating a fight, had all sail set; he had, however, got together his full complement of rowers while he was
in the neighbourhood of Croton and Sybaris, and his fleet was excellently equipped and manned, considering
the size of the vessels. It so happened that the wind completely died down just as the enemy came into sight,
and there was ample time to lower the sails and get the rowers and soldiers into readiness for the approaching
conflict. Seldom have two regular fleets gone into action with such determination as these small flotillas, for
they were fighting for larger issues than their own success. The Tarentines hoped that as they had already
recovered their city from the Romans after the lapse of nearly a century, so they might now rescue their
citadel, by cutting off the enemy's supplies after they had deprived them of the mastery of the sea. The
Romans were eager to show, by retaining their hold on the citadel, that Tarentum had not been lost in fair
fight. but by a foul and treacherous stroke. So, when the signal was given on each side, they rowed with their
prows straight at each other; there was no backing or maneuvering, nor did they let go of any ship when once
they had grappled and boarded. They fought at such close quarters that they not only discharged missiles, but
even used their swords in handtohand fighting. The prows were locked together and remained so while the
hinder part of the vessel was pushed about by the oars of hostile ships. The vessels were so crowded together
that hardly any missile failed to reach its aim or fell into the water. They pressed forward front to front like a
line of infantry, and the combatants made their way from ship to ship. Conspicuous amongst all was the fight
between the two ships which had led their respective lines and were the first to engage.
Quinctius himself was in the Roman ship, and in the Tarentine vessel was a man named Nico Perco, who
hated the Romans for private as well as public grounds, and who was equally hated by them, for he was one
of the party who betrayed Tarentum to Hannibal. Whilst Quinctius was fighting and encouraging his men,
Nico took him unawares and ran him through with his spear. He fell headlong over the prow, and the
victorious Tarentine springing on to the ship dislodged the enemy, who were thrown into confusion by the
loss of their leader. The foreship was now in the hands of the Tarentines, and the Romans in a compact body
were with difficulty defending the hinder part of the vessel, when another of the hostile triremes suddenly
appeared astern. Between the two the Roman ship was captured. The sight of the admiral's ship in the
enemy's hands created a panic, and the remainder of the fleet fled in all directions; some were sunk, others
were hurriedly rowed to land and were seized by the people of Thurium and Metapontum. Very few of the
transports which were following with supplies fell into the enemy's hands; the rest, shifting their sails to meet
the changing winds, were carried out to sea. An affair took place at Tarentum during this time which led to a
very different result. A foraging force of 4000 Tarentines were dispersed through the fields, and Livius, the
Roman commandant, who was always looking out for a chance of striking a blow, sent C. Persius, an able
and energetic officer, with 2500 men from the citadel to attack them. He fell upon them while they were
dispersed in scattered groups all through the fields, and after inflicting great and widespread slaughter, drove
the few who escaped in headlong flight through their halfopened gates into the town. So matters were
equalised as far as Tarentum was concerned; the Romans were victorious by land, and the Tarentines by sea.
Both were alike disappointed in their hopes of obtaining the corn which had been within their view.
Laevinus' arrival in Sicily had been looked forward to by all the friendly cities, both those who had been old
allies of Rome, and those who had recently joined her. His first and most important task was the settlement of
the affairs of Syracuse, which, as peace had only quite recently been established, were still in confusion.
When he had accomplished this task he marched to Agrigentum, where the embers of war were still
smouldering, and a Carthaginian garrison still in occupation. Fortune favoured his enterprise. Hanno was in
command, but the Carthaginians placed their chief reliance on Muttines and his Numidians. He was scouring
the island from end to end and carrying off plunder from the friends of Rome; neither force nor stratagem
could keep him from entering Agrigentum and leaving it on his raids whenever he chose. His reputation as a
dashing officer was beginning to eclipse that of the commandant himself, and at last created so much jealousy
that even the successes he gained were unwelcome to Hanno, because of the man who gained them. It ended
in his giving the command of the cavalry to his own son in the hope that by depriving Muttines of his post he
would also destroy his influence with the Numidians. It had just the opposite effect, for the illfeeling created
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 25
Page No 28
only made Muttines more popular, and he showed his resentment at the injustice done to him by at once
entering into secret negotiations with Laevinus for the surrender of the city. When his emissaries had come to
an understanding with the consul and arranged the plan of operations, the Numidians seized the gate leading
to the sea after driving off or massacring the men on guard, and admitted a Roman force which was in
readiness into the city. As they were marching in serried ranks into the forum and the heart of the city, amidst
great confusion, Hanno, thinking it was only a riotous disturbance caused by the Numidians, such as had
often happened before, went to allay the tumult. When, however, he saw in the distance a larger body of
troops than the Numidians amounted to, and when the wellknown battle shout of the Romans reached his
ears, he at once took to flight before a missile could reach him. Escaping with Epicydes through a gate on the
other side of the city, and attended by a small escort, he reached the shore. Here they were fortunate enough
to find a small ship, in which they sailed across to Africa, abandoning Sicily, for which they had fought
through so many years, to their victorious enemy. The mixed population of Sicilians and Carthaginians whom
they had left behind, made no attempt at resistance, but rushed away in wild flight, and, as the exits were all
closed, they were slaughtered round the gates. When he had gained possession of the place, Laevinus ordered
the men who had been at the head of affairs in Agrigentum to be scourged and beheaded; the rest of the
population he sold with the plunder, and sent all the money to Rome.
When the fate of the Agrigentines became generally known throughout Sicily, all the cities at once declared
for Rome. In a short time twenty towns were clandestinely surrendered and six taken by storm, and as many
as forty voluntarily surrendered on terms. The consul meted out rewards and punishments to the chief men in
these cities, according to each man's deserts, and now that the Sicilians had at last laid arms aside he obliged
them to turn their attention to agriculture. That fertile island was not only capable of supporting its own
population, but had on many occasions relieved the scarcity in Rome, and the consul intended that it should
do so again if necessary. Agathyrna had become the seat of a motley population, numbering some 4000 men,
made up of all sorts of charactersrefugees, insolvent debtorsmost of them had committed capital offences
at the time when they were living in their own cities and under their own laws and afterwards when similarity
of fortunes arising from various causes had drawn them together at Agathyrna. Laevinus did not think it safe
to leave these men behind in the island, as a material for fresh disturbances, whilst things were settling down
under the newly established peace. The Regians too would find a body so experienced in brigandage as they
were, very useful; accordingly Laevinus transported them all to Italy. As far as Sicily was concerned, the
state of war was put an end to this year.
At the commencement of spring P. Scipio issued orders for the allied contingents to muster at Tarraco. He
then launched his ships and led the fleet and transports to the mouth of the Ebro, where he had also ordered
the legions to concentrate from their winter quarters. He then left Tarraco, with an allied contingent of 5000
men for the army. On his arrival he felt that he ought to address some words of encouragement to his men,
especially to the veterans who had gone through such terrible disasters. He accordingly ordered a parade and
addressed the troops in the following words: "No commander before my time, who was new to his troops, has
been in a position to express welldeserved thanks to his men before he made use of their services. Fortune
laid me under obligations to you before I saw my province or my camp, first because of the devoted affection
you showed towards my father and my uncle during their lifetime and after their death, and then again,
because of the courage with which you kept your hold on the province when it was apparently lost after their
terrible defeat, and so retained it unimpaired for Rome and for me their successor. It must be our aim and
object now with the help of heaven not so much to maintain our own footing in Spain as to prevent the
Carthaginians from maintaining theirs. We must not remain stationary here, defending the bank of the Ebro
against the enemy's passage of the river; we must cross over ourselves and shift the seat of war. To some of
you at least, I fear that this plan may seem too large and bold when you remember the defeats we have lately
sustained, and when you think of my youth. No man is less likely to forget those fatal battles in Spain than I
am, for my father and my uncle were killed within thirty days of each other, so that my family was visited by
one death upon another.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 26
Page No 29
"But though I am almost heartbroken at the orphanhood and desolation of our house, the good fortune and
courage of our race forbid me to despair of the State. It has been our lot and destiny to conquer in all great
wars only after we have been defeated. Not to mention the earlier warsPorsena and the Gauls and the
SamnitesI will take these two Punic wars. How many fleets and generals and armies were lost in the first
war! And what about this war? In all our defeats I was either present in person, or where I was not, I felt them
more keenly than any one. The Trebia, Lake Thrasymenus, Cannaewhat are they but records of Roman
consuls and their armies cut to pieces? Add to these the defection of Italy, of the greatest part of Sicily, of
Sardinia, and then the crowning terror and panicthe Carthaginian camp pitched between the Anio and the
walls of Rome, and the sight of the victorious Hannibal almost within our gates. In the midst of this utter
collapse one thing stood unshaken and unimpaired, the courage of the Roman people; it and it alone raised up
and sustained all that lay prostrate in the dust. You, my soldiers, under the conduct and auspices of my father
were the first to retrieve the defeat of Cannae by barring the way to Hasdrubal when he was marching to the
Alps and Italy. Had he joined forces with his brother the name of Rome would have perished; this success of
yours held us up under those defeats. Now, by the goodness of heaven, everything is going in our favour; the
situation in Italy and Sicily is becoming better and more hopeful day by day. In Sicily, Syracuse and
Agrigentum have been captured, the enemy has been everywhere expelled and the whole of the island
acknowledges the sovereignty of Rome. In Italy, Arpi has been recovered and Capua taken, Hannibal in his
hurried flight has traversed the whole breadth of Italy from Rome to the furthest corners of Bruttium, and his
one prayer is that he may be allowed to make a safe retreat and get away from the land of his enemies. At a
time when one defeat followed close on the heels of another, and heaven itself seemed to be fighting on
Hannibal's side, you, my soldiers, together with my two parentslet me honour them both with the same
appellationupheld in this country the tottering fortunes of Rome. What then can be more foolish than for
you to fail in courage now when all is going on prosperously and happily there? As to recent events, I could
wish that they had caused as little pain to me as to you.
"The immortal gods who watch over the fortunes of the dominions of Rome, and who moved the electors in
their centuries to insist with one voice upon the supreme command being given to methe gods, I say, are
assuring us through auguries and auspices and even through visions of the night that all will go successfully
and happily with us. My own heart too, hitherto my truest prophet, presages that Spain will be ours and that
ere long all who bear the name of Carthage will be driven away from this soil and will cover sea and land in
their shameful flight. What my breast thus divines is confirmed by solid reasoning from facts. Owing to the
maltreatment they have received their allies are sending envoys to us to appeal for protection. Their three
generals are at variance, almost in active opposition to each other, and after breaking up their army into three
separate divisions have marched away into different parts of the country. The same misfortune has overtaken
them which was so disastrous to us, they are being deserted by their allies as we were by the Celtiberians, and
the army which proved so fatal to my father and my uncle they have split up into separate bodies. Their
domestic quarrel will not let them act in unison, and now that they are divided they will not be able to
withstand us. Welcome, soldiers, the omen of the name I bear, be loyal to a Scipio who is the offspring of
your late commander, the scion of a stock which has been cut down. Come on then, my veterans, and lead a
new army and a new commander across the Ebro into the lands which you have so often traversed and where
you have given so many proofs of your prowess and your courage. You recognise a likeness to my father and
my uncle in figure, face, and expression, I will soon show you that I am like them also in character and
fidelity and courage, so that each of you may say that the Scipio who was his old commander has either come
to life again or reappeared in his son."
After kindling the spirits of his men by this speech, he crossed the Ebro with 25,000 infantry and 2500
cavalry, leaving M. Silanus in charge of the country north of the Ebro with 3000 infantry and 300 cavalry. As
the Carthaginian armies had all taken different routes, some of his staff urged him to attack the one which
was nearest, but he thought that if he did that there would be a danger of their all concentrating against him,
and he would be no match for the three together. He decided to begin with an attack on New Carthage, a city
not only rich in its own resources, but also with the enemy's warstores, their arms, their warchest and
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 27
Page No 30
hostages drawn from every part of Spain. It possessed an additional advantage in its situation, as it afforded a
convenient base for the invasion of Africa, and commanded a harbour capable of holding any fleet however
large, and, as far as I know, the only one of the kind on that part of the coast which abuts on our sea. No one
knew of his intended march except C. Laelius, who was sent round with his fleet and instructed to regulate
the pace of his vessels so that he might enter the harbour at the same time that the army showed itself. Seven
days after leaving the Ebro, the land and sea forces reached New Carthage simultaneously. The Roman camp
was fixed opposite the north side of the city, and to guard against attacks from the rear was strengthened by a
double rampart; the front was protected by the nature of the ground. The following is the situation of New
Carthage. There is a bay about halfway down the coast of Spain, opening to the southwest and stretching
inland about twoandahalf miles. A small island at the mouth of the harbour forms a breakwater and
shelters it from all winds, except those from the southwest. From the innermost part of the bay stretches a
promontory on the slopes of which the city stands, surrounded on the east; and south by the sea. On the west
it is enclosed by a shallow sheet of water which extends northward and varies in depth with the rise and fall
of the tide. A neck of land about a quarter of a mile in length connects the city with the mainland. The Roman
commander did not throw an earthwork across this isthmus, though it would have cost him very little trouble
to do so; whether it was that he wished to impress the enemy with his confidence in his strength, or because
he wished to have an unimpeded retirement in his frequent advances against the city.
When the necessary intrenchments were completed he drew up the vessels in the harbour as though he were
going to blockade the place by sea. Then he was rowed round the fleet and warned the captains to be careful
in keeping a lookout by night, as an enemy when first besieged makes counterattacks in all directions. On
his return to camp he explained to his soldiers his plan of operations and his reasons for beginning the
campaign with an attack upon a solitary city in preference to anything else. After they were mustered on
parade he made the following speech to them: "Soldiers, if any one supposes that you have been brought here
for the sole purpose of attacking this city, he is making more account of the work before you than of the
advantage you will reap from it. You are going, it is true, to attack the walls of a single city, but in the capture
of this one city you will have secured the whole of Spain. Here are the hostages taken from all the nobles and
kings and tribes, and when once these are in your power, everything which the Carthaginians now hold will
be given up to you. Here is the enemy's warchest, without which they cannot keep up the war, seeing that
they have to pay their mercenaries, and the money will be of the utmost service to us in gaining over the
barbarians. Here are their artillery, their armoury, the whole of their engines of war, which will at once
provide you with all you want, and leave the enemy destitute of all he needs. And what is more, we shall
become masters, not only of a most wealthy and beautiful city, but also of a most commodious harbour, from
which all that is requisite for the purposes of war, both by sea and land, will be supplied. Great as our gains
will be, the deprivations which the enemy suffers will be still greater. Here is their stronghold, their granary,
their treasure, their arsenaleverything is stored here. Here is their direct route from Africa. This is their only
naval base between the Pyrenees and Gades; from this Africa threatens the whole of Spain. But I see that you
are all perfectly ready; let us pass over to the assault on New Carthage, with our full strength and a courage
that knows no fear." The men all shouted with one voice, that they would carry out his orders, and he
marched them up to the city. Then he ordered a general attack to be made by the army and the fleet.
When Mago, the Carthaginian commander, saw that an attack was being prepared both by land and sea, he
made the following disposition of his forces. Two thousand townsmen were posted in the direction of the
Roman camp; the citadel was occupied by 500 soldiers; 500 more were stationed in the higher part of the
city, towards the east. The rest of the townsmen were ordered to be in readiness to meet any sudden
emergency and to hasten in whatever direction the shouting of the enemy might summon them. Then the gate
was thrown open and those who had been drawn up in the street leading to their enemy's camp were sent
forward. The Romans, at the direction of their general, retired a short distance in order to be nearer to the
supports which were to be sent up. At first the lines stood confronting each other in equal strength; but as the
successive reinforcements came up they not only turned the enemy to flight, but pressed upon them so closely
as they fled in disorder that if the "retire" had not sounded they would in all probability have burst into the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 28
Page No 31
city pellmell with the fugitives. The confusion and terror of the battlefield spread right through the city;
many of the pickets fled from their stations panicstruck; the defenders of the walls leaped down the shortest
way they could and deserted the fortifications. Scipio had taken his stand on an eminence which they called
Mercury's Hill, and from here he became aware that the walls were in many places without defenders. He at
once called out the whole force in the camp to the attack, and ordered the scaling ladders to be brought up.
Covered by the shields of three powerful young menfor missiles of every description were flying from the
battlementshe went up close to the walls, encouraging his men, giving the necessary orders, and, what did
most to stimulate their efforts, observing with his own eyes each man's courage or cowardice. So they rushed
on, regardless of missiles and wounds, and neither the walls nor the men upon them could prevent them from
striving who should be the first to mount. At the same time the ships commenced an attack upon that part of
the city which faced the sea. Here, however, there was too much noise and confusion to admit of a regular
assault, for what with bringing up the vessels and hauling out the scaling ladders, and clambering ashore as
quickly as they could, the men only got in one another's way through their hurry and eagerness.
Whilst this was going on the Carthaginian general had manned the walls with his regular soldiers, and they
were amply supplied with missiles, great heaps of which had been stored in readiness. But neither the men,
nor their missiles, nor anything else proved such a sure defence as the walls themselves. Very few of the
ladders were long enough to reach to the top of the wall, and the longer the ladders the weaker they were. The
consequence was that whilst each man who reached the top was unable to get on to the wall, the others who
came up behind him were unable to advance and the ladder was broken by the mere weight of men. Some
who were on ladders which stood the strain grew dizzy from the height and fell to the ground. As men and
ladders were crashing down in all directions and the spirits and courage of the enemy were rising with their
success, the signal was sounded for retiring. This led the besieged to hope that they would not only gain a
respite from their hard and wearisome struggle for the time being, but would also be safe for the future, as
they believed that the city could not be taken by escalade and storm, whilst the construction of siege works
would be a difficult matter and would allow time for succours to be sent. The noise and tumult of this first
attempt had hardly subsided when Scipio ordered fresh troops to take the ladders from those who were
exhausted and wounded and make a more determined attack upon the city. He had ascertained from the
fishermen of Tarraco, who were in the habit of crossing these waters in light skiffs and when these ran
aground of wading ashore through the shallows, that it was easy at low water to approach the walls on foot. It
was now reported to him that the tide was on the ebb; and he at once took about 500 men with him and
marched down to the water. It was about midday, and not only was the falling tide drawing the water
seaward, but a strong northerly wind which had sprung up was driving it in the same direction, and the lagoon
had become so shallow that in some places it was waistdeep and in others only reached to the knee. This
state of things, which Scipio had ascertained by careful investigation and reasoning, he ascribed to the direct
intervention of the gods, who he said were turning the sea into a highway for the Romans, and by
withdrawing its waters were opening up a path which had never before been trodden by mortal feet. He bade
his men follow the guidance of Neptune and make their way through the middle of the lagoon up to the walls.
Those who were making the attack on the land side were in very great difficulties. Not only were they baffled
by the height of the walls, but as they approached them they were open to showers of missiles on both hands,
so that their sides were more exposed than their front. In the other direction, however, the 500 found their
passage through the lake and their ascent from there to the foot of the walls an easy matter. No fortifications
had been constructed on this side, as it was considered to be sufficiently protected by the lake and by the
nature of the ground, nor were there any outposts or pickets on guard against any attack, as all were intent on
rendering assistance where danger was actually visible. They entered the city without meeting any
opposition, and at once marched full speed to the gate round which all the fighting had gathered. All had their
attention absorbed in the struggle; even the eyes and ears of the combatants, as of those who were watching
and cheering them on, were so riveted on the fighting that not a single man was aware that the city behind
him was captured until the missiles began to fall upon them from the rear. Now that they had the enemy in
front and rear they gave up the defence, the walls were seized, the gate was battered from both sides, smashed
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 29
Page No 32
to pieces, and carried out of the way to allow a free passage to the troops. A large number surmounted the
walls and inflicted heavy slaughter on the townsmen, but those who entered through the gate marched in
unbroken ranks through the heart of the city into the forum. From this point Scipio saw the enemy retreating
in two directions; one body was making for a hill to the east of the city, which was being held by a
detachment of 500 men; the others were going to the citadel where Mago, together with the men who had
been driven from the walls, had taken refuge. Sending a force to storm the hill, he led the rest of his troops
against the citadel. The hill was taken at the first charge, and Mago, seeing that the whole of the city was in
occupation of the enemy, and that his own position was hopeless, surrendered the citadel and its defenders.
Until the citadel was surrendered the carnage went on everywhere throughout the city, no adult male who was
met with was spared, but on its surrender the signal was given and an end put to the slaughter. The victors
then turned their attention to the plunder, of which there was a vast amount of every kind.
As many as 10,000 freemen were made prisoners. Those who were citizens were set free and Scipio gave
them back their city and all the property which the war had left them. There were some 2000 artisans; these
Scipio allotted to the public service, and held out to them hopes of recovering their liberty if they did their
best in the tasks which the war demanded. The rest of the ablebodied population and the sturdiest of the
slaves he assigned to the fleet to make up the complement of rowers. He also augmented his fleet by five
vessels which he had seized. Besides all this population there were the Spanish hostages; these he treated
with as much consideration as though they had been children of the allies of Rome. An enormous amount of
munitions of war was also secured; 120 catapults of the largest size and 281 smaller ones, 23 of the heavier
ballistae and 52 lighter ones, together with an immense number of scorpions of various calibre, as well as
missiles and other arms. 73 military standards were also captured. A vast quantity of gold and silver was
brought to the general, including 287 golden bowls, almost all of which were at least a pound in weight,
18,300 pounds of silver plate and coinage, the former comprising a large number of vessels. This was all
weighed and counted and then made over to the quaestor C. Flaminius, as were also 10,000 bushels of wheat
and 270 pecks of barley. In the harbour 63 transports were captured, some of them with their cargoes of corn
and arms, as well as bronze, iron, sails, esparto grass, and other articles required for the fleet. Amidst such an
enormous supply of military and naval stores, the actual city itself was regarded as the least important capture
of all.
Leaving C. Laelius with the marines in charge of the city, Scipio led his legions the same day back into camp.
They were wellnigh worn out; they had fought in the open field, had undergone much toil and danger in the
capture of the city, and after capturing it had sustained a conflict on unfavourable ground with those who had
taken refuge in the citadel. So he gave them one day's respite from all military duties and ordered them to
seek refreshment and rest. The next day he issued orders for all the soldiers and marines to appear on parade
that he might address them. First he offered up a thanksgiving to the immortal gods because they had not only
made him master in a single day of the wealthiest city in all Spain, but had also brought together beforehand
into the place all the resources of Africa and Spain, so that whilst nothing was left to the enemy he and his
men had a superabundance of everything. Then he praised the courage of his troops, whom, he said, nothing
had daunted, neither the sortie of the enemy, nor the height of the walls, nor the untried depth of the lagoon,
nor the fort on the hill, nor the unusual strength of the citadel. Nothing had prevented them from surmounting
every obstacle and forcing their way everywhere. Though every man amongst them deserved all the rewards
he could give, the glory of the mural crown belonged especially to him who was the first to scale the wall,
and the man who considered that he deserved it should claim it.
Two men came forward, Q. Tiberilius, a centurion of the fourth legion, and Sextus Digitius, one of the
marines. The contention between them was not so heated as the excitement with which each body advocated
the claim of its own representative. C. Laelius, the commander of the fleet, supported the marine, M.
Sempronius Tuditanus took the part of his legionaries. As the dispute was almost becoming a mutiny, Scipio
announced that he would allow three arbitrators to be named who should investigate the case and take
evidence and give their decision as to which had been the first to scale the wall and enter the town. C. Laelius
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 30
Page No 33
and M. Sempronius were named by their respective parties, and Scipio added the name of P. Cornelius
Caudinus, who belonged to neither party, and bade the three sit at once and try the case judicially. As they
proceeded, the dispute became hotter than ever, for the two men whose dignity and authority had helped to
restrain the excitement were now withdrawn to the tribunal. At last Laelius left his colleagues and stepped
down in front of the tribunal to Scipio and pointed out to him that the proceedings were being carried on in
defiance of all order and selfrestraint, and the men were almost coming to blows. And even if there were no
resort to violence the precedent that was being set was none the less detestable, since men were trying to win
the reward of valour by falsehood and perjury. On the one side were the soldiers of the legion, on the other
those of the fleet, all alike ready to swear by all the gods to what they wanted rather than to what they knew
to be true, and prepared to involve in the guilt of perjury not themselves only, but the military standards, the
eagles and their solemn oath of allegiance. Laelius added that he was making these representations to him at
the wish of P. Cornelius and M. Sempronius. Scipio approved of the step Laelius had taken and summoned
the troops to assembly. He then announced that he had definitely ascertained that Q. Tiberilius and Sextius
Digitius had both surmounted the wall at the same moment, and he should honour their bravery by presenting
them each with a mural crown. Then he bestowed rewards upon the rest according to each man's merit. C.
Laelius, the commander of the fleet, was singled out for special distinction, and in the praises which he
lavished upon him he placed him on an equality with himself, finally presenting him with a golden crown and
thirty oxen.
After this he ordered the hostages from the various Spanish states to be summoned into his presence. It is
difficult to give their number, for I find in one place 300 mentioned and in another 3724. There is a similar
discrepancy amongst the authorities on other points. One author asserts that the Carthaginian garrison
amounted to 10,000 men, another puts it at 7000, whilst a third estimates it as not more than 2000. In one
place you will find that there were 10,000 prisoners, in another the number is said to have exceeded 25,000. If
I followed the Greek author Silenus I should give the number of scorpions large and small as 60; according to
Valerius Antias there were 6000 large ones and 13,000 small ones; so wildly do men invent. It is even a
matter of dispute who were in command. Most authorities agree that Laelius was in command of the fleet, but
there are some who say that it was M. Junius Silanus. Antias tells us that Arines was the Carthaginian
commandant when the garrison surrendered, other writers say it was Mago. Nor are authors agreed as to the
number of ships that were captured, or the weight of gold and silver, or the amount of money that was
brought into the treasury. If we are to make a choice, the numbers midway between these extremes are
probably nearest the truth. When the hostages appeared Scipio began by reassuring them and dispelling their
fears. They had, he told them, passed under the power of Rome, and the Romans preferred to hold men by the
bonds of kindness rather than by those of fear. They would rather have foreign nations united to them on
terms of alliance and mutual good faith than kept down in hard and hopeless servitude. He then ascertained
the names of the States from which they came and made an inventory of the number belonging to each State.
Messengers were then despatched to their homes, bidding their friends to come and take charge of those who
belonged to themwhere envoys from any of these States happened to be present he restored their own
relations to them on the spot; the care of the rest he entrusted to C. Flaminius the quaestor, with injunctions to
show them all kindness and protection. Whilst he was thus engaged a highborn lady, wife of Mandonius the
brother of Indibilis, chief of the Ilergetes, came forward from the crowd of hostages and flinging herself in
tears at the general's feet implored him to impress more strongly on their guards the duty of treating the
women with tenderness and consideration. Scipio assured her that nothing would be wanting in this respect.
Then she continued: "We do not set great store on those things, for what is there that is not good enough for
the condition that we are in? I am too old to fear the injury to which our sex is exposed, but it is for others
that I am anxious as I look at these young girls." Round her stood the daughters of Indibilis and other
maidens of equal rank in the flower of their youthful beauty, and they all looked up to her as a mother. Scipio
replied: "For the sake of the discipline which I in common with all Romans uphold, I should take care that
nothing which is anywhere held sacred be violated amongst us; your virtue and nobility of soul, which even
in misfortune is not forgetful of matronly decorum, make me now still more careful in this matter." He then
delivered them into the charge of a man of tried integrity, with strict injunctions to protect their innocence
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 31
Page No 34
and modesty as carefully as though they were the wives and mothers of his own guests.
Soon afterwards an adult maiden who had been captured was brought to him by the soldiers, a girl of such
exceptional beauty that she attracted the eyes of all wherever she moved. On enquiring as to her country and
parentage, Scipio learnt, amongst other things, that she had been betrothed to a young Celtiberian noble
named Aluccius. He at once sent for her parents and also for her betrothed, who, he learnt, was pining to
death through love of her. On the arrival of the latter Scipio addressed him in more studied terms than a father
would use. "A young man myself," he said, "I am addressing myself to a young man, so we may lay aside all
reserve. When your betrothed had been taken by my soldiers and brought to me, I was informed that she was
very dear to you, and her beauty made me believe it. Were I allowed the pleasures suitable to my age,
especially those of chaste and lawful love, instead of being preoccupied with affairs of state, I should wish
that I might be forgiven for loving too ardently. Now I have the power to indulge another's love, namely
yours. Your betrothed has received the same respectful treatment since she has been in my power that she
would have met with from her own parents. She has been reserved for you, in order that she might be given to
you as a gift inviolate and worthy of us both. In return for that boon I stipulate for this one rewardthat you
will be a friend to Rome. If you believe me to be an upright and honourable man such as the nations here
found my father and uncle to be, you may rest assured that there are many in Rome like us, and you may be
perfectly certain that nowhere in the world can any people be named whom you would less wish to have as a
foe to you and yours, or whom you would more desire as a friend."
The young man was overcome with bashfulness and joy. He grasped Scipio's hand, and besought all the gods
to recompense him, for it was quite impossible for him to make any return adequate to his own feelings, or
the kindness Scipio had shown him. Then the girl's parents and relatives were called. They had brought a
large amount of gold for her ransom, and when she was freely given back to them, they begged Scipio to
accept it as a gift from them; his doing so, they declared, would evoke as much gratitude as the restoration of
the maiden unhurt. As they urged their request with great importunity, Scipio said that he would accept it,
and ordered it to be laid at his feet. Calling Aluccius, he said to him: "In addition to the dowry which you are
to receive from your future fatherinlaw you will now receive this from me as a wedding present." He then
told him to take up the gold and keep it. Delighted with the present and the honourable treatment he had
received, the young man resumed home, and filled the ears of his countrymen with justlyearned praises of
Scipio. A young man had come among them, he declared, in all ways like the gods, winning his way
everywhere by his generosity and goodness of heart as much as by the might of his arms. He began to enlist a
body of his retainers, and in a few days returned to Scipio with a picked force of 1400 mounted men.
Scipio kept Laelius with him to advise as to the disposal of the prisoners, the hostages and the booty, and
when all had been arranged, he assigned him one of the captured quinqueremes, and placing on board Mago
and some fifteen senators who had been made prisoners with him, he sent Laelius to Rome to report his
victory. He had himself decided to spend a few days in New Carthage, and he employed this time in
exercising his military and naval forces. On the first day the legions, fully equipped, went through various
evolutions over a space of four miles; the second day was employed in rubbing up and sharpening their
weapons in front of their tents; the third day they engaged in regular battle. practice with singlesticks and
darts, the points of which were muffled with balls of cork or lead; the fourth day they rested, and on the fifth
they were again exercised under arms. This alternation of exercise and rest was kept up as long as they
remained in Carthage. The rowers and marines put out to sea when the weather was calm and tested the speed
and handiness of their ships in a sham fight. These maneuvers going on outside the city on land and sea
sharpened the men both physically and mentally for war; the city itself resounded with the din of warlike
constructions carried on by the artisans of every kind who were kept together in the Government workshops.
The general devoted his attention equally to everything. At one time he was present with the fleet watching a
naval encounter; at another he was exercising his legions; then he would be giving some hours to an
inspection of the work which was going on in the shops and in the arsenal and dockyards, where the vast
number of artisans were vying with each other as to who could work the hardest. After starting these various
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
The History of Rome, Vol. IV 32
Page No 35
undertakings and seeing that the damaged portions of the walls were repaired, he started for Tarraco, leaving
a detachment in the city for its protection. On his way he was met by numerous delegations; some of them he
dismissed, after giving his reply while still on the march; others he put off till he reached Tarraco, where he
had given notice to all the allies, old and new, to meet him. Almost all the tribes south of the Ebro obeyed the
summons, as did many also from the northern province. The Carthaginian generals did their best to suppress
any rumours of the fall of New Carthage, then when the facts came out too clearly to be either suppressed or
perverted, they tried to minimise its importance. It was by a sudden ruse, almost by stealth, they said, that one
city out of the whole of Spain had been filched from them in a single day; a young swaggerer elated with this
trifling success had in the intoxication of his delight made believe that it was a great victory. But when he
learnt that three generals and three victorious armies were bearing down upon him he would be painfully
reminded of the deaths which had already visited his family. This was what they told people generally, but
they themselves were perfectly aware how much their strength was in every way weakened by the loss of
New Carthage.
Book 27. Scipio in Spain
Such was the position of affairs in Spain. In Italy the consul Marcellus recovered Salapia, which was betrayed
to him, and gained forcible possession of two places belonging to the SamnitesMarmoreae and Heles. 3000
of Hannibal's troops who had been left to garrison these towns were destroyed. The plunder, of which there
was a considerable quantity, was given to the soldiers; 60,000 bushels of wheat and 28,000 of barley were
also found there. The satisfaction derived from this success was, however, more than counterbalanced by a
defeat which was sustained a few days later not far from Herdonea. This city had revolted from Rome after
the disaster of Cannae, and Cn. Fulvius, the proconsul, was encamped before it in the hope of recovering it.
He had chosen a position for his camp which was not sufficiently protected, and the camp itself was not in a
proper state of defence. Naturally a careless general, he was still less cautious now that he had reason to hope
that the inhabitants were weakening in their allegiance to the Carthaginians, since the news had reached them
of Hannibal's withdrawal into Bruttium after losing Salapia. This was all duly reported to Hannibal by
emissaries from Herdonea, and the intelligence made him anxious to save a friendly city and at the same time
hopeful of catching his enemy when off his guard. In order to forestall any rumours of his approach he
proceeded to Herdonea by forced marches, and as he approached the place he formed his men in battle order
with the view of intimidating the enemy. The Roman commanderhis equal in courage, but far inferior to
him in tactical skill and in numbershastily formed his line and engaged. The action was begun most
vigorously by the fifth legion and the allies on the left wing. Hannibal, however, had instructed his cavalry to
wait until the attention of the infantry was completely taken up with the battle and then to ride round the
lines; one division to attack the Roman camp, the other the rear of the Roman line. He told his staff that he
had defeated a Cn. Fulvius, a praetor, on the same ground two years before, and as the names were the same,
so the result of the fight would be the same. His anticipations were realised, for after the lines had closed and
many of the Romans had fallen in the handtohand fighting, though the ranks still held their ground with
the standards, the tumultuous cavalry charge in the rear threw into disorder first the sixth legion stationed in
the second line, and then, as the Numidians pressed on, the fifth legion and finally the front ranks with their
standards. Some were scattered in flight, others were cut down between the two bodies of assailants. It was
here that Cn. Fulvius fell together with eleven military tribunes. As to the number of those killed, who could
definitely state it, when I find in one author the number given as 13,000, in another not more than 7000? The
victor took possession of the camp and its spoil. As he learnt that Herdonea was prepared to go over to the
Romans and would not remain faithful after his withdrawal, he transported the whole population to
Metapontum and Thurii and burnt the place. Its leading citizens who were discovered to have held secret
conferences with Fulvius were put to death. Those Romans who escaped from the fatal field fled by various
routes, almost wholly weaponless, to Marcellus in Samnium.
Marcellus was not particularly disturbed by this serious disaster. He sent a despatch to the senate informing
them of the loss of the general and his army at Herdonea and adding that he himself was the same Marcellus
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 33
Page No 36
who had beaten Hannibal when flushed with his victory at Cannae, that he intended to meet him and would
soon put an end to any pleasure he might feel at his recent success. In Rome itself there was great mourning
for what had happened and great apprehension as to what might happen in the future. The consul marched out
of Samnium and advanced as far as Numistro in Lucania. Here he encamped on level ground in full view of
Hannibal, who was occupying a hill. To show the confidence he felt, he was the first to offer battle, and when
Hannibal saw the standards emerging from the gates of the camp, he did not decline the challenge. They
formed their lines so that the Carthaginian rested his right on the hill, while the Roman left was protected by
the town. The troops who were first engaged were, on the Roman side, the first legion and the right wing of
the allies; those under Hannibal comprised the Spanish infantry and the Balearic slingers. When the action
had commenced the elephants were driven on to the field. The contest was prolonged from the third hour of
the day until nightfall, and when the front lines were worn out, the third legion relieved the first and the left
wing of the allies took the place of the right. Fresh troops also came into action on the other side, with the
result that instead of a spiritless and exhausted struggle a fierce fight broke out anew between men who were
fresh in mind and body. Night, however, separated the combatants whilst the victory was yet undecided." The
following day the Romans remained under arms from sunrise till well on in the day, ready to renew the
contest. But as no enemy showed himself, they began to gather the spoils of the field, and after collecting the
bodies of the slain into one heap, they burnt them. Hannibal broke up his camp quietly at night and withdrew
into Apulia. When daylight revealed the enemies' flight, Marcellus made up his mind to follow in his track.
He left the wounded with a small guard at Numistro under the charge of L. Furius Purpurio, one of his
military tribunes, and came up with Hannibal at Venusia. Here for some days there were skirmishes between
the outposts and slight actions in which both cavalry and infantry took part, but no regular battle. In nearly
every case the Romans had the advantage. Both armies traversed Apulia without fighting any important
action, Hannibal marching by night always on the lookout for a chance of surprise or ambush, Marcellus
never moving but in daylight, and then only after careful reconnoitring.
At Capua, in the meantime, Flaccus was occupied with the sale of the property of the principal citizens and
the farming of the revenues from that part of the territory which had become Roman domainland; the impost
being paid in corn. As though there was never to be wanting some reason or other for treating the Capuans
with severity, disclosures were made of a fresh crime which had been hatched in secret. Fulvius had moved
his men out of the houses in Capua, partly through fear lest his army should demoralised by the attractions of
the city, as Hannibal's had been, and partly that there might be houses to go with the land which was being
let. The troops were ordered to construct military huts just outside the walls and gates. Most of these they
made of wattle or planking; some used plaited osiers and covered them with straw, as though deliberately
designing them to feed a conflagration. One hundred and seventy Capuans with the brothers Blossius at their
head formed a plot to set fire to all these huts simultaneously in the night. Some slaves belonging to the
Blossian household betrayed the secret. On receiving the information the proconsul at once ordered the gates
to be shut and the troops to arm. All those involved in the crime were arrested, examined under torture, found
guilty, and summarily executed. The informers received their freedom and 10,000 ases each. The people of
Nuceria and Acerrae having complained that they had nowhere to live, as Acerrae was partly destroyed by
fire and Nuceria completely demolished, Fulvius sent them to Rome to appear before the senate. Permission
was given to the Acerrans to rebuild those houses which had been burnt, and as the people of Nuceria had
expressed their desire to settle at Atella, the Atellans were ordered to remove to Calatia. In spite of the many
important incidents, some favourable, some unfavourable, which were occupying the public attention, the
citadel of Tarentum was not lost sight of. M. Ogulnius and P. Aquilius were appointed commissioners for the
purchase of corn in Etruria, and a force of 1000 men drawn from the home army, with an equal number from
the allied contingents, conveyed it to Tarentum.
The summer was now drawing to a close, and the date of the consular elections was near at hand. Marcellus
wrote to say that it would be against the interests of the republic to lose touch with Hannibal, as he was being
pressed steadily back, and avoided anything like a battle. The senate were reluctant to recall him just when he
was most effectively employed; at the same time they were anxious lest there should be no consuls for the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 34
Page No 37
coming year. They decided that the best course would be to recall the consul Valerius from Sicily, though he
was outside the borders of Italy. The senate instructed L. Manlius the City praetor to write to him to that
effect, and at the same time to send on the despatch from M. Marcellus that he might understand the reason
for the senate recalling him rather than his colleague from his province. It was about this time that envoys
from King Syphax came to Rome. They enumerated the successful battles which the king had fought against
the Carthaginians, and declared that there was no people to whom he was a more uncompromising foe than
the people of Carthage, and none towards whom he felt more friendly than the people of Rome. He had
already sent envoys to the two Scipios in Spain, now he wished to ask for the friendship of Rome from the
fountainhead. The senate not only gave the envoys a gracious reply, but they in their turn sent envoys and
presents to the kingthe men selected for the mission being L. Genucius, P. Poetelius, and P. Popillius. The
presents they took with them were a purple toga and a purple tunic, an ivory chair and a golden bowl
weighing five pounds. After their visit to Syphax they were commissioned to visit other petty kings in Africa
and carry as a present to each of them a toga praetexta and a golden bowl, three pounds in weight. M. Atilius
and Manlius Acilius were also despatched to Alexandria, to Ptolemy and Cleopatra, to remind them of the
alliance already existing, and to renew the friendly relations with Rome. The presents they carried to the king
were a purple toga and a purple tunic and an ivory chair; to the queen they gave an embroidered palla and a
purple cloak. During the summer in which these incidents occurred numerous portents were reported from the
neighbouring cities and country districts. A lamb is said to have been yeaned at Tusculum with its udder full
of milk; the summit of the temple of Jupiter was struck by lightning and nearly the whole of the roof stripped
off; the ground in front of the gate of Anagnia was similarly struck almost at the same time and continued
burning for a day and a night without anything to feed the fire; at Anagnia Compitum the birds had deserted
their nests in the grove of Diana; at Tarracina snakes of an extraordinary size leaped out of the sea like
sporting fishes close to the harbour; at Tarquinii a pig had been farrowed with the face of a man; in the
district of Capena four statues near the Grove of Feronia had sweated blood for a day and a night. The
pontiffs decreed that these portents should be expiated by the sacrifice of oxen; a day was appointed for
solemn intercessions to be offered up at all the shrines in Rome, and on the following day similar
intercessions were to be offered in Campania, at the grove of Feronia.
On receiving his letter of recall the consul M. Valerius handed over the army and the administration of the
province to the praetor Cincius, and gave instructions to M. Valerius Messala, the commander of the fleet, to
sail with a part of his force to Africa and harry the coast and at the same time find out what he could about
the plans and preparations of Carthage. Then he left with ten vessels for Rome, which he reached after a good
voyage. Immediately on his arrival he summoned a meeting of the senate and laid before them a report of his
administration. For nearly sixty years, he said, Sicily had been the scene of war both by land and sea, and the
Romans had suffered many serious defeats there. Now he had completely reduced the province, there was not
a Carthaginian in the island, nor was there a single Sicilian amongst those who had been driven away who
had not now returned. They had all been repatriated, and were settled in their own cities and ploughing their
own fields. Once more the desolated land was under tillage, the land which enriched its cultivators with its
produce and formed an unfailing bulwark against scarcity for Rome in times of war and peace, alike. When
the consul had addressed the senate, Muttines and others who had done good service to Rome were
introduced, and the promises which the consul had made were redeemed by the bestowal of honours and
rewards upon them. A resolution was carried in the Assembly, with the sanction of the senate, conferring the
full Roman citizenship on Muttines. M. Valerius, meanwhile, having reached the African shore with his fifty
ships before daybreak, made a sudden descent on the territory of Utica. Extending his depredations far and
wide he secured plunder of every kind including a large number of prisoners. With these spoils he returned to
his ships and sailed back to Sicily, entering the port of Lilybaeum, within a fortnight of his departure. The
prisoners were subjected to a close examination, and the following facts were elicited and duly forwarded to
Laevinus that he might understand the position in Africa: 5000 Numidians were at Carthage with Gala's son,
Masinissa, a young man of great energy and enterprise; other mercenary troops were being raised throughout
Africa to be sent over to Spain to reinforce Hasdrubal, so that he might have as large a force as possible with
which to cross over into Italy and join his brother, Hannibal. The Carthaginians, believed that in adopting this
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 35
Page No 38
plan they were sure of victory. In addition to these preparations an immense fleet was being fitted out to
recover Sicily, and it was expected to appear off the island in a short time.
The consul communicated this intelligence to the senate, and they were so impressed by its importance that
they thought the consul ought not to wait for the elections, but return at once to his province after naming a
Dictator to preside over the elections. Matters were delayed somewhat by the debate which followed. The
consul said that when he reached Sicily he would nominate M. Valerius Messalla, who was at that time
commanding the fleet, as Dictator; the senators on the other hand asserted that no one who was outside
Roman soil, i.e., who was beyond the frontiers of Italy, could be nominated Dictator: M. Lucretius, one of the
tribunes of the plebs, took the sense of the House upon the question, and the senate made a decree, requiring
the consul, previously to his departure from the City, to put the question to the people, whom they wished to
have nominated Dictator, and then to nominate the man whom the people had chosen. If the consul declined
to do this, then the praetor was to put the question, and if he refused, then the tribunes were to bring the
matter before the people. As the consul refused to submit to the people what was within his own rights, and
had inhibited the praetor from doing so either, it fell to the tribunes to put the question, and the plebs resolved
that Q. Fulvius, who was then at Capua, should be nominated. But the day before the Assembly met, the
consul left secretly in the night for Sicily, and the senate, thus left in the lurch, ordered a despatch to be sent
to Marcellus, urging him to come to the aid of the Commonwealth which his colleague had deserted, and
nominate the man whom the people had resolved to have as Dictator. Q. Fulvius was accordingly nominated
Dictator by the consul M. Claudius, and under the same resolution of the plebs P. Licinius Crassus, the
Pontifex Maximus, was named by Q. Fulvius as his Master of the Horse.
On the Dictator's arrival in Rome he sent C. Sempronius Blaesus, who had been his second in command in
Capua, to the army in Etruria, to relieve C. Calpurnius, to whom he had sent written instructions to take over
the command of his own army at Capua. He fixed the earliest possible date for the elections, but they could
not be closed owing to a difference between the tribunes and the Dictator. The junior century of the Galerian
tribe had obtained the first place in the order of voting, and they had declared for Q. Fulvius and Q. Fabius.
The other centuries, summoned in their order, would have gone the same way, had not two of the tribunes of
the plebsCaius Arrenius and his brother Luciusintervened. They said that it was infringing the rights of his
fellowcitizens for a magistrate to extend his period of office, and it was a still greater offence for the man
who was conducting the elections to allow himself to be elected. If, therefore, the Dictator accepted votes for
himself, they should place their veto on the proceedings, but if the names of any others than himself were put
up, they would not stop the election. The Dictator defended the procedure by alleging the authority of the
senate and a resolution of the Assembly as precedents. "When Cneius Servilius," he said, "was consul and the
other consul had fallen in battle at Lake Thrasymenus, this question was referred by authority of the senate to
the plebs, and they passed a resolution that as long as there was war in Italy the people had the right to
reappoint as consuls, any who had been consuls, as often as they pleased. I have an old precedent for my
action in this instance in the case of L. Postumius Megellus, who was elected consul together with C. Junius
Bubulcus at the very election over which he was presiding as interrex, and a recent one in the case of Q.
Fabius Maximus, who would certainly never have allowed himself to be reelected if it had not been in the
interest of the State."
A long discussion followed, and at last an agreement was come to between the Dictator and the tribunes that
they would abide by the opinion of the senate. In view of the critical position of the State, the senate saw that
the conduct of affairs ought to be in the hands of old and tried men of ability and experience in war, and that
there ought to be no delay in the elections. The tribunes gave way and the elections were held. Q. Fabius
Maximus was returned as consul for the fifth time, and Q. Fulvius Flaccus for the fourth time. The elections
of praetors followed, the successful candidates being: L. Veturius Philo, T. Quinctius Crispinus, C. Hostilius
Tubulus and C. Aurunculeius. As soon as the magistrates were appointed for the year, Q. Fulvius laid down
his office. At the close of this summer a Carthaginian fleet of forty vessels under the command of Hamilcar
sailed across to Sardinia and laid waste the territory of Olbia. On the appearance of the praetor P. Manlius
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 36
Page No 39
Volso with his army, they sailed round to the other side of the island and devastated the district of Caralita,
after which they returned to Africa with every description of plunder. Several Roman priests died this year
and others were appointed in their place. C. Servilius was made pontiff in place of T. Otacilius Crassus.
Tiberius Sempronius Longus, son of Tiberius, was appointed augur in place of T. Otacilius Crassus, Tiberius
Sempronius Longus, son of Tiberius, was similarly appointed one of the Keepers of the Sacred Books in
place of Ti. Sempronius Longus, son of Tiberius. The deaths took place also of M. Marcius, the Rex
Sacrorum, and M. Aemilius Papus, the Curio Maximus; these vacancies were not filled up during the year.
The censors appointed this year were L. Veturius Philo and P. Licinius Crassus, the Pontifex Maximus.
Licinius Crassus had not been either consul or praetor before he was made censor, he went straight from the
aedileship to the censorship. These censors, however, did not revise the roll of senators, nor did they transact
any public business whatever; the death of L. Veturius put an end to their censorship, for Licinius at once
resigned office. The curule aediles, L. Veturius and P. Licinius Varus, celebrated the Roman Games for one
day. The plebeian aediles, Q. Catius and L. Porcius Licinius, devoted the money derived from fines to the
casting of bronze statues for the temple of Ceres; they also celebrated the Plebeian Games with great
splendour, considering the resources available at the time.
At the close of the year C. Laelius arrived in Rome, thirtyfour days after leaving Tarraco. His entrance into
the City with his train of prisoners was watched by a great crowd of spectators. The next day he appeared
before the senate and reported that Carthage, the capital city of Spain, had been captured in a single day,
whilst several revolted cities had been recovered and new ones received into alliance. The information gained
from the prisoners tallied with that conveyed in the despatches of M. Valerius Messalla. What produced the
greatest impression on the senate was the threatened march of Hasdrubal into Italy, which could hardly hold
its ground against Hannibal and his arms. When Laelius was brought before the Assembly he repeated the
statements already made in the senate. A day of solemn thanksgiving for P. Scipio's victories was decreed,
and C. Laelius was ordered to return as soon as possible to Spain with the ships he had brought over.
Following many authorities, I have referred the capture of New Carthage to this year, though I am quite
aware that some writers place it in the following year. This, however, appears improbable, as Scipio could
hardly have spent a whole year in Spain without doing anything. The new consuls entered office on March
15th, and on the same day the senate assigned them their province. They were both to command in Italy;
Tarentum was to be the objective for Fabius; Fulvius was to operate in Lucania and Bruttium. M. Claudius
Marcellus had his command extended for a year The praetors balloted for their provinces; C. Hostilius
Tubulus obtained the City jurisdiction; L. Venturius Philo the alien jurisdiction together with Gaul; Capua
fell to T. Quinctius Crispinus, and Sardinia to C. Aurunculeius. The following was the distribution of the
armies. The two legions which M. Valerius Laevinus had in Sicily were assigned to Fulvius, those which C.
Calpurnius had commanded in Etruria were transferred to Q. Fabius; C. Calpurnius was to remain in Etruria
and the City force was to form his command; T. Quinctius was to retain the army which Quintus Fulvius had
had; C. Hostilius was to take over his province and army from the propraetor C. Laetorius who was at the
time at Ariminum. The legions who had been serving with the consul were assigned to M. Marcellus. M.
Valerius and L. Cincius had their term in Sicily extended, and the army of Cannae was placed under their
command; they were required to bring it up to full strength out of any that remained of Cn. Fulvius' legions.
These were hunted up and sent by the consuls into Sicily, where they were subjected to the same humiliating
conditions as the defeated of Cannae and those belonging to Cn. Fulvius' army who had already been sent to
Sicily as a punishment by the senate. The legions with which P. Manlius Vulso had held Sardinia were placed
under C. Aurunculeius and remained in the island. P. Sulpicius retained his command for another year with
instructions to employ the same legion and fleet against Macedonia which he had previously had. Orders
were issued for thirty quinqueremes to be despatched from Sicily to the consul at Tarentum, the rest of the
fleet was to sail to Africa and ravage the coast, under the command of M. Valerius Laevinus, or if he did not
go himself he was to send either L . Cincius or M. Valerius Messalla. There were no changes in Spain except
that Scipio and Silanus had their commands extended, not for a year but until such time as they should be
recalled by the senate. Such were the distribution of the provinces and the military commands for the year.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 37
Page No 40
While the public attention was fixed on more important matters an old controversy was revived on the
occasion of the election of a Curio Maximus, in place of M. Aemilius. There was one candidate, a plebeian,
C. Mamilius Atellus, and the patricians contended that no votes ought to be counted for him, as none but a
patrician had ever yet held that dignity. The tribunes, on being appealed to, referred the matter to the senate,
the senate left it to the decision of the people. C. Mamilius Atellus was accordingly the first plebeian to be
elected Curio Maximus. P. Licinius, the Pontifex Maximus, compelled C. Valerius Flaccus to be consecrated,
against his will, a Flamen of Jupiter. C. Laetorius was appointed one of the Keepers of the Sacred Books in
place of Q. Mucius Scaevola, deceased. Had not the bad repute into which Valerius had fallen given place to
a good and honourable character, I should have preferred to keep silence as to the cause of his forcible
consecration. It was in consequence of his careless and dissolute life as a young man, which had estranged his
own brother Lucius and his other relations, that the Pontifex Maximus made him a Flamen. When his
thoughts became wholly occupied with the performance of his sacred duties he threw off his former character
so completely that amongst all the young men in Rome, none held a higher place in the esteem and
approbation of the leading patricians, whether personal friends or strangers to him. Encouraged by this
general feeling he gained sufficient selfconfidence to revive a custom which, owing to the low character of
former Flamens, had long fallen into disuse; he took his seat in the senate. As soon as he appeared L. Licinius
the praetor had him removed. He claimed it as the ancient privilege of the priesthood and pleaded that it was
conferred together with the toga praetexta and curule chair as belonging to the Flamen's office. The praetor
refused to rest the question upon obsolete precedents drawn from the annalists and appealed to recent usage.
No Flamen of Jupiter, he argued, had exercised that right within the memory of their fathers or their
grandfathers. The tribunes, when appealed to, gave it as their opinion that as it was through the supineness
and negligence of individual Flamens that the practice had fallen into abeyance, the priesthood ought not to
be deprived of its rights. They led the Flamen into the senate amid the warm approval of the House and
without any opposition even from the praetor, though every one felt that Flaccus had gained his seat more
through the purity and integrity of his life than through any right inherent in his office.
Before the consuls left for their provinces they raised two legions in the City to supply the necessary drafts
for the armies. The old City army was made over by the consul Fulvius to his brother Caius for service in
Etruria, the legions which were in Etruria being sent to Rome. The consul Fabius ordered his son Quintus to
take to M. Valerius, the proconsul in Sicily, the remains, so far as they had been got together, of the army of
Fulvius. They amounted to 4344 men. He was at the same time to receive from the proconsul two legions and
thirty quinqueremes. The withdrawal of these legions from the island did not weaken the occupying force in
either numbers or efficiency, for besides the two old legions which had now been brought up to full strength,
the proconsul had a large body of Numidian deserters, mounted and unmounted, and he also enlisted those
Sicilians who had served with Epicydes and the Carthaginians, and were seasoned soldiers. By strengthening
each of the Roman legions with these foreign auxiliaries he gave them the appearance of two complete
armies. One of these he placed under L. Cincius, for the protection of that part of the island which had
constituted the kingdom of Hiero; the other he retained under his own command for the defence of the rest of
Sicily. He also broke up his fleet of seventy ships so as to make it available for the defence of the entire
coastline of the island. Escorted by Muttines' cavalry he made a tour of the island in order to inspect the
land and note which parts were cultivated and which were uncultivated, and commend or rebuke the owners
accordingly. Owing to his care and attention there was so large a yield of corn that he was able to send some
to Rome, and also accumulate a store at Catina to furnish supplies for the army which was to pass the summer
at Tarentum.
The deportation of the soldiers to Sicily, most of whom belonged to the Latin and the allied nationalities, very
nearly caused a great rising; so often do small occasions involve serious consequences. Meetings were held
amongst the Latins and the allied communities in which they complained loudly that for ten years they had
been drained by levies and wartaxes; every year they fought only to sustain a great defeat, those who were
not killed in battle were carried off by sickness. A fellowcitizen who was enlisted by the Romans was more
lost to them than one who had been made prisoner by the Carthaginians, for the latter was sent back to his
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 38
Page No 41
home without ransom, the former was sent out of Italy into what was really exile rather than military service.
There the men who had fought at Cannae had been for eight years wearing out their lives, and there they
would die before the enemy, who had never been stronger than he was today, quitted Italian soil. If the old
soldiers were not to return, and fresh ones were always being enlisted, there would soon be nobody left. They
would be compelled therefore, before they reached the last stage of depopulation and famine, to refuse to
Rome what the necessities of their situation would very soon make it impossible to grant. If the Romans saw
that this was the unanimous determination of their allies, they would assuredly begin to think about making
peace with Carthage. Otherwise Italy would never be free from war as long as Hannibal was alive. Such was
the general tone of the meetings. There were at the time thirty colonies belonging to Rome. Twelve of these
announced to the consuls through their representatives in Rome that they had no means from which to furnish
either men or money. The colonies in question were Ardea, Nepete, Sutrium, Alba, Carseoli, Sora, Suessa,
Cercei, Setia, Cales, Narnia and Interamna.
The consuls, startled by this unprecedented step, wanted to frighten them out of such a detestable course, and
thought that they would succeed better by uncompromising sternness than by adopting gentle methods. "You
colonists," they said, "have dared to address us, the consuls, in language which we cannot bring ourselves to
repeat openly in the senate, for it is not simply a refusal of military obligations, but an open revolt against
Rome. You must go back to your respective colonies at once, while your treason is still confined to words,
and consult your people. You are not Capuans or Tarentines, but Romans, from Rome you sprang, from
Rome you have been planted in colonies on land taken from the enemy, in order that you may augment her
dominion. Whatever duties children owe to their parents, you owe to Rome, if indeed you feel a spark of
affection for her or cherish any memories of your mother country. So you must begin your deliberations
afresh, for what you are now so recklessly contemplating means the betrayal of the sovereignty of Rome and
the surrender of victory into the hands of Hannibal." Such were the arguments which each of the consuls
advanced at considerable length, but they produced no impression. The envoys said that there was no reply
for them to take home, nor was there any other policy for their senate to consider since there was not a man
left for conscription nor any money for his pay. As the consuls saw that their determination was unshaken
they brought the matter before the senate. Here such general consternation and alarm were felt that most of
the senators declared that the empire was doomed, other colonies would take the same course, as would also
the allies; all had agreed together to betray the City of Rome to Hannibal.
The consuls spoke in reassuring terms to the senate. They declared that the other colonies were as loyal and
dutiful as ever, and even those colonies which had forgotten their duty would learn to respect the empire if
representatives of the government were sent amongst them, with words of admonishment and rebuke, not of
supplication or entreaty. The senate left it to the consuls to take such action as they deemed best in the
interests of the State. After sounding the temper of the other colonies, they summoned their delegates to
Rome and questioned them as to whether they had soldiers in readiness in accordance with the terms of their
constitution. M. Sextilius of Fregellae, acting as spokesman for the eighteen colonies, replied that the
stipulated number of soldiers were ready for service; if more were needed they would furnish more, and do
their utmost to carry out the wishes and commands of the Roman people. They had no insufficiency of
resources, they had more than a sufficiency of loyalty and goodwill. The consuls told them in reply that they
felt they could not praise their conduct as they deserved unless the senate as a body thanked them, and with
this, bade them follow them into the House. A resolution was adopted by the senate and read to them,
couched in the most complimentary and laudatory terms possible. The consuls were then charged to introduce
them to the Assembly and, among the other splendid services which they had rendered to them and their
ancestors, to make special mention of this fresh obligation which they had conferred on the Republic. Though
so many generations have passed away, their names ought not to be passed over in silence nor their due meed
of praise withheld. Signia, Norba, Saticula, Fregellae, Lucerium, Venusia, Brundisium, Hadria, Formae and
Ariminum; on the Tyrrhenian Sea, Pontia, Paestum, Cosa; and the inland colonies, Beneventum, Aesernum,
Spoletum, Placentia and Cremonathese were the colonies by whose aid and succour the dominion of Rome
was upheld, it was these who were publicly thanked in the senate and before the Assembly. The senate
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 39
Page No 42
forbade all mention of the other colonies who had proved false to the empire; the consuls were to ignore their
representatives, neither retaining them nor dismissing them nor addressing them, but leaving them severely
alone. This silent rebuke seemed most in accordance with the dignity of the Roman people. The other
preparations for war now occupied the attention of the consuls. It was decided that the "vicesimary gold"
which was kept as a reserve for extreme emergencies in the secret treasury should now be brought out. Four
thousand pounds of gold were produced. Of this 550 pounds were given to each of the consuls and to the
proconsuls M. Marcellus and P. Sulpicius. A similar amount was given to the praetor L. Veturius, who had
drawn in the lottery the province of Gaul, and a special grant of 100 pounds was placed in the hands of the
consul Fabius, to be carried into the citadel of Tarentum. The rest was made use of in purchasing, for cash at
contract prices, clothing for the army in Spain, whose successful operations were enhancing their own and
their general's reputation.
It was further decided that before the consul left the City certain portents should be expiated. Various places
had been struck by lightning: the statue of Jupiter on the Alban Mount and a tree near his temple, a grove at
Ostia, the city wall and temple of Fortune at Capua and the wall and one of the gates at Sinuessa. Some
people asserted that the water at Alba had run blood and that in the sanctuary of the temple of Fors Fortuna in
Rome a statuette in the diadem of the goddess had fallen of itself on to her hand. It was confidently believed
that at Privernum an ox had spoken and that a vulture had flown down on to a booth in the crowded forum. At
Sinuessa it was reported that a child was born of doubtful sex, these are commonly called androgynia word
like many others borrowed from the Greek, a language which readily admits compound wordsalso that it
had rained milk and that a boy had been born with an elephant's head. These portents were expiated by
sacrifices of fullgrown victims, and a day was appointed for special intercessions at all the shrines. It was
further decreed that the praetor C. Hostilius should vow and celebrate the Games of Apollo in strict
accordance with the practice of recent years. During this interval the consul Q. Fulvius convened the
Assembly for the election of censors. Two men were elected, neither of whom had attained the dignity of
consulM. Cornelius Cethegus and P. Sempronius Tuditanus. A measure was adopted by the plebs, with the
sanction of the senate, authorising these censors to let the territory of Capua to individual occupiers. The
revision of the senatorial roll was delayed through a difference between them as to who ought to be chosen as
leader of the senate. The selection had fallen to Sempronius; Cornelius, however, insisted that they ought to
follow the traditional usage in accordance with which the man who had been the first of all his surviving
contemporaries to be appointed censor was always chosen as leader of the senate and in this case it was T.
Manlius Torquatus. Sempronius replied that the gods who had given him by lot the right of choosing had also
given him the right to make a free choice; he should therefore act on his own discretion and choose Q. Fabius
Maximus, the man whom he claimed as foremost of all the Romans, a claim he would make good before
Hannibal himself. After a lengthy argument his colleague gave way and Sempronius selected Q. Fabius
Maximus as leader of the senate. The revision of the roll was then proceeded with, eight names being struck
off, amongst them that of M. Caecilius Metellus, the author of the infamous proposal to abandon Italy after
Cannae. For the same reason some were struck out of the equestrian order, but there were very few on whom
the taint of that disgrace rested. All those who had belonged to the cavalry of the legions of Cannae, which
were in Italy at the timeand there was a considerable number of themwere deprived of their regulation
horses. This punishment was made still heavier by an extension of their compulsory service. The years they
had served with the horses furnished by the State were not to count, they were to serve their ten years from
that date with their own horses. A large number of men were discovered who ought to have served, and all
those who had reached the age of seventeen at the commencement of the war and had not done any military
service were degraded to the aerarii. The censors next signed contracts for the rebuilding of the places round
the Forum which had been destroyed by fire. These comprised seven shops, the fish market and the Hall of
Vestal.
After despatching their business in Rome the consuls started for the war. Fulvius was the first to leave and
went on in advance to Capua. After a few days Fabius followed, and in a personal interview with his
colleague strongly urged him, as he had Marcellus by letter, to do his utmost to keep Hannibal on the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 40
Page No 43
defensive while he himself was attacking Tarentum. He pointed out that the enemy had now been driven back
on all sides, and if he were deprived of that city there would be no position where he could make a stand, no
sure place for retreat, there would be no longer anything to keep him in Italy. He also sent a message to the
commandant of the garrison which Laevinus had stationed in Regium as a check against the Bruttii. This was
a force of 8000 men, the majority drawn, as stated above, from Agathyrna in Sicily, and all accustomed to
live by rapine; their numbers had been swelled by deserters from Bruttium, who were quite their equals in
recklessness and love of desperate adventures. Fabius ordered the commandant to take this force into
Bruttium and lay waste the country and then attack the city of Caulonia. They carried out their orders with
alacrity and zest, and after plundering and scattering the peasants, they made a furious attack on the citadel.
The consul's letter and his own belief that no Roman general was so good a match for Hannibal as himself
stirred Marcellus into action. As soon as there was plenty of forage in the fields he broke up his winter
quarters and confronted Hannibal at Canusium. The Carthaginian was trying to induce the Canusians to
revolt, but as soon as he heard of the approach of Marcellus, he moved away. As the country was open,
affording no cover for an ambuscade, he began to withdraw into a more wooded district. Marcellus followed
at his heels, fixed his camp close to Hannibal's, and the moment he had completed his entrenchments he led
his legions out to battle. Hannibal saw no necessity for risking a general engagement, and sent out detached
troops of cavalry and bodies of slingers to skirmish. He was, however, drawn into the battle which he had
tried to avoid, for after he had been marching all night, Marcellus caught him up in level and open country,
and prevented him from fortifying his camp by attacking the entrenching parties on all sides. A pitched
battled ensued in which the whole strength of both armies was engaged, and at the approach of nightfall they
separated on equal terms. Both the camps, separated by only a small interval, were hastily fortified before
dark. As soon as it began to grow light on the morrow Marcellus marched his men on to the field and
Hannibal accepted the challenge. He said much to encourage his men, bidding them remember Thrasymenus
and Cannae, and tame the insolence of their foe, who was incessantly pressing them and following on their
heels, preventing them from fortifying their camp, giving them no breathing space, no time to look round.
Day after day two objects met their eyes at the same time, the rising sun and the Roman battleline on the
plain. If the enemy got away with heavy loss after one battle, he would conduct his operations more quietly
and deliberately. Animated by their general's words and exasperated at the defiant way in which the enemy
challenged and provoked them, they began the battle with great spirit. After more than two hours' fighting the
allied contingent on the Roman right including the special levies, began to give way. As soon as Marcellus
saw this he brought the 10th legion up to the front. They were slow in coming up, and as the others were
becoming unsteady and falling back, the whole line was gradually thrown into disorder and ultimately routed.
Their fears got the better of them and they took to flight. 2700 Romans and allies fell in the battle and during
the pursuit; amongst them were four centurions and two military tribunes, M. Licinius and M. Helvius. Four
standards were lost out of the wing which began the fight, and two from the legion which came up in support.
When they were once more in camp, Marcellus addressed such an impassioned and stinging remonstrance to
his men that they suffered more from the words of their angry general than in the adverse struggle which they
had kept up the livelong day. "As matters are," he said, "I am devoutly thankful to heaven that the enemy did
not actually attack the camp while you in your panic were dashing into the gates and over the rampart; you
would most certainly have abandoned your camp in the same wild terror in which you deserted the field.
What is the meaning of this panic, this terror? What has suddenly come to you that you should forget who
you are and with whom you are fighting? These surely are precisely the same enemies as those whom you
spent last summer in defeating and pursuing, whom you have been closely following up these last few days,
whilst they fled before you night and day, whom you have worn out in skirmishes, whom as late as yesterday
you prevented from either advancing or encamping. I pass over incidents for which you may possibly take
credit to yourselves and will only mention one circumstance which ought to fill you with shame and remorse.
Last night, as you know, you drew off from the field after holding your own against the enemy. How has the
situation changed during the night or throughout the day? Have your forces been weakened or his
strengthened? But really, I do not seem to myself to be speaking to my army or to Roman soldiers, it is only
your bodies and weapons that are the same. Do you imagine if you had had the spirit of Romans that the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 41
Page No 44
enemy would have seen your backs or captured a single standard from either maniple or cohort? So far he has
prided himself upon the Roman legions he has cut up, you have been the first to confer upon him today the
glory of having put a Roman army to flight."
Then there arose a general cry of supplication; the men begged him to pardon them for that day's work, and to
make use of his soldiers' courage whenever and wherever he would. "Very well, soldiers," he said, "I will
make proof of it and lead you to battle tomorrow, so that you may win the pardon you crave as victors rather
as vanquished." He ordered the cohorts who had lost their standards to be put on barley rations, and the
centurions of the maniples whose standards were lost were ordered to stand away from their fellows without
their military cloaks and girdles and with their swords drawn. All the troops, mounted and unmounted, were
ordered to assemble under arms the following day. They were then dismissed and all acknowledged that they
had been justly and deservedly censured, and that in the whole army there was not one who had that day
shown himself a man except their commander. They felt bound to make satisfaction to him either by their
deaths or by a brilliant victory. The next morning they appeared equipped and armed according to orders. The
general expressed his approval and announced that those who had been the first to flee and the cohorts which
had lost their standards would be placed in the forefront of the battle. He went on to say that all must fight
and conquer, and that they must, one and all, do their utmost to prevent the rumour of yesterday's flight from
reaching Rome before the news of that day's victory. They were then ordered to strengthen themselves with
food, so that if the fight was prolonged they might hold out. After all had been said and done to raise their
courage, they marched to battle.
When this was reported to Hannibal, he remarked, "Evidently we have to do with an enemy who cannot
endure either good fortune or bad. If he is victorious he follows up the vanquished in fierce pursuit; if he is
defeated he renews the struggle with his conquerors." Then he ordered the advance to be sounded, and led his
men on to the field. The fighting was much hotter than on the previous day; the Carthaginians did their
utmost to maintain the prestige they had gained, the Romans were equally determined to wipe out the
disgrace of their defeat. The contingents who had formed the Roman left and the cohorts who had lost their
standards were fighting in the front line, and the twentieth legion was stationed on their right. L. Cornelius
Lentulus and C: Claudius Nero commanded the wings; Marcellus remained in the centre to encourage his
men and mark how they bore themselves in battle. Hannibal's front line consisted of his Spanish troops, the
flower of his army. After a long and undecided struggle he ordered the elephants to be brought up into the
fighting line, in the hope that they would create confusion and panic among the enemy. At first they threw the
front ranks into disorder, trampling some underfoot and scattering those round in wild alarm. One flank was
thus exposed, and the rout would have spread much farther had not C. Decimius Flavus, one of the military
tribunes, snatched the standard of the foremost maniple of hastati and called on them to follow him. He took
them to where the animals trotting close to one another were creating the greatest tumult, and told his men to
hurl their javelins at them. Owing to the short distance and the huge mark presented by the beasts, crowded as
they were together, every missile went home. They were not all hit, but those in whose flanks the javelins
were sticking turned the uninjured ones to flight, for these animals cannot be depended upon. Not only the
men who first attacked them, but every soldier within reach hurled his javelin at them as they galloped back
into the Carthaginian ranks, where they caused much more destruction than they had caused amongst the
enemy. They dashed about much more recklessly and did far greater damage when driven by their fears, than
when directed by their drivers. Where the line was broken by their charge, the Roman standards at once
advanced, and the broken and demoralised enemy was put to rout without much fighting. Marcellus sent his
cavalry after the fugitives, and the pursuit did not slacken till they had been driven in wild panic to their
camp. To add to their confusion and terror two of the elephants had fallen and blocked up the camp gate, and
the men had to scramble into their camp over fosse and rampart. It was here that they suffered the heaviest
loss; 8000 men were killed and five elephants. The victory was anything but a bloodless one for the Romans;
out of the two legions some 1700 men were killed and 1300 of the allied contingents, besides a very large
number of wounded in both divisions. The following night Hannibal shifted his camp. Marcellus, though
anxious to follow him, was unable to do so owing to the enormous number of wounded. Reconnoitring
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 42
Page No 45
parties who were sent out to watch his movements reported that he had taken the direction of Bruttium.
About this time the Hirpini, the Lucani and the Vulcientes surrendered to the consul Q. Fulvius, and delivered
up the garrisons which Hannibal had placed in their cities. He accepted their submission graciously, and only
reproached them for the mistake they had made in the past. This led the Bruttians to hope that similar
indulgence might be shown to them, and they sent the two men who were of highest rank amongst them.
Vivius and his brother Paccius, to ask for favourable terms of surrender. The consul Q. Fabius carried by
storm the town of Manduria, in the country of the Sallentines. 3000 prisoners were secured and a
considerable amount of plunder. From there he marched to Tarentum, and fixed his camp at the very mouth
of the harbour. Some of the ships which Laevinus had had for the purpose of keeping the sea open for
supplies he loaded with the engines and apparatus necessary for battering the walls; others he made use of for
carrying artillery and stores and projectiles of every kind. Only the transports which were propelled by oars
were there made use of, so that whilst some of the troops could bring up their engines and scaling ladders
close to the walls, others could beat off the defenders from the walls by attacking them at a distance from the
ships. These vessels were so fitted up that they could attack the city from the open sea without any
interference from the enemy, as the Carthaginian fleet had sailed across to Corcyra to assist Philip in his
campaign against the Aetolians. The force besieging Caulo, hearing of Hannibal's approach and fearing a
surprise, withdrew to a position on the hills which was safe from any immediate attack.
While Fabius was besieging Tarentum an incident, of slight importance in itself, helped him to achieve a
great success. The Tarentines had been furnished by Hannibal with a garrison of Bruttian troops. One of their
officers was deeply in love with a young woman who had a brother in Fabius' army. She had written to tell
him of the intimacy that had sprung up between her and a stranger who was rich and held a high position
amongst his countrymen. The brother was led to hope that through his sister's means her lover might be led
on to any lengths, and he communicated his anticipations to the consul. The idea did not seem at all an
unreasonable one, and he received instructions to cross the lines and enter Tarentum as a deserter. After being
introduced to the officer by his sister and getting on friendly terms with him, he cautiously sounded his
disposition without betraying his real object. When he had satisfied himself as to the weakness of his
character he called in his sister's aid, and through her coaxing and blandishments the man was persuaded to
betray the position which he was in charge of. When the time and method of carrying out the project were
arranged, a soldier was despatched from the city at night to make his way through the outposts and report to
the consul what had been done and what arrangements had been made.
At the first watch Fabius gave the signal for action to the troops in the citadel and those who were guarding
the harbour, and then marched right round the harbour and took up his position without being observed on the
east side of the town. Then he ordered the trumpets to sound at the same moment from the citadel, the
harbour and the ships which had been brought up from the open sea. The greatest shouting and uproar was
designedly raised in just those parts where there was least danger of an attack. The consul meanwhile kept his
men perfectly quiet. Democrates, who had formerly commanded the fleet, happened to be in charge of that
part of the defences. Finding all quiet round him whilst elsewhere there was shouting and tumult as though
the city had been taken, he feared to remain where he was in case the consul should storm the place and break
in somewhere else. So he led his men up to the citadel from which the most alarming noise proceeded. From
the time that had elapsed and the silence which followed the excited shouts and calls to arms, Fabius judged
that the garrison had withdrawn from that part of the fortifications. He at once ordered the scaling ladders to
be carried to that part of the walls where he understood from the traitor that the Bruttii were mounting guard.
With their aid and connivance that section of the fortifications was carried, and the Romans made their way
into the town after breaking down the nearest gate to allow the main body of their comrades to march in.
Raising their battle shout they went on to the forum; which they reached about sunrise without meeting a
single armed enemy. All the defenders who had been engaged at the citadel and the harbour now combined to
attack them.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 43
Page No 46
The fighting in the forum commenced with an impetuosity which was not sustained. The Tarentine was no
match for the Roman either in courage or weapons or military training or bodily strength and vigour. They
hurled their javelins, and that was all; almost before they came to close quarters they turned and fled through
the streets, seeking shelter in their own homes and in their friends' houses. Two of their leaders, Nico and
Democrates, fell fighting bravely; Philemenus, who had been the prime agent in delivering the city up to
Hannibal, rode at full speed out of the battle, but though his riderless horse was recognised soon afterwards
whilst straying about the city, his body was nowhere found. It was commonly believed that he had been
pitched headlong from his horse down an unprotected well. Carthalo the commandant of the garrison, had
laid down his arms and was going to the consul to remind him of the old tie of hospitality between their
fathers when he was killed by a soldier who met him. Those found with arms and those who had none were
massacred indiscriminately, Carthaginians and Tarentines met the same fate. Many even of the Bruttians
were killed in different parts of the town, either by mistake or to satisfy an oldstanding hate, or to suppress
any rumour of its capture through treachery, by making it appear as though it had been taken by storm. After
the carnage followed the sack of the city. It is said that 30,000 slaves were captured together with an
enormous quantity of silver plate and bullion, 83 pounds' weight of gold and a collection of statues and
pictures almost equal to that which had adorned Syracuse. Fabius, however, showed a nobler spirit than
Marcellus had exhibited in Sicily; he kept his hands off that kind of spoil. When his secretary asked him what
he wished to have done with some colossal statuesthey were deities, each represented in his appropriate
dress and in a fighting attitudehe ordered them to be left to the Tarentines who had felt their wrath. The wall
which separated the city from the citadel was completely demolished.
Hannibal had in the meanwhile received the surrender of the force which was investing Caulo. As soon as he
heard that Tarentum was being attacked he hurried to its relief, marching night and day. On receiving the
news of its capture, he remarked, "The Romans too have their Hannibal, we have lost Tarentum by the same
practices by which we gained it." To prevent his retirement from appearing like a flight he encamped at a
distance of about five miles from the city, and after staying there for a few days he fell back on Metapontum.
From this place he sent two of the townsmen with a letter to Fabius at Tarentum. It was written by the civic
authorities, and stated that they were prepared to surrender Metapontum and its Carthaginian garrison if the
consul would pledge his word that they should not suffer for their conduct in the past. Fabius believed the
letter to be genuine and handed the bearers a reply addressed to their chiefs, fixing the date of his arrival at
Metapontum. This was taken to Hannibal. Naturally delighted to find that even Fabius was not proof against
his stratagems, he disposed his force in ambuscade not far from Metapontum. Before leaving Tarentum
Fabius consulted the sacred chickens, and on two occasions they gave an unfavourable omen. He also
consulted the gods of sacrifice, and after they had inspected the victim the augurs warned him to be on his
guard against plots and ambuscades on the part of the enemy. As he did not come at the appointed time, the
Metapontines were again sent to him to hasten his movements, and were promptly arrested. Terrified at the
prospect of examination under torture, they disclosed the plot.
P. Scipio had spent the whole winter in winning over the various Spanish tribes, either by bribes or by
restoring those of their countrymen who had been taken as hostages or prisoners. At the commencement of
summer Edesco, a famous Spanish chieftain, came to visit him. His wife and children were in the hands of
the Romans, but that was not the only reason why he came. He was influenced by the change which Fortune
apparently was bringing about over the whole of Spain in favour of Rome as against Carthage. The same
motive actuated Indibilis and Mandonius, who were beyond question the most powerful chiefs in Spain. They
abandoned Hasdrubal, with the whole of their contingent, and withdrew to the hills above his camp and
keeping along the ridge of mountains made their way safely to the Roman headquarters. When Hasdrubal saw
that the enemy were receiving such accessions of strength whilst his own forces were shrinking in equal
proportion, he realised that unless he made some bold move, the wastage would continue, so he made up his
mind to seize the first opportunity of fighting. Scipio was still more anxious for a battle; his confidence had
grown with success, and he was unwilling to wait till the hostile armies had formed a junction, preferring to
engage each separately rather than all united. In case, however, he might have to fight with their combined
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 44
Page No 47
armies, he had augmented his strength by a somewhat ingenious method. As the whole of the Spanish coast
was now clear of the enemy's ships, he had no further use for his own fleet, and after beaching the vessels at
Tarraco he brought up the crews to reinforce his land army. Of arms and armament he had more than enough,
what with those taken in the capture of New Carthage, and those which the large body of artisans had
fabricated for him subsequently. Laelius, in whose absence he would not undertake anything of importance,
had now returned from Rome, so in the early days of spring he left Tarraco with his composite army and
marched straight for the enemy.
The country through which he passed was everywhere peaceful; each tribe as he approached gave him a
friendly reception and escorted him to their frontiers. On his route he was met by Indibilis and Mandonius.
The former, speaking for himself and his companion, addressed Scipio in grave and dignified language, very
unlike the rough and heedless speech of barbarians. Instead of claiming credit for having seized the first
opportunity of going over to the side of Rome he rather pleaded that he had no alternative. He was quite
aware, he said, that the name of deserter was an object of loathing to the old friends and of suspicion to the
new ones, nor did he find fault with this way of looking at it as long as the twofold odium attached not
merely to the name but to the motive. Then after dwelling on the services they had both rendered to the
Carthaginian generals and the rapacity and insolence which the latter had exhibited and the innumerable
wrongs inflicted on them and their fellowcountrymen, he continued: "Hitherto we have been associated with
them so far as our bodily presence is concerned, but our hearts and minds have long been where we believe
justice and right are cherished. Now we come as suppliants to the gods who cannot permit violence and
injustice, and we implore you, Scipio, not to regard our change of sides, as either a crime or a merit; put us to
the test from this day forward, and as you find us, so judge and appraise our conduct." The Roman general
replied that this was just what he intended to do; he should not regard as deserters men who did not consider
an alliance binding where no law, human or divine, was respected. Thereupon their wives and children were
brought out and restored to them amid tears of joy. For that day they were the guests of the Romans, on the
morrow a definite treaty of alliance was concluded, and they were sent off to bring up their troops. On their
return they shared the Roman camp and acted as guides until they reached the enemy.
The first army they came to was the one commanded by Hasdrubal, which was encamped near the city of
Baecula. Cavalry outposts were stationed in front of the camp. The advance guard of the Roman column with
the velites and skirmishers, at once attacked these outposts without changing their order of march or stopping
to entrench themselves, and the contempt they showed for their enemy showed clearly the difference in the
temper of the two armies. The cavalry were driven in hasty flight back to their camp, and the Roman
standards were carried almost to the gates. That day's skirmish only served to whet the courage of the
Romans, and, impatient for battle, they formed their camp. In the night Hasdrubal withdrew his force to a hill,
the summit of which formed a broad tableland. His rear was protected by a river, in front and on either side
the hill sloped down precipitously, forming a kind of steep bank, which surrounded the whole position.
Below there was another level stretch of ground which also fell away abruptly, and was equally difficult of
ascent. When, on the morrow, Hasdrubal saw the Roman battleline standing in front of their camp, he sent
his Numidian cavalry and the Balearic and African light infantry on to this lower ground. Scipio rode along
the ranks and pointed to the enemy standing in full view, who, he said, having given up all hope of success on
level ground were clinging to the hills, trusting to the strength of their position and not to their arms or their
courage. But the walls of New Carthage were higher still, and yet Roman soldiers had surmounted them;
neither hills, nor citadel, nor the sea itself had stayed the advance of their arms. What use would the heights
which the enemy had seized be to them except to compel them to leap down cliffs and precipices in their
flight? Even that way of escape he should close to them. He then told off two cohorts, one to hold the
entrance of the valley through which the river ran, the other to block the road which led from the city along
the slope of the hill into the country. The attack was commenced by the lightarmed troops who had repulsed
the outposts the day before, and who were led by Scipio in person. At first their only difficulty was the rough
ground over which they were marching, but when they came within range of the infantry stationed on the
lower plateau, all kinds of missiles were showered upon them, to which they replied with showers of stones,
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 45
Page No 48
with which the ground was strewn, and which not only the soldiers but the camp followers who were with
them flung at the enemy. Difficult as the climb was, and almost buried as they were beneath stones and
javelins and darts, they went steadily on, thanks to their training in escalade and their grim determination. As
soon as they reached level ground and could plant their feet firmly, their superior mode of fighting told. The
light and active enemy, accustomed to fighting and skirmishing at a distance, when he could evade the
missiles, was quite incapable of holding his own in a handtohand fight, and he was hurled back with heavy
loss on to the main body posted on the higher ground. Scipio ordered the victors to make a frontal attack on
the enemy's centre, while he divided the remainder of his force between himself and Laelius. Laelius was
ordered to work round the right of the hill till he could find an easier ascent; he himself, making a short
detour to the left, attacked the enemy's flank. Shouts were now resounding on all sides, and the enemy tried to
wheel their wings round to face the new attack; the consequence was their lines got into confusion. At this
moment Laelius came up and the enemy fell back to avoid being assailed from the rear; this led to their front
being broken, and an opportunity was afforded for the Roman centre to gain the plateau, which they could not
have reached over such difficult ground, had the leading ranks of the Carthaginians kept their formation and
the elephants remained in the fighting line. The carnage was now spreading over the field, for Scipio, who
had brought his left against the enemy's right, was cutting up his exposed flank. There was no longer even a
chance of flight, for the roads in both directions were blocked by the Roman detachments. Hasdrubal and his
principal officers had in their flight closed the gate of their camp, and to make matters still worse, the
elephants were galloping wildly about, and were dreaded by the Carthaginians as much as by the Romans.
The enemies' losses amounted to 8000 men.
Hasdrubal had secured the warchest before the battle, and after sending on the elephants in advance and
collecting all the fugitives that he could, he directed his march along the Tagus towards the Pyrenees. Scipio
took possession of the enemy's camp, and gave up all the plunder, with the exception of the prisoners, to his
troops. On counting the prisoners he found that they amounted to 10,000 infantry and 2000 cavalry. The
Spanish prisoners were all released and sent to their homes; the Africans were ordered to be sold by the
quaestor. All the Spaniards, those who had previously surrendered and those who had been made prisoners
the day before, now crowded round him, and with one accord saluted him as "King." He ordered silence to be
proclaimed, and then told them that the title he valued most was the one his soldiers had given him, the title
of "Imperator." "The name of king," he said, "so great elsewhere, is insupportable to Roman ears. If a kingly
mind is in your eyes the noblest thing in human nature, you may attribute it to me in thought, but you must
avoid the use of the word." Even the barbarians appreciated the greatness of a man who stood so high that he
could look down on a title the splendour of which dazzled other men's eyes. Presents were then distributed
amongst the Spanish princes and chieftains, and Scipio invited Indibilis to choose 300 horses out of the large
number captured. Whilst the quaestor was putting up the Africans to sale, he found amongst them a
remarkably handsome youth, and hearing that he was of royal blood, he sent him to Scipio. Scipio questioned
him as to who he was, what country he belonged to, and why at his tender age he was in camp. He told him
that he was a Numidian, and his people called him Massiva. Left an orphan by his father, he had been brought
up by his maternal grandfather Gala, king of the Numidians. His uncle Masinissa had come with his cavalry
to assist the Carthaginians, and he had accompanied him into Spain. Masinissa had always forbidden him to
take part in the fighting because he was so young, but that day he had, unknown to his uncle, secured arms
and a horse and gone into action, but his horse fell and threw him, and so he had been made prisoner. Scipio
ordered the Numidian to be kept under guard, and when he had transacted all the necessary business he left
the tribunal and resumed to his tent. Here he sent for his prisoner and asked him whether he would like to
return to Masinissa. The boy replied amid tears of joy that he should only be too glad to do so. Scipio then
presented him with a gold ring, a tunic with a wide purple border, a Spanish cloak with a gold clasp, and a
beautifully caparisoned horse. He then ordered an escort of cavalry to accompany him as far as he wanted to
go, and dismissed him.
A council of war was then held. Some of those present urged the immediate pursuit of Hasdrubal, but Scipio
thought it hazardous in case Mago and the other Hasdrubal should join forces with him. He contented himself
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 46
Page No 49
with sending a division to occupy the passes of the Pyrenees, and spent the remainder of the summer in
receiving the submission of the Spanish tribes. A few days after the battle of Baecula, when Scipio had
descended from the pass of Castulo on his return to Tarraco, the two Carthaginian generals, Hasdrubal Gisgo
and Mago, came from Further Spain to join forces with Hasdrubal. They were too late to prevent his defeat,
but their arrival was very timely in enabling them to concert measures for the prosecution of the war. When
they came to compare notes as to the feeling in the different provinces, Hasdrubal Gisgo considered that as
the distant coast of Spain between Gades and the ocean still knew nothing of the Romans, it was so far
faithful to Carthage. The other Hasdrubal and Mago were agreed as to the influence which Scipio's generous
treatment had had upon the feelings of all states and individuals alike, and they were convinced that the
desertions could not be checked until all the Spanish soldiery had either been removed to the furthest corners
of Spain or transported into Gaul. They decided therefore, without waiting for the sanction of the senate, that
Hasdrubal must proceed to Italy, the focus of the war where the decisive conflict would be fought. In this way
he would remove all the Spanish soldiers out of Spain far beyond the spell of Scipio's name.
His army, weakened as it was by desertions and by the losses in the recent disastrous battle, had to be brought
up to its full strength. Mago was to hand over his own army to Hasdrubal Gisgo, and cross over to the
Balearic Isles with an ample supply of money to hire mercenaries among the islanders. Hasdrubal Gisgo was
to make his way into the interior of Lusitania and avoid any collision with the Romans. A force of 3000
horse, selected from all their cavalry, was to be made up for Masinissa, with which he was to traverse
Western Spain, ready to assist the friendly tribes and carry devastation amongst the towns and territory of
those who were hostile. After drawing up this plan of operations the three generals separated to carry out their
several tasks. This was the course of events during the year in Spain. Scipio's reputation was rising day by
day in Rome. Fabius too, though he had taken Tarentum by treachery rather than by valour, added to his
prestige by its capture. Fulvius' laurels were fading. Marcellus was even the object of general censure, owing
to the defeat which he had suffered and still more because he had quartered his army in Venusia in the height
of the summer whilst Hannibal was marching where he pleased in Italy. He had an enemy in the person of C.
Publicius Bibulus, a tribune of the plebs. Immediately after Marcellus met with his defeat, this man
blackened his character and stirred up a bitter feeling against him by the harangues which he was constantly
delivering to the plebs, and now he was actually working to get him deprived of his command. Claudius'
friends obtained permission for him to leave his second in command at Venusia, and come home to clear
himself of the charges brought against him, and they also prevented any attempt to deprive him of his
command in his absence. It so happened that when Marcellus reached Rome to avert the threatened disgrace,
Fulvius also arrived to conduct the elections.
The question of depriving Marcellus of his command was debated in the Circus Flaminius before an
enormous gathering in which all orders of the State were represented. The tribune of the plebs launched his
accusations, not only against Marcellus, but against the nobility as a whole. It was due to their crooked policy
and lack of energy, he said, that Hannibal had for ten years been holding Italy as his province; he had, in fact,
passed more of his life there than in Carthage. The Roman people were now reaping the fruits of the
extension of Marcellus' command, his army after its double defeat was now passing the summer comfortably
housed in Venusia. Marcellus made such a crushing reply to the tribune's speech by simply recounting all that
he had done that not only was the proposal to deprive him of his command rejected, but the next day all the
centuries with absolute unanimity elected him consul. T. Quinctius Crispinus, who was praetor at the time,
was assigned to him as his colleague. The next day came the election of praetors. Those elected were P.
Licinius Crassus Dives, the Pontifex Maximus, P. Licinius Varus, Sextus Julius Caesar and Q. Claudius. In
the middle of the elections considerable anxiety was created by the intelligence that Etruria had revolted. C.
Calpurnius, who was acting in that province as propraetor, had written to say that the movement was started
at Arretium. Marcellus, the consul elect, was hastily despatched thither to ascertain the position of affairs, and
if he thought it sufficiently serious to require the presence of his army he was to transfer his operations from
Apulia to Etruria. The Etruscans were sufficiently intimidated by these measures to keep quiet. Envoys came
from Tarentum to ask for terms of peace under which they might retain their liberties and their laws. The
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 47
Page No 50
senate directed them to come again as soon as Fabius arrived in Rome. The Roman Games and the Plebeian
Games were celebrated this year, each for one day. The curule aediles were L. Cornelius Caudinus and
Servius Sulpicius Galba; the plebeian aediles, C. Servilius and Q. Caecilius Metellus. It was asserted that
Servilius had no legal right to be either tribune of the plebs or aedile, because there was sufficient evidence
that his father, who was supposed to have been killed by the Boii near Mutina ten years previously when
acting as agrarian commissioner, was really alive and a prisoner in the hands of the enemy.
It was now the eleventh year of the Punic War when M. Marcellus and T. Quinctius Crispinus entered upon
their duties as consuls. Reckoning the consulship to which Marcellus had been elected, but in which, owing
to some flaw in his election, he did not act, this was the fifth time he had held the office. Italy was assigned to
both consuls as their province and the two armies which the previous consuls had had, and a third which
Marcellus had commanded and which was at the time in Venusia, were all placed at their disposal so that
they could select which of the three they chose. The remaining one would then be given to the commander to
whom Tarentum and the Sallentini should be allotted. The other spheres were allocated as follows: P.
Licinius Varus was placed in charge of the city jurisdiction, P. Licinius Crassus the Pontifex Maximus had
the jurisdiction over aliens and also wherever the senate might determine. Sicily was allotted to Sextus Julius
Caesar, Tarentum to Q. Claudius the Flamen. Q. Fulvius Flaccus had his command extended for a year and
was to hold the district of Capua, which T. Quinctius had previously held as praetor, with one legion. C.
Hostilius Tubulus also had his command extended, he was to succeed C. Calpurnius as propraetor with two
legions in Etruria. A similar extension of command was granted to L. Veturius Philo, who was to remain in
Gaul as propraetor with the two legions he had previously commanded. The same order was made in the case
of C. Aurunculeius, who had administered Sardinia as praetor; the fifty ships which P. Scipio was to send
from Spain were assigned to him for the protection of his province. P. Scipio and M. Silanus were confirmed
in their commands for another year. Out of the ships which Scipio had brought with him from Italy or
captured from the Carthaginianseighty in allhe was instructed to send fifty to Sardinia, as there were
rumours of extensive naval preparations at Carthage. It was said that they were fitting out 200 ships to
menace the whole of the Italian, Sicilian and Sardinian coasts. In Sicily it was arranged that the army of
Cannae should be given to Sextus Caesar whilst M. Valerius Laevinus. whose command had also been
extended, was to retain the fleet of seventy ships which was stationed off Sicily, and augment it with the
thirty vessels which had lain at Tarentum during the past year. This fleet of one hundred ships he was to
employ, if he thought good, in harrying the African seaboard. P. Sulpicius was to continue to hold Macedonia
and Greece in check with the fleet which he had. There was no change in the case of the two legions which
were quartered in the City. The consuls were commissioned to raise fresh troops where it was necessary, in
order to bring up the legions to their proper strength. Thus oneandtwenty legions were under arms to
defend the Roman empire. P. Licinius Varus, the City praetor, was charged with the task of refitting the thirty
old warships which were laid up at Ostia, and manning with their full complement twenty new ones, so that
he might have a fleet of fifty ships for the protection of that part of the coast which was nearest to Rome. C.
Calpurnius received strict orders not to move his army from Arretium before the arrival of Tubulus who was
to succeed him; Tubulus was also enjoined to be especially on his guard in case any revolutionary projects
were formed.
The praetors left for their provinces, but the consuls were detained by religious matters; several portents had
been announced, and the omens drawn from the sacrificial victims were mostly unfavourable. News came
from Campania that two temples in Capuathose of Fortune and Marsas well as several sepulchral
monuments had been struck by lightning. To such an extent does a depraved superstition see the work of the
gods in the most insignificant trifles, that it was seriously reported that rats had gnawed the gold in the temple
of Jupiter in Cumae. At Casinum a swarm of bees had settled in the forum; at Ostia a gate and part of the wall
had been struck by lightning; at Caere a vulture had flown into the temple of Jupiter, and at Vulsinii the
waters of the lake had run with blood. In consequence of these portents a day of special intercession was
ordered. For several days fullgrown victims had been sacrificed without giving any propitious indications,
and it was long before the "peace of the gods" could be secured. It was on the heads of the consuls that the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 48
Page No 51
direful mischance prognosticated by these portents fell, the State remained unharmed. The Games of Apollo
had been celebrated for the first time in the consulship of Q. Fulvius and Appius Claudius under the
superintendence of the City praetor, P. Cornelius Sulla. Subsequently all the City praetors celebrated them in
turn, but they used to vow them for one year only, and there was no fixed day for their celebration. This year
a serious epidemic attacked both the City and the country districts, but it resulted more frequently in
protracted than in fatal illness. In consequence of this epidemic special intercessions were appointed at all the
chapels throughout the City, and P. Licinius Varus, the City praetor, was instructed to propose a measure to
the people providing that the Games of Apollo should always be celebrated on the same day. He was the first
to celebrate them under this rule, and the day fixed for their celebration was July 5th, which was henceforth
observed as the day.
Day by day the reports from Arretium became more serious and caused increasing anxiety to the senate.
Written instructions were sent to C. Hostilius, bidding him lose no time in taking hostages from the
townspeople, and C. Terentius Varro was sent with powers to receive them from him and conduct them to
Rome. As soon as he arrived, Hostilius ordered one of his legions which was encamped before the city to
enter it in military order, and he then disposed the men in suitable positions. This done, he summoned the
senators into the forum and ordered them to give hostages for their good behaviour. They asked for
fortyeight hours for consideration, but he insisted upon their producing the hostages at once, and threatened
in case of refusal to seize all their children the next day. He then issued orders to the military tribunes and
prefects of allies and centurions to keep a strict watch on the gates, and to allow no one to leave the city
during the night. There was too much slackness and delay in carrying out these instructions; before the guards
were posted at the gates seven of the principal senators with their children slipped out before it was dark.
Early on the morrow, when the senators began to assemble in the forum, the absence of these men was
discovered, and their property was sold. The rest of the senators offered their own children to the number of
one hundred and twenty; the offer was accepted, and they were entrusted to C. Terentius to be conveyed to
Rome. The report he gave to the senate made matters look still more serious. It seemed as though a rising
throughout Etruria was imminent. C. Terentius was accordingly ordered to proceed to Arretium with one of
the two City legions and occupy the place in force, C. Hostilius with the rest of the army was to traverse the
entire province and see that no opening was afforded for revolutionary disturbances. When C. Terentius and
his legion reached Arretium, he demanded the keys of the gates. The magistrates replied that they could not
find them, but he was convinced that they had been deliberately carried off and not lost through carelessness,
so he had fresh locks fitted on all the gates, and took especial precautions to have everything under his own
control. He earnestly impressed upon Hostilius the need of vigilance, and warned him that all hope of Etruria
remaining quiet depended upon his taking such precautions as to make any movement of disaffection
impossible.
There was an animated debate in the senate as to the treatment to be meted out to the Tarentines. Fabius was
present, and stood up for those whom he had subjugated; others took the opposite line, the majority regarded
their guilt as equal to that of Capua and deserving equally severe punishment. At last a resolution was
adopted embodying the proposal of Manlius Acilius, viz. that the town should be garrisoned and the entire
population confined within their walls until Italy was in a less disturbed state, when the whole question could
be reconsidered. An equally warm discussion arose in connection with M. Livius who had commanded the
force in the citadel. Some were for passing a formal vote of censure on him for having, through his
negligence, allowed the place to be betrayed to the enemy. Others considered that he ought to be rewarded for
having successfully defended the citadel for five years, and having done more than any one else to effect the
recapture of Tarentum. A third party, taking a middle course, urged that it was for the censors, not the senate,
to take cognisance of his action. This view was supported by Fabius, who remarked that he quite admitted
what Livius' friends were constantly asserting in that House, that it was owing to his efforts that Tarentum
had been retaken, for there would have been no recapture had it not previously been lost. One of the consuls,
T. Quinctius Crispinus, left with reinforcements for the army in Lucania which Q. Fulvius Flaccus had
commanded. Marcellus was detained by religious difficulties which one after another presented themselves.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 49
Page No 52
In the war with the Gauls he had vowed during the battle of Clastidium a temple to Honos and Virtus, but he
was prevented from dedicating it by the pontiffs. They said that one shrine could not be lawfully dedicated to
two deities, because in case it were struck by lightning, or some other portent occurred in it, there would be a
difficulty about the expiation, since it could not be known which deity was to be propitiated; one victim could
not be sacrificed to two deities except in the case of certain specified deities. A second temple was hastily
built to Virtus, but this was not dedicated by Marcellus. At last he started with reinforcements for the army
which he had left the previous year at Venusia. Seeing how Tarentum had enhanced Fabius' reputation,
Crispinus determined to attempt the capture of Locri in Bruttium. He had sent to Sicily for all kinds of
artillery and military engines, and had also collected a number of ships to attack that part of the city which
faced the sea. As, however, Hannibal had brought up his army to Lacinium, he abandoned the siege, and
hearing that his colleague had moved out by Venusia, he was anxious to join forces with him. With this view
he marched back into Apulia, and the two consuls encamped within three miles of each other in a place
between Venusia and Bantia. As all was now quiet at Locri Hannibal moved up into their neighbourhood. But
the consuls were quite sanguine of success; they drew out their armies for battle almost every day, feeling
perfectly certain that if the enemy would try his chance against two consular armies, the war would be
brought to a close.
Hannibal had already fought two battles with Marcellus during the past year, in one he had been victorious,
the other he lost. After this experience he felt that if he had to meet him again there was as much ground for
fear as for hope, and he was therefore far from feeling himself equal to the two consuls together. He decided
to employ his old tactics and looked out for a position suitable for an ambuscade. Both sides, however,
confined themselves to skirmishes, with varying success, and the consuls thought that as the summer was
being spun out in this way there was no reason why the siege of Locri should not be resumed. So they sent
written instructions to L. Cincius to take his fleet from Sicily to Locri, and as the walls of that city were open
to a land attack also, they ordered a portion of the army which was garrisoning Tarentum to be marched there.
These plans were disclosed to Hannibal by some people from Thurium, and he sent a force to block the road
from Tarentum. 3000 cavalry and 2000 infantry were concealed under a hill above Petelia. The Romans,
marching on without reconnoitring, fell into the trap, and 2000 were killed and 1500 taken prisoners. The rest
fled through the fields and woods back to Tarentum. Between the Carthaginian camp and that of the Romans
there was a wooded hill which neither side had taken possession of, for the Romans did not know what that
side of it was like which fronted the enemy, and Hannibal regarded it as better adapted for an ambuscade than
for a camp. He accordingly sent a force of Numidians during the night to conceal themselves in the wood,
and there they remained the following day without stirring from their position, so that neither they nor their
arms were visible. It was being everywhere remarked in the Roman camp that the hill ought to be seized and
strengthened with defences, for if Hannibal seized it they would have the enemy, so to speak, over their
heads. The idea impressed Marcellus, and he said to his colleague: "Why do we not go with a few horsemen
and examine the place? When we have seen it for ourselves we shall know better what to do." Crispinus
assented, and they started with 220 mounted men, 40 of whom were from Fregellae, the rest were Etruscans.
They were accompanied by two military tribunes, M. Marcellus, a son of the consul, and A. Manlius, and
also by two prefects of allies, L. Arrenius and Manius Aulius. Some writers assert that whilst Marcellus was
sacrificing on that day, the liver of the first victim was found to have no head; in the second all the usual parts
were present, but the head appeared abnormally large. The haruspex was seriously alarmed at finding after
misshaped and stunted parts such an excess of growth.
Marcellus, however, was seized with such a keen desire of engaging Hannibal that he never thought that their
respective camps were near enough to each other. As he was crossing the rampart on his way to the hill he
signalled to the soldiers to be at their posts, ready to get the baggage together and follow him in case he
decided that the hill which he was going to reconnoitre was suitable for a camp. There was a narrow stretch
of level ground in front of the camp, and from there a road led up to the hill which was open and visible from
all sides. The Numidians posted a vidette to keep a look out, not in the least anticipating such a serious
encounter as followed, but simply in the hope of intercepting any who had strayed too far from their camp
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 50
Page No 53
after wood or fodder. This man gave the signal for them to rise from their concealment. Those who were in
front of the Romans further up the hill did not show themselves until those who were to close the road behind
them had worked round their rear. Then they sprang up on all sides, and with a loud shout charged down.
Though the consuls were hemmed in, unable to force their way to the hill which was occupied, and with their
retreat cut off by those in their rear, still the conflict might have kept up for a longer time if the Etruscans,
who were the first to flee, had not created a panic among the rest. The Fregellans, however, though
abandoned by the Etruscans, maintained the conflict as long as the consuls were unwounded and able to cheer
them on and take their part in the fighting. But when both the consuls were wounded, when they saw
Marcellus fall dying from his horse, run through with a lance, then the little band of survivors fled in
company with Crispinus, who had been hit by two darts, and young Marcellus, who was himself wounded.
Aulus Manlius was killed, and Manius Aulius; the other prefect of allies, Arrenius, was taken prisoner. Five
of the consuls' lictors fell into the hands of the enemy, the rest were either killed or escaped with the consul.
Fortythree of the cavalry fell either in the battle or the pursuit, eighteen were made prisoners. There was
great excitement in the camp, and they were hurriedly preparing to go to the consuls' assistance when they
saw one consul and the son of the other coming back wounded with the scanty remnant who had survived the
disastrous expedition. The death of Marcellus was to be deplored for many reasons, especially because, with
an imprudence not to be expected at his agehe was more than sixtyand altogether out of keeping with the
caution of a veteran general, he had flung into headlong danger not only himself but his colleague as well,
and almost the entire commonwealth. I should make too long a digression about one solitary fact, if I were to
go through all the accounts of the death of Marcellus. I will only cite one authority, Coelius. He gives three
different versions of what happened, one handed down by tradition, another copied from the funeral oration
delivered by his son who was on the spot, and a third which Coelius gives as the ascertained result of his own
researches. Amidst the variations of the story, however, most authorities agree that he left the camp to
reconnoitre the position, and all agree that he was ambushed.
Hannibal felt convinced that the enemy would be thoroughly cowed by the death of one consul and the
disablement of the other, and he determined not to lose the opportunity thus afforded him. He at once
transferred his camp to the hill where the action had been fought, and here he interred the body of Marcellus,
which had been found. Crispinus, unnerved by the death of his colleague and his own wound, left his position
in the dead of night and fixed his camp on the first mountains he came to, in a lofty position protected on
every side. And now the two commanders showed great wariness, the one trying to deceive his opponent, the
other taking every precaution against him. When the body of Marcellus was discovered, Hannibal took
possession of his rings. Fearing that the signet might be used for purposes of forgery, Crispinus sent couriers
to all the cities round, warning them that his colleague was killed and his ring in the possession of the enemy,
so that they were not to trust any missives sent in the name of Marcellus. Soon after the consul's messenger
had arrived at Salapia, a despatch was received from Hannibal purporting to come from Marcellus, and
stating that he would come to Salapia the night after they received the letter, and the soldiers of the garrison
were to hold themselves in readiness in case their services should be required. The Salapians saw through the
ruse, and supposed that he was seeking an opportunity for punishing them, not only for their desertion of the
Carthaginian cause, but also for the slaughter of his cavalry. They sent back the messenger, who was a
Roman deserter, that he might not be cognisant of the measures which they decided to take, and then made
their dispositions. The townsmen took their places on the walls and other commanding positions, the patrols
and sentries for the night were strengthened and kept a most careful look out, and the pick of the garrison
were formed up near the gate to which the enemy were expected to come.
Hannibal approached the city about the fourth watch. The head of the column was formed of Roman
deserters; they carried Roman weapons, their armour was Roman, and they were all speaking Latin. When
they reached the gate, they called up the sentinels and told them to open the gate as the consul was there. The
sentinels, pretending to be just wakened up, bustled about in hurry and confusion and began slowly and
laboriously to open the gate. It was closed by a portcullis, and by means of levers and ropes they raised it just
high enough for a man to pass upright under it. The passage was hardly sufficiently clear when the deserters
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 51
Page No 54
rushed through the gate, each trying who should be first. About 600 were inside, when suddenly the rope
which held it was let go, and the portcullis fell with a great crash. The Salapians attacked the deserters, who
were marching carelessly along with their shields hung from their shoulders, as though friends; others on the
gate tower and the walls kept off the enemy outside with stones and long poles and javelins. So Hannibal,
finding himself caught in his own trap, drew off and proceeded to raise the siege of Locri. Cincius was
making a most determined attack upon the place with siege works and artillery of every kind which he had
brought from Sicily, and Mago was beginning to despair of holding the place when his hopes were suddenly
revived by the news of Marcellus' death. Then came a messenger with the tidings that Hannibal had sent his
Numidian cavalry on in advance, and was following as rapidly as he could with his infantry. As soon as the
signal was given from the lookout of the approach of the Numidians, Mago flung the city gate open and
made a vigorous sortie. Owing to the suddenness of his attack which was quite unlooked for, rather than to
his fighting strength, the battle was for some time an even one, but when the Numidians came up, such a
panic seized the Romans that they abandoned the siege works and the engines with which they were battering
the walls, and fled in disorder to the sea and to their ships. Thus by the arrival of Hannibal, the siege of Locri
was raised.
As soon as Crispinus found that Hannibal had withdrawn to Bruttium he ordered M. Marcellus to take the
army which his late colleague had commanded back to Venusia. Though hardly able to bear the motion of the
litter owing to his serious wounds, he started with his legions for Capua. In a despatch which he sent to the
senate, after alluding to his colleague's death and the critical condition he himself was in, he explained that he
could not go to Rome for the elections because he did not think he could bear the fatigue of the journey, and
also because he was anxious about Tarentum in case Hannibal should leave Bruttium and direct his armies
against it. He also requested that some men of wisdom and experience might be sent to him, as it was
necessary for him to confer with them as to the policy of the Republic. The reading of this despatch evoked a
feeling of deep regret at the death of the one consul and serious apprehensions for the life of the other. In
accordance with his wish they sent young Q. Fabius to the army at Venusia, and three representatives to the
consul, viz. Sextus Julius Caesar, L. Licinius Pollio and L. Cincius Alimentus who had returned from Sicily a
few days previously. Their instructions were to tell the consul that if he could not come to Rome to conduct
the elections, he was to nominate a Dictator in Roman territory for the purpose. If the consul had gone to
Tarentum, the praetor Q. Claudius was required to withdraw the legions stationed there, and march with them
into that district in which he could protect the greatest number of cities belonging to the allies of Rome.
During the summer M. Valerius sailed across to Africa with a fleet of a hundred vessels. Landing his men
near the city of Clupea, he ravaged the country far and wide without meeting with any resistance. The news
of the approach of a Carthaginian fleet caused the pillagers to return in haste to their ships. This fleet
consisted of eightythree ships, and the Roman commander successfully engaged it not far from Clupea.
After capturing eighteen ships and putting the rest to flight, he returned to Lilybaeum with a great quantity of
booty. In the course of the summer Philip lent armed assistance to the Achaeans, who had implored his aid
against Machanidas, tyrant of the Lacedaemonians, and against the Aetolians. Machanidas was harassing
them with a border warfare, and the Aetolians had crossed the narrow sea between Naupactus and Patraethe
local name of the latter is Rhionand were making forays in Achaia. There were rumours also of an intention
on the part of Attalus, king of Asia, to visit Europe, as the Aetolians had at the last meeting of their national
council made him one of their two supreme magistrates.
This being the position of affairs, Philip moved southward into Greece. The Aetolians under the command of
Pyrrhias, who had been elected Attalus' colleague, met Philip at the city of Lamia. They were supported by a
contingent furnished by Attalus, and also by about 1000 men whom P. Sulpicius had sent from his fleet.
Philip won two battles against Pyrrhias, and in each battle the enemy lost not less than 1000 men. From that
time the Aetolians were afraid to meet him in the field and remained inside the walls of Lamia. Philip
accordingly marched his army to Phalara. This place lies on the Maliac Gulf, and was formerly the seat of a
considerable population, owing to its splendid harbour, the safe anchorages in the neighbourhood, and other
maritime and commercial advantages. Whilst he was here he was visited by embassies from Ptolemy king of
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 52
Page No 55
Egypt, and from Rhodes and Athens and Chios, with the view of bringing about a reconciliation between him
and the Aetolians. Amynandor, king of the Athamanians, a neighbour of the Aetolians. was also acting on
their behalf as peacemaker. But the general concern was not so much for the Aetolians, who were more
warlike than the rest of the Greeks, as for the liberty of Greece, which would be seriously endangered if
Philip and his kingdom took an active part in Greek politics. The question of peace was held over for
discussion in the meeting of the Achaean League. The place and time for this meeting were settled, and in the
meantime a thirty days' armistice was arranged. From Phalara the king proceeded through Thessaly and
Boeotia to Chalcis in Euboea, in order to prevent Attalus, who he understood was sailing thither, from
landing on the island. Leaving a force there in case Attalus should sail across in the meantime, he went on
with a small body of cavalry and light infantry to Argos. Here the presidency of the Heraean and Nemean
Games was conferred upon him by the popular vote, on the ground that the kings of Macedon trace their
origin to Argos. As soon as the Heraean Games were over he went off to Aegium to the meeting of the
League which had been fixed some time previously.
The discussion turned upon the question of putting a stop to the war with the Aetolians, so that neither the
Romans nor Attalus might have any reason for entering Greece. But everything was upset by the Aetolians
almost before the armistice had expired, after they learnt that Attalus had reached Aegina and that a Roman
fleet was anchored off Naupactus. They had been invited to attend the meeting of the League, and the
deputations who had been trying to secure peace at Phalara were also present. They began by complaining of
certain trivial infringements of the armistice, and ended by declaring that hostilities could never cease until
the Achaeans restored Pylos to the Messenians, and Atintania was given back to Rome, and the Ardiaei to
Scerdilaedus and Pleuratus. Philip was naturally indignant at those whom he had defeated proposing terms of
peace to him, their conqueror. He reminded the assembly that when the question of peace was referred to him
and an armistice was granted, it was not with any expectation that the Aetolians would remain quiet, but
solely in order that all the allies might bear him witness that whilst he was seeking a basis for peace, the other
side were determined to find a pretext for war. Since there was no chance of peace being established, he
dismissed the council and returned to Argos, as the time for the Nemean Games was approaching and he
wished to add to their popularity by his presence. He left a force of 4000 men to protect the Achaeans, and at
the same time took over from them five ships of war. He intended to add these to the fleet recently sent from
Carthage; with these vessels and the ships which Prusias was despatching from Bithynia he had made up his
mind to offer battle to the Romans who were masters of the sea in that part of the world.
While the king was preoccupied with the preparations for the Games, and was allowing himself more
recreation than was possible in a time of active warfare, P. Sulpicius, setting sail from Naupactus, brought up
his fleet between Sicyon and Corinth, and spread devastation far and wide over that wonderfully fertile land.
This news brought Philip away from the Games. He hurried off with his cavalry, leaving the infantry to
follow, and caught the Romans whilst they were dispersed through the fields in all directions, laden with
plunder, and utterly unsuspicious of danger. They were driven to their ships, and the Roman fleet returned to
Naupactus, far from happy at the result of their raid. Philip returned to see the close of the Games, and their
splendour was enhanced by the news of his victory, for whatever its importance it was still a victory over the
Romans. What added to the universal enjoyment of the festival was the way in which he gratified the people
by laying aside his diadem and purple robe and the rest of his royal state so as to be, as far as appearance
went, on a level with the rest. Nothing is more grateful than this to the citizens of a free State. He would
indeed have given them every reason to hope that their liberties would remain unimpaired if he had not
sullied and disgraced all by his insufferable debauchery. Accompanied by one or two boon companions, he
ranged as he pleased through homes and families, day and night, and by stooping to the status of a private
citizen he attracted less notice and was therefore under less restraint. The liberty with which he had cheated
others he turned in his own case to unbridled licence, and he did not always effect his purpose by money or
blandishments but even resorted to criminal violence. It was a dangerous thing for husbands and fathers to
place obstacles in the way of the king's lusts by any untimely scruples on their part. A lady called Polycratia,
the wife of Aratus, one of the leading men amongst the Achaeans, was taken away from her husband and
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 53
Page No 56
carried off to Macedon under a promise from the king to marry her. In the midst of these debaucheries the
sacred festival of the Nemean Games came to a close. A few days afterwards Philip marched to Dymae to
expel the Aetolian garrison which the Eleans had invited and admitted into their city. Here the king was met
by the Achaeans under Cycliadas their captain general, who were burning with resentment against the Eleans
for having deserted the Achaean League, and furious against the Aetolians for having, as they believed,
brought the arms of Rome against them. The combined force left Dymae and crossed the Larisus, which
separates the territory of Elia from that of Dymae.
The first day of their advance in the enemy's country was spent in plunder and destruction. The next day they
marched in battle array towards the city, the cavalry having been sent forward to provoke the Aetolians to
fight, which they were perfectly ready to do. The invaders were unaware that Sulpicius had sailed across from
Naupactus to Cyllene with fifteen ships and landed 4000 men who had entered Elis in the night. As soon as
they recognised the standards and arms of Rome amongst the Aetolians and Eleans, the unlookedfor sight
filled them with great alarm. At first the king wanted to retire his men, but they were already engaged with
the Aetolians and Tralliansan Illyrian tribeand as he saw that they were being hard pressed, he charged the
Roman cohort with his cavalry. His horse was wounded by a javelin and fell, throwing the king over its head,
and a fierce contest began, on both sides, the Romans making desperate efforts to reach him and his own men
doing their best to protect him. Compelled as he was to fight on foot amongst mounted men, he showed
conspicuous courage. The struggle became at length an unequal one, many were falling round him and many
were wounded, and he was seized by his own men and placed on another horse on which he fled. That day he
fixed his camp about five miles from Elis; the following day he led the whole of his force to a fortified place
called Pyrgon. This was a fort belonging to the Eleans, and he had been informed that a large number of
peasants with their cattle had taken refuge there through fear of being plundered. Destitute as they were of
organisation and arms, the mere fact of his approach filled them with terror and they were all made prisoners.
This booty was some compensation for his humiliating defeat at Elis. Whilst he was distributing the spoil and
the captivesthere were 4000 prisoners and 20,000 head of cattle large and smalla messenger arrived from
Macedonia stating that a certain Eropus had taken Lychnidos after bribing the commandant of the garrison,
that he was in possession of some villages belonging to the Dassaretii and was also making the Dardanians
restless. Philip at once abandoned hostilities with the Aetolians and prepared to return home. He left a force
of 2500 of all arms under the command of Menippus and Polyphantas to protect his allies, and taking his
route through Achaia and Boeotia, and across Euboea, he arrived at Demetrias in Thessaly on the tenth day
after his departure from Dymae.
There he was met by still more alarming tidings; the Dardanians were pouring into Macedonia and were
already in occupation of the Orestides district, they had even descended into the Argestaean Plain. The report
was current that Philip had been killed; the rumour was due to the fact that in the encounter with the
plundering parties from the Roman fleet at Sicyon, his horse flung him against a tree and one of the horns of
his helmet was broken off by a projecting branch. This was afterwards picked up by an Aetolian and taken to
Scerdilaedus, who recognised it. Hence the rumour. After the king had left Achaia Sulpicius sailed to Aegina
and Scipio in Spain joined forces with Attalus. The Achaeans in conjunction with the Aetolians and Eleans
fought a successful action not far from Messene. Attalus and Sulpicius went into winter quarters in Aegina.
At the close of this year the consul T. Quinctius died of his wounds, having previously nominated T. Manlius
Torquatus Dictator to conduct the elections. Some say he died in Tarentum, others, in Campania. This
accident of two consuls being killed in a quite unimportant action had never occurred in any previous war,
and it left the republic, so to speak, in a state of orphanhood. The Dictator named C. Servilius, who was
curule aedile at the time, his Master of the Horse. On the first day of their session the senate instructed the
Dictator to celebrate the Great Games. M. Aemilius, who was city praetor at the time, had celebrated them in
the consulship of C. Flaminius and Cnaeus Servilius, and had made a vow that they should be celebrated in
five years' time. The Dictator celebrated them accordingly, and made a vow that they should be repeated at
the following lustrum. Meanwhile, as the two consular armies had no generals and were in such close
proximity to the enemy, both senate and people were anxious that all other business should be postponed, and
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 54
Page No 57
consuls elected as soon as possible. It was felt that, above all, men ought to be elected whose courage and
skill would be proof against the wiles of the Carthaginian, for all through the war the hot and hasty
temperament of different commanders had proved disastrous, and in that very year the consuls had been led
by their eagerness to come to grips with the enemy into snares of which they did not suspect the existence.
The gods, however, out of pity for the name of Rome, spared the unoffending armies and visited the rashness
of the consuls on their own heads.
When the patricians began to look round and see who would make the best consuls, one man stood out
conspicuouslyC. Claudius Nero. The question was, who was to be his colleague? He was regarded as a man
of exceptional ability but too impulsive and venturesome for such a war as the present one, or such an enemy
as Hannibal, and they felt that his impetuous temperament needed to be restrained by a cool and prudent
colleague. Their thoughts turned to M. Livius. He had been consul several years previously, and after laying
down his consulship had been impeached before the Assembly and found guilty. This disgrace he felt so
keenly that he removed into the country, and for many years was a stranger to the City and to all public
gatherings. It was about eight years after his condemnation that the consuls M. Claudius Marcellus and M.
Valerius Laevinus brought him back to the City, but his squalid garments, his neglected hair and beard, his
whole appearance showed pretty clearly that he had not forgotten the humiliation. The censors L. Veturius
and P. Licinius made him trim his hair and beard and lay aside his squalid garments and take his place in the
senate and discharge other public duties. Even then he contented himself with a simple "aye" or "no" to the
question before the House, and in the event of a division with a silent vote, until the case of his kinsman
Marcus Livius Macatus came up, when the attack upon his relative's fair fame compelled him to rise in his
place and address the House. The voice which after so long an interval was once more heard was listened to
with deep attention, and the senators remarked to one another that the people had wronged an innocent man
to the great detriment of the commonwealth, which in the stress of a grievous war had been unable to avail
itself of the help and counsel of such a man as that. Neither Q. Fabius nor M. Valerius Laevinus could be
assigned to C. Nero as his colleague because it was illegal for two patricians to be elected, and the same
difficulty existed in the case of T. Manlius, who had moreover already refused a consulship and would
continue to refuse it. If they gave him M. Livius as colleague, they felt that they would have a splendid pair
of consuls. This suggestion put forward by the senators was approved by the great body of the people. There
was only one among all the citizens who rejected it and that was the man on whom the honour was to be
conferred. He accused them of inconsistency. "When he appeared in mourning garments at his trial they felt
no pity for him, now, in spite of his refusal, they would have him put on the white robe of the candidate. They
heaped penalties and honours on the same man. If they thought that he was a good citizen, why had they
condemned him as a criminal? If they had found him to be a criminal, why were they entrusting him with a
second consulship after he had misused the first?" The senators severely censured him for complaining and
protesting in this way, and reminded him of M. Furius Camillus who after being recalled from exile restored
his country to its ancient seat. "We ought to treat our country," they told him, "like our parents, and disarm its
severity by patience and submission." By their united efforts they succeeded in making him consul with C.
Claudius Nero.
Three days later came the election of praetors. Those elected were L. Porcius Licinius, C. Mamilius and the
two Catos, C. Hostilius and A. Hostilius. When the elections were over and the Games concluded, the
Dictator and the Master of the Horse resigned office. C. Terentius Varro was sent into Etruria as propraetor to
relieve C. Hostilius, who was to take over the command of the army at Tarentum which the consul T.
Quinctius had had. L. Manlius was to go to Greece and find out what was going on there. As the Olympian
Games were to be held this summer, and as a very large gathering would be there, he was, if he could get
through the enemy's forces, to be present at them and inform those Sicilians who had fled there from the war
and any citizens of Tarentum who had been banished by Hannibal that they might return home and rest
assured that the Roman people would restore to them all that they possessed before the war. As the coming
year seemed to be fraught with most serious dangers, and the State was for the moment without consuls, all
eyes were turned to the consulselect, and it was universally hoped that they would lose no time in balloting
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 55
Page No 58
for their provinces and deciding what enemy each of them would have to meet. On the initiative of Q. Fabius
Maximus a resolution was earned in the senate insisting upon their becoming reconciled to each other. Their
quarrel was only too notorious, and was embittered by Livius' resentment at the insulting treatment he had
received, for he felt that his honour had been sullied by his prosecution. This made him all the more
implacable; he said that there was no need for any reconciliation, each would act with greater energy and
alertness if he knew that failure to do so would give his enemy an advantage. However, the senate
successfully exerted their authority, and they were induced to lay aside their private differences and conduct
the affairs of State with one mind and one policy. Their provinces were not contiguous as in former years, but
widely separated, at the extremities of Italy. One was to act against Hannibal in Bruttium and Lucania, the
other in Gaul against Hasdrubal, who was reported to be now nearing the Alps. The consul to whose lot Gaul
should fall was to choose either the army which was in Gaul or the one in Etruria, and would receive in
addition the army of the City. The one to whom Bruttium fell was to raise fresh legions in the City and select
one of the two consular armies of the previous year. The other one Q. Fabius was to take over as proconsul,
in which capacity he was to act for the year. C. Hostilius, who had already been removed from Etruria to
Tarentum, was now again to change from Tarentum to Capua. One legion was given him, the one which
Fulvius had commanded.
Hasdrubal's appearance in Italy was looked forward to with daily increasing anxiety. The first news came
from the Massilians, who reported that he had passed into Gaul, and that there was widespread excitement
amongst the natives owing to a rumour that he had brought a large amount of gold for the payment of
auxiliary troops. The Massilian envoys were accompanied on their return by Sextus Antistius and M.
Raecius, who were sent to make further investigations. These reported that they had sent emissaries,
accompanied by some Massilians who had friends amongst, the Gaulish chieftains, to gain information and
that they had definitely ascertained that Hasdrubal intended to cross the Alps the next spring with an
enormous army. The only thing that kept him from advancing at once was that the Alps were insurmountable
in winter. P. Aelius Paetus was appointed and consecrated augur in place of M. Marcellus, and Cnaeus
Cornelius Dolabella was consecrated "King of Sacrifices" in place of M. Marcius, who had been dead for two
years. The lustrum was closed by the censors P. Sempronius Tuditanus and M. Cornelius Cethegus. The
census returns gave the number of citizens as 137,108, a considerably smaller number than the one before the
beginning of the war. For the first time since Hannibal had invaded Italy the comitium is stated to have been
covered over and the Roman Games were celebrated for one day by the curule aediles Q. Metellus and C.
Servilius. The Plebeian Games also were celebrated for two days by the plebeian aediles C. Mamilius and M.
Caecilius Metellus. They also gave three statues to the temple of Ceres, and a banquet was held in honour of
Jupiter on the occasion of the Games. The consuls then entered upon office; C. Claudius Nero for the first
time, M. Livius for the second. As they had balloted for their provinces they ordered the praetors to ballot for
theirs. The urban jurisdiction fell to C. Hostilius, and the jurisdiction over aliens was also committed to him
in order that three praetors might be available for foreign service. A. Hostilius was allotted to Sardinia, C.
Mamilius to Sicily and L. Porcius to Gaul. The total military strength amounted to twentythree legions and
were thus distributed: each of the consuls had two; four were in Spain; each of the three praetors had two in
Sardinia, Sicily and Gaul respectively; C. Terentius had two in Etruria; Quintus Fulvius had two in Bruttium;
Q. Claudius had two in the neighbourhood of Tarentum and the Sallentine district; C. Hostilius Tubulus had
one at Capua; and two were raised in the City for home defence. The people appointed the military tribunes
for the first four legions; the consuls commissioned the rest.
Prior to the departure of the consuls religious observances were kept up for nine days owing to the fall of a
shower of stones at Veii. As usual, no sooner was one portent announced than reports were brought in of
others. At Menturnae the temple of Jupiter and the sacred grove of Marica were struck with lightning, as were
also the wall of Atella and one of the gates. The people of Menturnae reported a second and more appalling
portent; a stream of blood had flowed in at their gate. At Capua a wolf had entered the gate by night and
mauled one of the watch. These portents were expiated by the sacrifice of fullgrown victims, and special
intercessions for the whole of one day were ordered by the pontiffs. Subsequently a second nine days'
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 56
Page No 59
observance was ordered in consequence of a shower of stones which fell in the Armilustrum. No sooner were
men's fears allayed by these expiatory rites than a fresh report came, this time from Frusino, to the effect that
a child had been born there in size and appearance equal to one four years old, and what was still more
startling, like the case at Sinuessa two years previously, it was impossible to say whether it was male or
female. The diviners who had been summoned from Etruria said that this was a dreadful portent, and the
thing must be banished from Roman soil, kept from any contact with the earth, and buried in the sea. They
enclosed it alive in a box, took it out to sea, and dropped it overboard.
The pontiffs also decreed that three bands of maidens, each consisting of nine, should go through the City
singing a hymn. This hymn was composed by the poet Livius, and while they were practicing it in the temple
of Jupiter Stator, the shrine of Queen Juno on the Aventine was struck by lightning. The diviners were
consulted, and they declared that this portent concerned the matrons and that the goddess must be appeased
by a gift. The curule aediles issued an edict summoning to the Capitol all the matrons whose homes were in
Rome or within a distance of ten miles. When they were assembled they selected twentyfive of their number
to receive their offerings; these they contributed out of their dowries. From the sum thus collected a golden
basin was made and carried as an oblation to the Aventine, where the matrons offered a pure and chaste
sacrifice. Immediately afterwards the Keepers of the Sacred Books gave notice of a day for further sacrificial
rites in honour of this deity. The following was the order of their observance. Two white heifers were led
from the temple of Apollo through the Carmental Gate into the City; after them were borne two images of the
goddess, made of cypress wood. Then twentyseven maidens, vested in long robes, walked in procession
singing a hymn in her honour, which was perhaps admired in those rude days, but which would be considered
very uncouth and unpleasing if it were recited now. After the train of maidens came the ten Keepers of the
Sacred Books wearing the toga praetexta, and with laurel wreaths round their brows. From the Carmental
Gate the procession marched along the Vicus Jugarius into the Forum, where it stopped. Here the girls, all
holding a cord, commenced a solemn dance while they sang, beating time with their feet to the sound of their
voices. They then resumed their course along the Vicus Tuscus and the Velabrum, through the Forum
Boarium, and up the Clivus Publicius till they reached the temple of Juno. Here the two heifers were
sacrificed by the Ten Keepers, and the cypress images were carried into the shrine.
After the deities had been duly appeased, the consuls proceeded with the levy and conducted it with a rigour
and exactitude such as no one could remember in former years. The appearance of a fresh enemy in Italy
redoubled the apprehensions generally felt as to the issue of the war, and at the same time there was a smaller
population from which to obtain the men required. Even the maritime colonies which were declared to have
been solemnly and formally exempted from military service were called upon to furnish soldiers, and on their
refusal a day was fixed on which they were to appear before the senate and state, each for themselves, the
grounds on which they claimed exemption. On the appointed day representatives attended from Ostia,
Alsium, Antium, Anxur, Menturnae, Sinuessa, and from Sena on the upper sea. Each community produced its
title to exemption, but as the enemy was in Italy, the claim was disallowed in the case of all but twoAntium
and Ostiaand in the case of these, the men of military age were compelled to take an oath that they would
not sleep outside their walls for more than thirty nights as long as the enemy was in Italy. Everybody was of
opinion that the consuls ought to take the field at the earliest possible moment; for Hasdrubal must be met on
his descent from the Alps, otherwise he might foment a rising amongst the Cisalpine Gauls and in Etruria,
and Hannibal must be kept fully employed, so as to prevent his leaving Bruttium and meeting his brother.
Still Livius delayed. He did not feel confidence in the troops assigned to him, and complained that his
colleague had his choice of three splendid armies. He also suggested the recall to the standards of the
volunteer slaves. The senate gave the consuls full powers to obtain reinforcements in any way they thought
best, to select what men they wanted from all the armies and to exchange and transfer troops from one
province to another as they thought best in the interest of the State. The consuls acted in perfect harmony in
carrying out all these measures. The volunteer slaves were incorporated in the nineteenth and twentieth
legions. Some authorities assert that Publius Scipio sent M. Livius strong reinforcements from Spain
including 8000 Gauls and Spaniards, 2000 legionaries, and 1000 Numidian and Spanish horse, and that this
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 57
Page No 60
force was transported to Italy by M. Lucretius. It is further stated that C. Mamilius sent 3000 bowmen and
slingers from Sicily.
The excitement and alarm in Rome were heightened by a despatch from L. Porcius, the propraetor
commanding in Gaul. He announced that Hasdrubal had left his winter quarters and was actually crossing the
Alps. He was to be joined by a force of 8000 men raised and equipped amongst the Ligurians, unless a
Roman army were sent into Liguria to occupy the attention of the Gauls. Porcius added that he would himself
advance as far as he safely could with such a weak army. The receipt of this despatch made the consuls hurry
on the enlistment, and on its completion they left for their provinces at an earlier date than they had fixed.
Their intention was that each of them should keep his enemy in his own province and not allow the brothers
to unite or concentrate their forces. They were materially assisted by a miscalculation which Hannibal made.
He quite expected his brother to cross the Alps during the summer, but remembering his own experience in
the passage first of the Rhone and then of the Alps, and how for five months he had had to carry on an
exhausting struggle against man and against nature, he had no idea that Hasdrubal's passage would be as easy
and rapid as it really was. Owing to this mistake he was too late in moving out of his winter quarters.
Hasdrubal, however, had a more expeditious march and met with fewer difficulties than either he or anyone
else expected. Not only did the Arverni and the other Gallic and Alpine tribes give him a friendly reception,
but they followed his standard. He was, moreover, marching mainly over roads made by his brother where
before there were none, and as the Alps had now been traversed to and fro for twelve years he found the
natives less savage. Previously they had never visited strange lands nor been accustomed to seeing strangers
in their own country; they had held no intercourse with the rest of the world. Not knowing at first the
destination of the Carthaginian general, they imagined that he wanted their rocks and strongholds and
intended to carry off their men and cattle as plunder. Then when they heard about the Punic War with which
Italy had been alight for twelve years, they quite understood that the Alps were only a passage from one
country to another, and that the struggle lay between two mighty cities, separated by a vast stretch of sea and
land, which were contending for power and dominion. This was the reason why the Alps lay open to
Hasdrubal. But whatever advantage he gained by the rapidity of his march was forfeited by the time he
wasted at Placentia, where he commenced a fruitless investment instead of attempting a direct assault. Lying
as it did in flat open country he thought that the town would be taken without difficulty, and that the capture
of such an important colony would deter the others from offering any resistance. Not only was his own
advance hampered by this investment, but he also retarded Hannibal's movements, who, on learning of his
brother's unexpectedly rapid march, had quitted his winter quarters, for Hannibal knew what a slow business
sieges usually are and had not forgotten his own unsuccessful attempt on that very colony after his victory at
the Trebia.
The consuls left for the front, each by a separate route, and their departure was watched with feelings of
painful anxiety. Men realised that the republic had two wars on its hands simultaneously; they recalled the
disasters which followed upon Hannibal's appearance in Italy, and wondered what gods would be so
propitious to the City and the empire as to grant victory over two enemies at once in widely distant fields. Up
till now heaven had preserved it by balancing victories against defeats. When the cause of Rome had been
brought to the ground in Italy at Thrasymenus and at Cannae, the successes in Spain raised it up once more;
when reverse after reverse had been sustained in Spain and the State lost its two generals and the greater part
of both their armies, the many successes achieved in Italy and Sicily stayed the collapse of the battered
republic, whilst the distance at which that unsuccessful war was waged in the remotest corner of the world
afforded in itself a breathing space. Now they had two wars on hand, both in Italy; two generals who bore
illustrious names were closing round Rome; the whole weight of the peril, the whole burden of the conflict
had settled down on one spot. The one who was first victorious would in a few days unite his forces with the
other. Such were the gloomy forebodings, and they were deepened by the recollections of the past year made
so mournful by the death of both consuls. In this depressed and anxious mood the population escorted the
consuls to the gates of the City, as they left for their respective provinces. There is an utterance recorded of
M. Livius which shows his bitter feeling towards his fellowcitizens. When on his departure Q. Fabius
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 58
Page No 61
warned him against giving battle before he knew the sort of enemy he had to meet, Livius is said to have
replied that he would fight as soon as he caught sight of the enemy. When asked why he was in such a hurry
he said: "Either I shall win special distinction from conquering such an enemy or a wellearned if not very
honourable pleasure from the defeat of my fellowcitizens." Before the consul Claudius Nero arrived in his
province, Hannibal, who was marching just outside the frontiers of the territory of Larinum on his way to the
Sallentini, was attacked by C. Hostilius Tubulus. His light infantry created considerable disorder amongst the
enemy, who were not prepared for action; 4000 of them were slain, and nine standards captured. Q. Claudius
had quartered his troops in various cities in the Sallentine district, and on hearing of the enemy's approach he
quitted his winter quarters and took the field against him. Not wishing to meet both armies at once, Hannibal
left the neighbourhood by night, and withdrew into Bruttium. Claudius marched back into the Sallentine
territory, and Hostilius while on his way to Capua met the consul Claudius Nero near Venusia. Here a corps
d'elite was selected from both armies, consisting of 40,000 infantry and 2500 cavalry, which the consul
intended to employ against Hannibal. The rest of the troops Hostilius was ordered to take to Capua and then
hand them over to Q. Fulvius the proconsul.
Hannibal assembled the whole of his force, those in winter quarters and those on garrison duty in Bruttium,
and marched to Grumentum in Lucania, with the intention of recovering the towns whose inhabitants had
been led by their fears to go over to Rome. The Roman consul marched to the same place from Venusia,
making careful reconnaissances as he advanced, and fixed his camp about a mile and a half from the enemy.
The rampart of the Carthaginian camp seemed to be almost touching the walls of Grumentum; there was
really half a mile between them. Between the two hostile camps the ground was level; on the Carthaginian
left and the Roman right stretched a line of bare hills which did not arouse any suspicion on either side, as
they were quite devoid of vegetation and afforded no hollows where an ambuscade could be concealed. In the
plain between the camps small skirmishes took place between the advanced posts, the one object of the
Roman evidently being to prevent the retirement of the enemy; Hannibal, who was anxious to get away,
marched on to the field with his whole force marshalled for battle. The consul, adopting his enemy's tactics
with all the more chance of success since there could be no fears of an ambuscade on such open ground, told
off five cohorts strengthened with five maniples of Roman troops to mount the hill by night and take their
station in the dip on the other side. He placed T. Claudius Asellus a military tribune and P. Claudius a prefect
of allies in command of the party, and gave them instructions as to the moment when they were to rise from
ambush and attack the enemy. At dawn of the following day he led out the whole of his force, horse and foot,
to battle. Soon after Hannibal, too, gave the signal for action, and his camp rang with the shouts of his men as
they ran to arms. Scrambling through the gates of the camp, mounted and unmounted men each trying to be
first they raced over the plain in scattered groups towards the enemy. When the consul saw them in this
disorder he ordered C. Aurunculeius, military tribune of the third legion, to send the cavalry attached to his
legion at full gallop against the enemy, for, as he said, they were scattered over the plain like a flock of sheep
and could be ridden down and trampled under foot before they could close their ranks.
Hannibal had not left his camp, when he heard the noise of the battle. He lost not a moment in leading his
force against the enemy. The Roman cavalry had already created a panic amongst the foremost of their
assailants, the first legion and the allied contingent on the left wing were coming into action, the enemy in no
sort of formation were fighting with infantry or cavalry as they happened to meet them. As their
reinforcements and supports came up the fighting became more general, and Hannibal would have succeeded
in getting his men into order in spite of the confusion and panica task almost impossible for any but veteran
troops under a veteran commanderif they had not heard in their rear the shouts of the cohorts and maniples
running down the hill, and saw themselves in danger of being cut off from their camp. The panic spread and
flight became general in all parts of the field. The nearness of their camp made their flight easy, and for this
reason their losses were comparatively small, considering that the cavalry were pressing on their rear and the
cohorts charging along an easy road down the hill were attacking their flank Still, over 8000 men were killed
and 700 made prisoners, nine standards were captured, and of the elephants which had proved useless in the
confusion and hurry of the fight four were killed and two captured. About 500 Roman and allies fell. The
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 59
Page No 62
next day the Carthaginians remained quiet. The Roman general marched in battle order on to the field, but
when he saw that no standards were advancing from the opposing camp he ordered his men to gather the
spoils of the slain and collect the bodies of their comrades and bury them in one common grave. Then for
several days in succession he marched up so close to the gates that it seemed as though he were going to
attack the camp, until Hannibal made up his mind to depart. Leaving numerous fires burning and tents
standing on the side of the camp facing the Romans, and a few Numidians who were to show themselves on
the rampart and at the gates, he set out with the intention of marching into Apulia. As soon as it grew light,
the Roman army approached the rampart and the Numidians made themselves visible on the ramparts and at
the gates. After deceiving their enemy for some time they rode off at full speed to join their comrades. When
the consul found that the camp was silent and that even the few who had been patrolling it at dawn were
nowhere visible, he sent two troopers into the camp to reconnoitre. They brought back word that they had
examined it and found it safe everywhere, on which he ordered the troops to enter. He waited while the
soldiers secured the plunder, and then the signal was given to retire; long before nightfall he had his soldiers
back in camp. Very early next morning he started in pursuit and, guided by the local information supplied to
him and the traces of their retreat, he succeeded, by making forced marches, in coming up with the enemy not
far from Venusia. There a second irregular action took place in which the Carthaginians lost 2000 men. After
this Hannibal decided to give no further opportunity of fighting and, in a series of night marches over the
mountains, made for Metapontum. Hanno was in command of the garrison here, and he was sent with a few
troops into Bruttium to raise a fresh army there. The rest of his force Hannibal incorporated with his own, and
retracing his steps reached Venusia, and from there went on to Canusium. Nero never lost touch with him,
and while he was following him to Metapontum he sent Q. Fulvius into Lucania, so that that country might
not be left without a defending force.
After Hasdrubal had raised the siege of Placentia, he sent off four Gaulish and two Numidian troopers with
despatches to Hannibal. They had passed through the midst of the enemy, and almost traversed the length of
Italy, and were following Hannibal's retreat to Metapontum when they missed the road and were brought to
Tarentum. Here they were caught by a Roman foraging party dispersed amongst the fields, and conducted to
the propraetor Q. Claudius. At first they tried to mislead him by evasive answers, but the fear of torture
compelled them to confess the truth, and they informed him that they were the bearers of despatches from
Hasdrubal to Hannibal. They and the despatches, with seals intact, were handed over to L. Verginius, one of
the military tribunes. He was furnished with an escort of two troops of Samnite cavalry, and ordered to
conduct the six troopers to the consul Claudius Nero. After the despatches had been translated to him, and the
prisoners had been examined, the consul saw that the regulation which confined each consul to the province
and the army and the enemy which had been designated for him by the senate would not in the present
instance be beneficial to the republic. He would have to venture upon a startling innovation, and though at the
outset it might create as much alarm among his own countrymen as amongst the enemy, it would, when
carried through, turn their great fear into great rejoicing. Hasdrubal's despatches he sent on to the senate
together with one from himself explaining his project. As Hasdrubal had written to say that he would meet
his brother in Umbria, he advised the senators to recall the Roman legion from Capua, raise troops in Rome,
and with this City force oppose the enemy at Narnia. This was what he wrote to the senate. But he also sent
couriers into the districts through which he intended to marchLarinum, Marrucina, Frentanum and
Praetutiato warn the inhabitants to collect all the supplies from the towns and the country districts and have
them in readiness on the line of march to feed the troops. They were also to bring their horses and other
draught animals so that there might be an ample supply of vehicles for the men who fell out through fatigue.
Out of the whole of his army he selected a force of 6000 infantry and 1000 cavalry, the flower of the Roman
and allied contingents, and gave out that he intended to seize the nearest city in Lucania with its Carthaginian
garrison, so that all should be ready to march. Starting by night, he turned off in the direction of Picenum.
Leaving Q. Catius, his second in command, in charge of the camp he marched as rapidly as he could to join
his colleague.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 60
Page No 63
The excitement and alarm in Rome were quite as great as they had been two years previously, when the
Carthaginian camp was visible from the walls and gates of the City. People could not make up their minds
whether the consul's daring march was more to be lauded or censured, and it was evident that they would
await the result before pronouncing for or against ita most unfair way of judging. "The camp." they said, "is
left, near an enemy like Hannibal, with no general, with an army from which its main strength, the flower of
its soldiery, has been withdrawn. Pretending to march into Lucania, the consul has taken the road to Picenum
and Gaul, leaving the safety of his camp dependent upon the ignorance of the enemy as to what direction he
and his division have taken. What will happen if they find that out, if Hannibal with his whole army decides
to start in pursuit of Nero with his 6000 men, or attacks the camp, left as it is to be plundered, without
defence, without a general with full powers or one who can take the auspices?" The former disasters in this
war, the recollection of the two consuls killed the previous year, filled them with dread. "All those things," it
was said, "happened when the enemy had only one commander and one army in Italy; now there are two
distinct wars going on, two immense armies, and practically two Hannibals in Italy, for Hasdrubal too is a
son of Hamilcar and is quite as able and energetic a commander as his brother. He has been trained in war
against Rome for many years in Spain, and distinguished himself by the double victory in which he
annihilated two Roman armies and their illustrious captains. In the rapidity of his march from Spain, and the
way in which he has roused the tribes of Gaul to arms, he can boast of far greater success than even Hannibal
himself, for he got together an army in those very districts in which his brother lost the greater part of his
force by cold and hunger, the most miserable of all deaths." Those who were acquainted with recent events in
Spain went on to say that he would meet in Nero a general who was no stranger to him, for he was the
general whom Hasdrubal, when intercepted in a narrow pass, had duped and baffled as though he were a
child by making illusory proposals for peace. In this way they exaggerated the strength of the enemy and
depreciated their own, their fears made them look on the darkest side of everything.
When Nero had placed a sufficient distance between himself and the enemy to make it safe for him to reveal
his design, he made a brief address to his men. "No commander," he said, "has ever formed a project
apparently more risky but really less so than mine. I am leading you to certain victory. My colleague did not
enter upon this campaign until he had obtained from the senate such a force of infantry and cavalry as he
deemed sufficient, a force indeed more numerous and better equipped than if he were advancing against
Hannibal himself. However small the addition you are now making to it, it will be enough to turn the scale.
When once the news spreads on the battlefieldand I will take care that it does not spread soonerthat a
second consul has arrived with a second army, it will make victory no longer doubtful. Rumour decides
battles; slight impulses sway men's hopes and fears; if we are successful you yourselves will reap almost all
the glory of it, for it is always the last weight added that has the credit of turning the balance. You see for
yourselves what admiring and enthusiastic crowds welcome you as you march along." And indeed they did
advance amidst vows and prayers and blessings from the lines of men and women who were gathered
everywhere out of the fields and homesteads. They were called the defenders of the republic, the vindicators
of the City and sovereignty of Rome; upon their swords and strong right hands depended all security and
liberty for the people and their children. The bystanders prayed to all the gods and goddesses to grant them a
safe and prosperous march, a successful battle and an early victory over their foes. As they were now
following them with anxious hearts, so they prayed that they might fulfil the vows which they were making
when they went forth with joy to meet them flushed with the pride of victory. Then they invited the soldiers
to take what they had brought for them, each begging and entreating them to take from his hands rather than
from any one else's what would be of use to them and their draught animals, and loading them with presents
of all sorts. The soldiers showed the utmost moderation and refused to accept anything that was not
absolutely necessary. They did not interrupt their march or leave the ranks or even halt to take food; day and
night they went steadily on, hardly allowing themselves the rest which nature demanded. The consul sent
messages in advance to announce his coming to his colleague, and to enquire whether it would be better to
come secretly or openly, by night or by day, and also whether they were to occupy the same camp or separate
ones. It was thought better that he should come by night.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 61
Page No 64
The consul Livius had issued a secret order by means of the tessera that the tribunes should take in the
tribunes who were coming; the centurions, the centurions; the cavalry, their mounted comrades; and the
legionaries, the infantry. It was not desirable to extend the camp, his object was to keep the enemy in
ignorance of the other consul's arrival. The crowding together of a larger number of men in the restricted
space afforded by the tents was rendered all the easier because Claudius' army, in their hurried march, had
brought hardly anything with them except their arms. On the march, however, their numbers had been
augmented by volunteers, partly old soldiers who had served their time and partly young men who were
anxious to join. Claudius enlisted those whose appearance and strength seemed to qualify them for service.
Livius' camp was in the neighbourhood of Sena, and Hasdrubal was about half a mile distant. When he found
that he was nearing the place, the consul halted where he was screened by the mountains, so as not to enter
the camp before night. Then the men entered in silence and were conducted to the tents, each by a man of his
own rank, where they received the warmest of welcomes and most hospitable entertainment. Next day a
council of war was held, at which the praetor L. Porcius Licinus was present. His camp was now contiguous
with that of the consuls; before their arrival he had adopted every possible device to baffle the Carthaginian
by marching along the heights and seizing the passes, so as to check his advance, and also by harassing his
columns whilst on the march. Many of those present at the council were in favour of postponing battle in
order that Nero might recruit his troops worn out with the length of the march and want of sleep, and also
might have a few days for getting to know his enemy. Nero tried to dissuade them from this course, and
earnestly implored them not to endanger the success of his plan after he had made it perfectly safe by the
rapidity of his march. Hannibal's activity, he argued, was so to speak paralysed by a mistake which he would
not be long in rectifying; he had neither attacked the camp in the absence of its commander, nor had he made
up his mind to follow him on his march. Before he moved, it was possible to destroy Hasdrubal's army and
march back into Apulia. "To give the enemy time by putting off the engagement would be to betray their
camp in Apulia to Hannibal and give him a clear road into Gaul, so that he would be able to form a junction
with Hasdrubal when and where he pleased. The signal for action must be given at once, and we must march
on to the field and profit by the mistakes which both our enemies are making, the distant one and the one
close at hand. That one does not know that he has to deal with a smaller army than he supposes, this one is
not aware that he has to meet a larger and stronger one than he imagines." As soon as the council broke up,
the red ensign was displayed and the army at once took the field.
The enemy were already standing in front of their camp, in battle order. But there was a pause. Hasdrubal had
ridden to the front with a handful of cavalry, when he noticed in the hostile ranks some wellworn shields
which he had not seen before, and some unusually lean horses; the numbers, too, seemed greater than usual.
Suspecting the truth he hastily withdrew his troops into camp and sent men down to the river from which the
Romans obtained water, to catch if they could some of the watering parties and see whether they were
especially sunburnt, as is generally the case after a long march. He ordered, at the same time, mounted patrols
to ride round the consul's camp and observe whether the lines had been extended in any direction and to
notice at the same time whether the buglecall was sounded once or twice in the camp. They reported that
both the campsM. Livius' camp and that of L. Porciuswere just as they had been, no addition had been
made, and this misled him. But they also informed him that the buglecall was sounded once in the praetor's
camp and twice in the consul's, and this perturbed the veteran commander, familiar as he was with the habits
of the Romans. He concluded that both the consuls were there and was anxiously wondering how the one
consul had got away from Hannibal. Least of all could he suspect what had actually occurred, namely that
Hannibal had been so completely outwitted that he did not know the whereabouts of the commander and the
army whose camp had been so close to his own. As his brother had not ventured to follow the consul, he felt
quite certain that he had sustained a serious defeat, and he felt the gravest apprehensions lest he should have
come too late to save a desperate situation, and lest the Romans should enjoy the same good fortune in Italy
which they had met with in Spain. Then again he was convinced that his letter had never reached Hannibal,
but had been intercepted by the consul who then hastened to crush him. Amidst these gloomy forebodings he
ordered the camp fires to be extinguished, and gave the signal at the first watch for all the baggage to be
collected in silence. The army then left the camp. In the hurry and confusion of the night march the guides,
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 62
Page No 65
who had not been kept under very close observation, slipped away; one hid himself in a place selected
beforehand, the other swam across the Metaurus at a spot well known to him. The column deprived of its
guides marched on aimlessly across country, and many, worn out by sleeplessness flung themselves down to
rest, those who remained with the standards becoming fewer and fewer. Until daylight showed him his route,
Hasdrubal ordered the head of the column to advance cautiously, but finding that owing to the bends and
turns of the river he had made little progress, he made arrangements for crossing it as soon as daybreak
should show him a convenient place. But he was unable to find one, for the further he marched from the sea,
the higher were the banks which confined the stream, and by thus wasting the day he gave his enemy time to
follow him.
Nero with the whole of the cavalry was the first to come up, then Porcius followed with the light infantry.
They began to harass their wearied enemy by repeated charges on all sides, until Hasdrubal stopped a march
which began to resemble a flight, and decided to form camp on a hill which commanded the river. At this
juncture Livius appeared with the heavy infantry, not in order of march, but deployed and armed for
immediate battle. All their forces were now massed together, and the line was formed; Claudius Nero taking
command of the right wing, Livius of the left, while the centre was assigned to the praetor. When Hasdrubal
saw that he must give up all idea of entrenching himself and prepare to fight, he stationed the elephants in the
front, the Gauls near them on the left to oppose Claudius, not so much because he trusted them as because he
hoped they would frighten the enemy, while on the right, where he commanded in person, he posted the
Spaniards in whom as veteran troops he placed most confidence. The Ligurians were stationed in the centre
behind the elephants. His formation was greater in depth than length and the Gauls were covered by a hill
which extended across their front. That part of the line which Hasdrubal and his Spaniards held engaged the
Roman left; the whole of the Roman right was shut out from the fighting, the hill in front prevented them
from making either a frontal or a flank attack. The struggle between Livius and Hasdrubal was a fierce one,
and both sides lost heavily. Here were the two captains, the greater part of the Roman infantry and cavalry,
the Spaniards who were veteran soldiers and used to the Roman methods of fighting, and also the Ligurians, a
people hardened by warfare. To this part of the field the elephants too had been driven, and at their first onset
they threw the front ranks into confusion and forced the standards to give way. Then as the fighting became
hotter and the noise and shouting more furious, it became impossible to control them, they rushed about
between the two armies as though they did not know to which side they belonged, just like ships drifting
rudderless. Nero made fruitless efforts to scale the hill in front of him, calling out repeatedly to his men,
"Why have we made so long a march at such breakneck speed? "When he found it impossible to reach the
enemy in that direction, he detached some cohorts from his right wing where he saw that they were more
likely to stand on guard than to take any part in the fighting, led them past the rear of his division and to the
surprise of his own men as much as of the enemy commenced an attack upon the enemy's flank. So rapidly
was this maneuver executed, that almost as soon as they showed themselves on the flank, they were attacking
the rear of the enemy. Thus attacked on every side, front, flank and rear, Spaniards and Ligurians alike were
simply massacred where they stood. At last the carnage reached the Gauls. Here there was very little fighting,
for a great many had fallen out during the night and were lying asleep everywhere in the fields, and those
who were still with the standards were worn out by the long march and want of sleep, and being quite unable
to stand fatigue could hardly sustain the weight of their armour. It was now midday, and the heat and thirst
made them gasp for breath, until they were cut down or made prisoners without offering any resistance.
More elephants were killed by their drivers than by the enemy. They had a carpenter's chisel and a mallet,
and when the maddened beasts rushed among their own side the driver placed the chisel between the ears just
where the head is joined to the neck and drove it home with all his might. This was the quickest method that
had been discovered of putting these huge animals to death when there was no hope of controlling them, and
Hasdrubal was the first to introduce it. Often had this commander distinguished himself in other battles, but
never more than in this one. He kept up the spirits of his men as they fought by words of encouragement and
by sharing their dangers; when, weary and dispirited, they would no longer fight, he rekindled their courage
by his entreaties and reproaches; he rallied those in flight and often revived the battle where it had been
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 63
Page No 66
abandoned. At last when the fortune of the day was decisively with the enemy he refused to survive that great
army which had followed him, drawn by the magic of his name, and setting spurs to his horse dashed against
a Roman cohort. There he fell fightinga death worthy of Hamilcar's son and Hannibal's brother. Never
during the whole of the war had so many of the enemy perished in a single battle. The death of the
commander and the destruction of his army were regarded as an adequate repayment for the disaster of
Cannae. 56,000 of the enemy were killed, 5400 taken prisoners, and a great quantity of plunder was secured,
especially of gold and silver. Above 3000 Romans who had been captured by the enemy were recovered, and
this was some consolation for the losses incurred in the battle. For the victory was by no means a bloodless
one; about 8000 Romans and allies were killed. So satiated were the victors with bloodshed and carnage that
when it was reported to Livius on the following day that the Cisalpine Gauls and Ligurians who had taken no
part in the battle or had escaped from the field were marching off in a body without general or standards or
any one to give the word of command, and that a single squadron of cavalry could wipe out the whole lot, the
consul replied: "Let some survive to carry the news of their defeat and our victory."
The night after the battle Nero started off at a more rapid pace than he had come, and in six days reached his
camp and was once more in touch with Hannibal. His march was not watched by the same crowds as before,
because no messengers preceded him, but his return was welcomed with such extravagant delight that people
were almost beside themselves for joy. As to the state of feeling in Rome, it is impossible to describe it, or to
picture the anxiety with which the citizens waited for the result of the battle or the enthusiasm which the
report of the victory aroused. Never from the day when the news came that Nero had commenced his march
had any senator left the House, or the people the Forum from sunrise to sunset. The matrons, as they could
give no active help, betook themselves to prayers and intercessions; they thronged all the shrines and assailed
the gods with supplications and vows. Whilst the citizens were in this state of anxious suspense, a vague
rumour was started to the effect that two troopers belonging to Narnia had gone from the battlefield to the
camp there which was holding the road to Umbria with the announcement that the enemy had been cut to
pieces. People listened to the rumour, but they could not take it in, the news was too great, too joyful for them
to realise or to accept as true, and the very speed at which it had travelled made it less credible, for the battle
was reported as having taken place only two days previously. Then followed a despatch from L. Manlius
Acidinus, reporting the arrival of the two troopers in his camp. When this despatch was carried through the
Forum to the praetor's tribunal the senators left their seats, and such was the excitement of the people as they
pushed and struggled round the door of the senatehouse that the courier could not get near it. He was
dragged away by the crowd, who demanded with loud shouts that the despatch should be read from the rostra
before it was read in the senatehouse. At last the magistrates succeeded in forcing back and restraining the
populace, and it became possible for all to share in the joyous news they were so impatient to learn. The
despatch was read first in the senatehouse, and then in the Assembly. It was listened to with different
feelings according to each man's temperament; some regarded the news as absolutely true, others would not
believe it till they had the consul's despatch and the report of the envoys.
Word was brought that the envoys were approaching. Everybody young and old alike ran out to meet them,
each eager to drink in the good tidings with eyes and ears, and the crowd extended as far as the Mulvian
bridge. The envoys were L. Veturius Philo, P. Licinius Varus and Q. Caecilius Metellus. They made their
way to the Forum surrounded by a crowd which represented every class of the population, and besieged by
questions on all sides as to what had really happened. No sooner did any one hear that the army of the enemy
and its commander had been slain whilst the consuls and their army were safe, than he hastened to make
others sharers of his joy. The senatehouse was reached with difficulty, and with much greater difficulty was
the crowd prevented from invading the space reserved for the senators. Here the despatch was read, and then
the envoys were conducted to the Assembly. After the despatch was read, L. Veturius gave fuller details and
his narrative was received with bursts of applause, which finally swelled into universal cheers, the Assembly
being hardly able to contain itself for joy. Some ran to the temples to give thanks to heaven, others hurried
home that their wives and children might hear the good news. The senate decreed a three days' thanksgiving
"because the consuls, M. Livius and C. Claudius Nero, had preserved their own armies in safety and
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 27. Scipio in Spain 64
Page No 67
destroyed the army of the enemy and its commander." C. Hostilius, the praetor, issued the order for its
observance. The services were attended by men and women alike, the temples were crowded all through the
three days, and the matrons in their most splendid robes, accompanied by their children, offered their
thanksgivings to the gods, as free from anxiety and fear as though the war were over. This victory also
relieved the financial position. People ventured to do business just as in a time of peace, buying and selling,
lending and repaying loans. After Nero had returned to camp he gave orders for Hasdrubal's head, which he
had kept and brought with him, to be thrown in front of the enemies' outpost, and the African prisoners to be
exhibited just as they were in chains. Two of them were released with orders to go to Hannibal and report all
that had happened. Stunned by the blow which had fallen on his country and on his family, it is said that
Hannibal declared that he recognised the doom which awaited Carthage. He broke up his camp, and decided
to concentrate in Bruttium, the remotest corner of Italy, all his supporters whom he could no longer protect,
whilst scattered in the different cities. The whole population of Metapontum had to leave their homes
together with all the Lucanians who acknowledged his supremacy, and were transported into Bruttian
territory.
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain
Though Hasdrubal's invasion had shifted the burden of war to Italy and brought corresponding relief to Spain,
war was suddenly renewed in that country which was quite as formidable as the previous one. At the time of
Hasdrubal's departure Spain was divided between Rome and Carthage as follows: Hasdrubal Gisgo had
retreated to the ocean littoral near Gades, the Mediterranean coastline and almost the whole of Eastern
Spain was held by Scipio on behalf of Rome. A new general took Hasdrubal's place, named Hanno, who
brought over a fresh army, and marched into Celtiberia, which lies between the Mediterranean and the ocean,
and here he soon raised a very considerable army. Scipio sent M. Silanus against him with a force of not
more than 10,000 infantry and 500 cavalry. Silanus marched with all the speed he could, but his progress was
impeded by the bad state of the roads and by the narrow mountain passes, obstacles which are met with in
most parts of Spain. In spite of these difficulties he outstripped not only any natives who might have carried
tidings, but even any floating rumours of his advance, and with the assistance of some Celtiberian deserters
who acted as guides he succeeded in finding the enemy. When he was about ten miles distant, he was
informed by his guides that there were two camps near the road on which he was marching; the one on the
left was occupied by the Celtiberians, a newly raised army about 9000 strong, the one on the right by the
Carthaginians. The latter was carefully guarded by outposts, pickets and all the usual precautions against
surprise; the Celtiberian camp was without any discipline, and all precautions were neglected as might be
expected of barbarians and raw levies who felt all the less fear because they were in their own country.
Silanus decided to attack that one first, and kept his men as much to the left as possible, so as not to be seen
by the Carthaginian outposts. After sending on his scouts he advanced rapidly against the enemy.
He was now about three miles away and none of the enemy had yet noticed his advance, the rocks and
thickets which covered the whole of this hilly district concealed his movements. Before making his final
advance, he ordered his men to halt in a valley where they were effectually hidden and take food. The
scouting parties resumed and confirmed the statements of the deserters, on which the Romans, after placing
the baggage in the centre and arming themselves for the combat, advanced in order of battle. The enemy
caught sight of these when they were a mile distant and hurriedly prepared to meet them. As soon as Mago
heard the shouting and confusion he galloped across from his camp to take command. There were in the
Celtiberian army 4000 men with shields and 200 cavalry, making up a regular legion. These were his main
strength and he stationed them in the front; the rest who were lightly armed he posted in reserve. In this
formation he led them out of the camp, but they had hardly crossed the rampart when the Romans hurled their
javelins at them. The Spaniards stooped to avoid them, and then sprang up to discharge their own, which the
Romans who were in their usual close order received on their overlapping shields; then they closed up foot to
foot and fought with their swords. The Celtiberians, accustomed to rapid evolutions, found their agility
useless on the broken ground, but the Romans, who were used to stationary fighting, found no inconvenience
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 65
Page No 68
from it beyond the fact that their ranks were sometimes broken when moving through narrow places or
patches of brushwood. Then they had to fight singly or in pairs, as if they were fighting duels.
These very obstacles, however, by impeding the enemy's flight, gave them up, as though bound hand and
foot, to the sword. Almost all the heavy infantry of the Celtiberians had fallen when the Carthaginian light
infantry, who had now come from the other camp, shared their fate. Not more than 2000 infantry escaped; the
cavalry, which had hardly taken any part in the battle, together with Mago also got away. The other general,
Hanno, was taken prisoner, together with those who were the last to appear in the field when the battle was
already lost. Mago, with almost the whole of his cavalry and his veteran infantry, joined Hasdrubal at Gades
ten days after the battle. The Celtiberian levies dispersed amongst the neighbouring forests and so reached
their homes. So far the war had not been a serious one, but there was all the material for a much greater
conflagration had it been possible to induce the other tribes to join the Celtiberians in arms; that possibility
was by this most timely victory destroyed. Scipio therefore eulogised Silanus in generous terms, and felt
hopeful of bringing the war to a termination if he on his part acted with sufficient promptitude. He advanced,
accordingly, into the remote corner of Spain where all the remaining strength of Carthage was concentrated
under Hasdrubal. He happened at the time to be encamped in the district of Baetica for the purpose of
securing the fidelity of his allies, but on Scipio's advance he suddenly moved away and in a march which
closely resembled a flight retreated to Gades on the coast. Feeling, however, quite certain that as long as he
kept his army together he would be the object of attack, he arranged, before he crossed over to Gades, for the
whole of his force to be distributed amongst the various cities, so that they could defend the walls whilst the
walls protected them.
When Scipio became aware of this breaking up of the hostile forces, he saw that to carry his arms from city to
city would involve a loss of time far greater than the results gained, and consequently marched back again.
Not wishing, however, to leave that district in the enemy's hands, he sent his brother Lucius with 10,000
infantry and 1000 cavalry to attack the richest city in that part of the country; the natives call it Orongi. It is
situated in the country of the Maessesses, one of the tribes of Southern Spain; the soil is fertile, and there are
also silver mines. Hasdrubal had used it as his base from which to make his incursions on the inland tribes.
Lucius Scipio encamped in the neighbourhood of the city, but before investing it, he sent men up to the gates
to hold a parley with the townsmen and endeavour to persuade them to put the friendship rather than the
strength of the Romans to the proof. As nothing in the shape of a peaceable answer was resumed, he
surrounded the place with a double line of circumvallation and formed his army into three divisions, so that
one division at a time could be in action while the other two were resting, and thus a continuous attack might
be kept up. When the first division advanced to the storm there was a desperate fight; they had the utmost
difficulty in approaching the walls and bringing up the scalingladders owing to the rain of missiles
showered down upon them. Even when they had planted the ladders against the walls and began to mount
them, they were thrust down by forks made for the purpose, iron hooks were let down upon others so that
they were in danger of being dragged off the ladders and suspended in midair. Scipio saw that what made
the struggle indecisive was simply the insufficient number of his men and that the defenders had the
advantage because they were fighting from their walls. He withdrew the division which was engaged, and
brought up the two others. In face of this fresh attack the defenders, worn out with meeting the former
assault, retreated hastily from the walls, and the Carthaginian garrison, fearing that the city had been
betrayed, left their various posts and formed into one body. This alarmed the townsmen, who dreaded lest the
enemy when once inside the city should massacre every one, whether Carthaginian or Spaniard. They flung
open one of the gates and burst out of the town, holding their shields in front of them in case missiles should
be hurled on them from a distance, and showing their empty right hands to make it plain that they had thrown
away their swords. Their action was misinterpreted either owing to the distance at which they were seen, or
because treachery was suspected, and a fierce attack was made upon the flying crowd, who were cut down as
though they were a hostile army. The Romans marched in through the open gate whilst other gates were
demolished with axes and mallets, and as each cavalry man entered he galloped in accordance with
instructions to the forum. The cavalry were supported by a detachment of triarii; the legionaries occupied the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 66
Page No 69
rest of the city. There was no plundering and, except in the case of armed resistance, no bloodshed. All the
Carthaginians and about a thousand of the townsmen who had closed the gates were placed under guard, the
town was handed over to the rest of the population and their property restored to them. About 2000 of the
enemy fell in the assault upon the city; not more than 90 of the Romans.
The capture of this city was a source of great gratification to those who had effected it, as it was also to the
commanderinchief and the rest of the army. The entry of the troops was a noteworthy sight owing to the
immense number of prisoners who preceded them. Scipio bestowed the highest commendation on his brother,
and declared that the capture of Orongis was as great an achievement as his own capture of New Carthage.
The winter was now coming on, and as the season would not admit of his making an attempt on Gades or
pursuing Hasdrubal's army, dispersed as it was throughout the province, Scipio brought his entire force back
into Hither Spain. After dismissing the legions to their winter quarters, he sent his brother to Rome with
Hanno and the other prisoners of high rank, and then retired to Tarraco. The Roman fleet under the command
of the proconsul M. Valerius Laevinus sailed during the year to Africa, and committed widespread
devastation round Utica and Carthage; plunder was carried off under the very walls of Utica and on the
frontiers of Carthage. On their return to Sicily they fell in with a Carthaginian fleet of seventy vessels. Out of
these seventeen were captured, four were sunk, the rest scattered in flight. The Roman army, victorious alike
on land and sea, returned to Lilybaeum with an enormous amount of plunder of every kind. Now that the
enemy's ships had been driven off and the sea rendered safe, large supplies of corn were conveyed to Rome.
It was in the beginning of this summer that the proconsul P. Sulpicius and King Attalus who, as already
stated, had wintered at Aegina, sailed for Lemnos with their combined fleets, the Roman vessels numbering
twentyfive and the king's ships, thirtyfive. In order to be in readiness to meet his enemies by land or sea,
Philip went down to Demetrias on the coast and issued orders for his army to assemble at Larissa by a given
day. When they heard of the king's arrival at Demetrias, deputations from all his allies visited him there. The
Aetolians, emboldened by their alliance with Rome and the arrival of Attalus, were ravaging their neighbours'
lands. Great alarm was created amongst the Acarnanians, the Boeotians and the inhabitants of Euboea, and
the Achaeans had further cause for apprehension, for, in addition to their war with the Aetolians, they were
threatened by Machanidas the tyrant of Lacedaemon, who had encamped not far from the Argive frontiers.
The deputations informed the king of the state of things, and one and all begged him to render them
assistance against the dangers which were threatening by land and sea. The condition of his own kingdom
was far from tranquil; reports were brought to him announcing that Scerdilaedus and Pleuratus were again
active and that Thracian tribes, especially the Maedi, were prepared to invade Macedonia as soon as the king
was involved in a distant war. The Boeotians and the States in the interior of Greece reported that the
Aetolians had closed the pass of Thermopylae at its narrowest part with a fosse and rampart to prevent him
from carrying succour to the cities of his allies. Even a lethargic leader would have been roused to activity by
all these disturbances round him. He dismissed the deputations with a definite promise that he would furnish
assistance to them all as time and circumstances allowed. For the moment the most pressing care was the city
of Peparethos, as King Attalus, who had sailed thither from Lemnos, was reported to be plundering and
destroying all the country round. Philip sent a detachment to protect the place. He also sent Polyphantas with
a small force into Boeotia, and Menippus, one of his generals, with 1000 peltasts to Chalcis. This force was
supplemented by 500 Agrianians, in order that the whole of the island might be protected. Philip himself
proceeded to Scotusa and ordered the Macedonian troops at Larissa to march there. Information was brought
to him here that the national council of the Aetolians had been summoned to meet at Heraclea and that
Attalus would be present to consult with them as to the conduct of the war. Philip accordingly proceeded
thither by forced marches, but did not reach the place till the council was broken up. He destroyed the crops,
however, which were almost ripe, especially round the gulf of the Aenianes, and then led his army back to
Scotusa. Leaving the bulk of his forces there he returned to Demetrias with his household troops. With the
view of meeting any movement on the part of the enemy, he sent men into Phocis, Euboea and Peparethos to
select elevated positions on which beacon fires might be lighted, and himself fixed an observation post on
Tisaeos, a peak of immense height. In this way he hoped to receive instant notice from the distant fires of any
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 67
Page No 70
movement on the part of the enemy. The Roman general and Attalus sailed from Peparethos to Nicaea, and
from there to the city of Oreus in Euboea. This is the first city in Euboea which you pass on your left hand as
you leave the Gulf of Demetrias for Chalcis and the Euripus. It was arranged between Attalus and Sulpicius
that the Romans should attack by sea and the king's troops by land.
It was not till the fourth day after their arrival that they commenced the attack, the interval having been spent
in secret conferences with Plator, whom Philip had made commandant of the garrison. The city has two
citadels, one overlooking the sea, the other in the heart of the city. From the latter a subterranean passage
leads down to the sea, and at one time terminated in a tower five stories high, which formed an imposing
defence. Here a violent contest took place, for the tower was plentifully stored with missiles of every kind,
and the engines and artillery had been brought up from the ships for use against the walls. Whilst every one's
attention was engrossed by the struggle going on here, Plator admitted the Romans through the gate of the
seaward citadel, and this was captured at once. Then the defenders, finding themselves forced back into the
city, tried to gain the other citadel. Men who were posted here for the purpose closed the gates against them,
and thus shut out from both citadels they were killed or made prisoners. The Macedonian garrison stood in a
close phalanx under the wall of the citadel, neither attempting to flee nor taking an active part in the fighting.
Plator persuaded Sulpicius to let them go and they were placed on board and landed at Demetrium in
Phthiotis. Plator himself joined Attalus. Encouraged by his easy success at Oreus, Sulpicius sailed at once
with his victorious fleet to Chalcis, but here the result by no means answered his expectations. The sea which
is wide and open at each end of the Euripus contracts here into a narrow channel, which at first sight presents
the appearance of a double harbour with two mouths opposite each other. But it would be difficult to find a
more dangerous roadstead for a fleet. Sudden tempestuous winds sweep down from the lofty mountains on
both sides, and the Euripus does not, as is commonly asserted, ebb and flow seven times a day at regular
intervals, but its waters, driven haphazard like the wind first in one direction and then in another, rush along
like a torrent down the side of a precipitous mountain, so that ships are never in quiet waters day or night.
After Sulpicius had anchored his fleet in these treacherous waters, he found that the town was protected on
the one side by the sea, and on the other, the land side, by very strong fortifications, whilst the strength of its
garrison and the loyalty of the officers, so different from the duplicity and treason at Oreus, made it
impregnable. After surveying the difficulties of his position, the Roman commander acted wisely in desisting
from his rash enterprise, and without any further loss of time sailed away to Cynos in Locris, a place situated
about a mile from the sea, which served as the emporium of the Opuntians.
The beacon fires at Oreus had given Philip warning, but through the treachery of Plator they were lighted too
late, and in any case Philip's inferiority in naval strength would have made it extremely difficult for him to
reach the island. In consequence of this delay he made no effort for its relief, but he hastened to the relief of
Chalcis as soon as he got the signal. Although this city is also situated on the island, it is separated from the
mainland by such a narrow strait as to allow of its being connected by a bridge, and it is therefore more easy
to approach it by land than by sea. Philip marched from Demetrias to Scotusa; he left that place at midnight,
and after routing the Aetolians who were holding the pass of Thermopylae drove them in confusion to
Heraclea. He finally reached Elatia in Phocis, having covered more than sixty miles in one day. Almost on
the very same day the city of the Opuntians was taken and sacked by Attalus. Sulpicius had left the spoils to
him, because Oreus had been sacked by the Romans a few days previously, when the king's troops were
elsewhere. Whilst the Roman fleet was lying off Oreus, Attalus was busily occupied in extorting
contributions from the principal citizens of Opus, utterly unaware of Philip's approach. So rapid was the
Macedonian advance that had not some Cretans who had gone foraging further than usual caught sight of the
hostile column in the distance, Attalus would have been completely surprised. As it was he fled, without
stopping to arm, in wild disorder to his ships, and the men were actually pushing their vessels off when Philip
appeared, and even from the water's edge created great alarm amongst the crews. Then he returned to Opus,
storming at gods and men because the chance of a great success had been almost snatched out of his hands.
He was just as furious with the Opuntians, for, though they might have held out till his arrival, no sooner did
they see the enemy than they voluntarily surrendered.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 68
Page No 71
After settling matters at Opus, he went on to Thronium. Attalus had sailed to Oreus, but on learning that
Prusias, the king of Bithynia, had violated the frontiers of his dominions he dropped all his projects in
Greece, including the Aetolian war, and sailed to Asia. Sulpicius took his fleet back to Aegina, whence he
had started in the beginning of spring. Philip captured Thronium with no more difficulty than Attalus had
experienced at Opus. The population of this city consisted of refugees from Thebes in Phthiotis. When the
place was captured by Philip, they escaped and put themselves under the protection of the Aetolians, who
assigned for their abode a city which had been ruined and abandoned in the previous war with Philip. After
his capture of Thronium he advanced to the capture of Tithronon and Drymiae, small unimportant towns in
Doris. Ultimately he reached Elatia, where it was arranged that the embassies from Ptolemy and the Rhodians
should meet him. Here they were discussing the question of bringing the Aetolian war to a closethe
ambassadors had been present at the recent council of the Romans and Aetolians at Heracleawhen news was
brought that Machanidas had decided to attack the Eleans in the midst of their preparations for the Olympic
Games. Philip thought it his duty to prevent this, and accordingly dismissed the ambassadors after assuring
them that he was responsible for the war and would place no obstacles in the way of peace, provided its terms
were fair and honourable. He then set off with his army in light marching order, and passed through Boeotia
to Megara, and from there he descended to Corinth. Here he collected supplies, and then advanced towards
Phlius and Pheneos. When he had reached Heraea he heard that Machanidas, alarmed at his rapid approach,
had made a hurried return to Lacedaemon. On receiving this intelligence he repaired to Aegium, in order to
be present at the meeting of the Achaean League; he also expected to find there the Carthaginian fleet, which
he had sent for in the hope of doing something by sea. The Carthaginians had left that place a few days
previously for Oxeae and then, when they heard that Attalus and the Romans had left Oreus, they sought
shelter in the harbours of Acarnania, fearing lest if they were attacked within the strait of Rhium, the neck of
the Gulf of Corinth, they should be overpowered.
Philip was extremely disappointed and vexed at finding that in spite of his rapid movements he was always
too late to do anything, and that Fortune mocked his energy and activity by snatching away every opportunity
from before his eyes. However, he concealed his disappointment in the presence of the council, and spoke in
a very confident tone. Appealing to gods and men he declared that at no time or place had he ever failed to go
with all possible speed wherever the clash of hostile arms was heard. It would be difficult, he continued, to
estimate whether the enemy's anxiety to flee or his own eagerness to fight played the greater part in the war.
In this way Attalus got away from Opus, and Sulpicius from Chalcis, and now Machanidas had slipped out of
his hands. But flight did not always mean victory, and it was impossible to regard as serious a war in which
when once you have come into touch with the enemy, you have conquered. The most important thing was the
enemy's own admission that they were no match for him, and in a short time he would win a decisive victory,
the enemy would find the result of the battle no better than they had anticipated. His allies were delighted
with his speech. He then made over Heraea and Triphylia to the Achaeans, and on their bringing forward
satisfactory evidence that Aliphera in Megalopolis had formed part of their territory, he restored that place
also to them. Subsequently with some vessels furnished by the Achaeansthree quadriremes and as many
biremeshe sailed to Anticyra. He had previously sent into the Gulf of Corinth seven quinqueremes and more
than twenty light vessels, intending to strengthen the Carthaginian fleet, and with these he proceeded to
Eruthrae in Aetolia near Eupalium, where he disembarked. The Aetolians were aware of his landing, for all
the men who were in the fields or in the neighbouring forts of Potidania or Apollonia fled to the woods and
the mountains; their flocks and herds which they were unable in their haste to drive away Philip secured and
placed on board. The whole of the plunder was despatched in charge of Nicias the praetor of the Achaeans to
Aegium; Philip, sending his army overland through Boeotia, went himself to Corinth, and from there to
Cenchreae. Here he reembarked, and sailing past the coast of Attica, round the headland of Sunium and
almost through the hostile fleets, arrived at Chalcis. In his address to the citizens he spoke in the highest
terms of their loyalty and courage in refusing to be moved by either threats or promises, and he urged them,
in case they were attacked, to show the same determination to be true to their ally if they thought their own
position preferable to that of Opus or Oreus. From Chalcis he sailed to Oreus, where he entrusted the
administration and defence of the city to those magnates who had fled on the capture of the place rather than
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 69
Page No 72
betray it to the Romans. Then he returned to Demetrias, the place from which he had started to render
assistance to his allies. He now proceeded to lay down the keels of 100 warships at Cassandrea, and a large
number of shipwrights were assembled for their construction. As matters were now quiet in Greece, owing to
the departure of Attalus and the effective assistance which Philip had given to his allies in their difficulties,
he returned to Macedonia to commence operations against the Maedi.
Just at the close of this summer Quintus Fabius, the son of Maximus, who was on the staff of the consul M.
Livius, came to Rome to inform the senate that the consul considered L. Porcius and his legions sufficient for
the defence of Gaul, in which case he, Livius, and his consular army might be safely withdrawn. The senate
recalled not only Livius, but his colleague as well, but the instructions given to each differed. M. Livius was
ordered to bring his troops back, but Nero's legions were to remain in their province, confronting Hannibal.
The consuls had been in correspondence with each other and had agreed that as they had been of the same
mind in their conduct of public affairs, so, though coming from opposite directions, they should approach the
City at the same time. Whichever should be the first to reach Praeneste was to wait there for his colleague,
and, as it happened, they both arrived there on the same day. After despatching a summons for the senate to
meet at the temple of Bellona in three days' time they went on together towards the City. The whole
population turned out to meet them with shouts of welcome, and each tried to grasp the consuls' hands;
congratulations and thanks were showered upon them for having, by their efforts, rendered the
commonwealth safe. When the senate was assembled they followed the precedent set by all victorious
generals and laid before the House a report of their military operations. Then they made request that in
recognition of their energetic and successful conduct of public affairs special honours should be rendered to
the gods and they, the consuls, should be allowed to enter the City in triumph The senators passed a decree
that their request should be granted out of gratitude to the gods in the first place, and then, next to the gods,
out of gratitude to the consuls. A solemn thanksgiving was decreed on their behalf, and each of them was
allowed to enjoy a triumph.
As they had been in perfect agreement as to the management of their campaign, they decided that they would
not have separate triumphs, and the following arrangement was made: As the victory had been won in the
province assigned to Livius, and as it had fallen to him to take the auspices on the day of battle, and further,
as his army had been brought back to Rome, whilst Nero's army was unable to leave its province, it was
decided that Livius should ride in the chariot at the head of his soldiers, and C. Claudius Nero alone on
horseback. The triumph thus shared between them enhanced the glory of both, but especially of the one who
allowed his comrade to surpass him in honour as much as he himself surpassed him in merit. "That
horseman," men said to one another, "traversed Italy from end to end in six days, and at the very time when
Hannibal believed him to be confronting him in Apulia he was fighting a pitched battle with Hasdrubal in
Gaul. So one consul had checked the advance of two generals, two great captains from the opposite corners
of Italy, by opposing his strategy to the one and meeting the other in person. The mere name of Nero had
sufficed to keep Hannibal quiet in his camp, and as to Hasdrubal, what brought about his defeat and
destruction but Nero's arrival in the field? The one consul may ride in a chariot with as many horses as he
pleases, the real triumph belongs to the other who is borne on horseback through the City; even if he went on
foot Nero's renown would never die, whether through the glory he acquired in war, or the contempt he
showed for it in his triumph." These and similar remarks from the spectators followed Nero till he reached the
Capitol. The money they brought into the treasury amounted to 300,000 sesterces and 80,000 of bronze
coinage. M. Livius' largesse to his soldiers amounted to fiftysix ases per man, and C. Nero promised to give
the same amount to his men as soon as he rejoined his army. It is remarked that in their jests and songs the
soldiers on that day celebrated the name of C. Claudius Nero more frequently than that of their own consul;
and that the members of the equestrian order were full of praises for L. Veturius and Q. Caecilius, and urged
the plebs to make them consuls for the coming year. The consuls added considerably to the weight of this
recommendation when on the morrow they informed the Assembly with what courage and fidelity the two
officers had served them.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 70
Page No 73
The time was approaching for the elections and it was decided that they should be conducted by a Dictator. C.
Claudius Nero named his colleague M. Livius as Dictator, and he nominated Q. Caecilius as his Master of the
Horse. L. Veturius and Q. Caecilius were both elected consuls. Then came the election of praetors; those
appointed were C. Servilius, M. Caecilius Metellus, Tiberius Claudius Asellus and Q. Mamilius Turrinus,
who was a plebeian aedile at the time. When the elections were over, the Dictator laid down his office and
after disbanding his army went on a mission to Etruria. He had been commissioned by the senate to hold an
enquiry as to which cantons in Etruria had entertained the design of deserting to Hasdrubal as soon as he
appeared, and also which of them had assisted him with supplies, or men, or in any other way. Such were the
events of the year at home and abroad. The Roman Games were celebrated in full on three successive days by
the curule aediles, Cnaeus Servilius Caepio and Servilius Cornelius Lentulus; similarly the Plebeian Games
were celebrated by the plebeian aediles, M. Pomponius Matho and Q. Mamilius Turrinus. It was now the
thirteenth year of the Punic War. Both the consuls, L. Veturius Philo and Q. Caecilius Metellus, had the same
provinceBruttiumassigned to them, that they might jointly carry on operations against Hannibal. The
praetors balloted for their provinces. M. Caecilius Metellus obtained the City jurisdiction; Q. Mamilius, that
over aliens. Sicily fell to C. Servilius, and Sardinia to Ti. Claudius.
The armies were distributed as follows: One of the consuls took over Nero's army; the other, that which Q.
Claudius had commanded; each consisted of two legions. M. Livius, who was acting as proconsul for the
year, took over from C. Terentius the two legions of volunteer slaves in Etruria. It was also decreed that Q.
Mamilius, to whom the jurisdiction over aliens had been allotted, should transfer his judicial business to his
colleague, and hold Gaul with the army which L. Porcius had commanded as propraetor; he was also
instructed to ravage the fields of those Gauls who had gone over to the Carthaginians on the arrival of
Hasdrubal. C. Servilius was to protect Sicily, as C. Mamilius had done, with the two legions of the survivors
of Cannae. The old army in Sardinia, under A. Hostilius, was recalled, and the consuls enrolled a new legion
which Tiberius Claudius was to take with him to the island. A year's extension of command was granted to Q.
Claudius, that he might remain in charge at Tarentum, and to C. Hostilius Tubero, that he might continue to
act at Capua. M. Valerius, who had been charged with the defence of the Sicilian seaboard, was ordered to
hand over thirty ships to the praetor' C. Servilius, and return to Rome with the rest of his fleet.
In the anxiety caused by the strain of such a serious war when men referred every occurrence, fortunate or the
reverse, to the direct action of the gods, numerous portents were announced. At Tarracina the temple of
Jupiter, at Satricum that of Mater Matuta were struck by lightning. At the latter place quite as much alarm
was created by the appearance of two snakes which glided straight through the doors into the temple of
Jupiter. From Antium it was reported that the ears of corn seemed to those who were reaping them to be
covered with blood. At Caere a pig had been farrowed with two heads, and a lamb yeaned which was both
male and female. Two suns were said to have been seen at Alba, and at Fregellae it had become light during
the night. In the precinct of Rome an ox was said to have spoken; the altar of Neptune in the Circus Flaminius
was asserted to have been bathed in perspiration, and the temples of Ceres, Salus and Quirinus were all struck
by lightning. The consuls received orders to expiate the portents by sacrificing fullgrown victims and to
appoint a day of solemn intercession. These measures were carried out in accordance with the senatorial
resolution. What was a much more terrifying experience than all the portents reported from the country or
seen in the City, was the extinction of the fire in the temple of Vesta. The vestal who was in charge of the fire
that night was severely flogged by order of P. Licinius, the Pontifex Maximus. Though this was no portent
sent by the gods, but merely the result of human carelessness, it was decided to sacrifice fullgrown victims
and hold a service of solemn supplication in the temple of Vestal.
Before the consuls left for the seat of war, they were advised by the senate "to see to it that the plebeians were
reinstated on their holdings. Through the goodness of the gods the burden of war had now been shifted from
the City of Rome and from Latium, and men could dwell in the country parts without fear, it was by no
means fitting that they should be more concerned for the cultivation of Sicily than for that of Italy." The
people found it, however, anything but an easy matter. The small holders had been carried off by the war,
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 71
Page No 74
there was hardly any servile labour available, the cattle had been driven off as plunder, and the homesteads
had been either stripped or burnt. Still, at the authoritative behest of the consuls a considerable number did
return to their farms. What led to the senate taking up this question was the presence of deputations from
Placentia and Cremona, who came to complain of the invasion and wasting of their country by their
neighbours, the Gauls. A large proportion of their settlers, they said, had disappeared, their cities were almost
without inhabitants, and the countryside was a deserted wilderness. The praetor Mamilius was charged with
the defence of these colonies; the consuls, acting on a resolution of the senate, published an edict requiring all
those who were citizens of Cremona and Placentia to return to their homes before a certain day. At last,
towards the beginning of spring, they left for the seat of war. The consul Q. Caecilius took over the army
from C. Nero, and L. Veturius, the one which Q. Claudius had commanded, and this he brought up to its full
strength with the fresh levies which he had raised. They led their armies into the district of Consentia, and
ravaged it in all directions. As they were returning laden with plunder they were attacked in a narrow pass by
a force of Bruttians and Numidian javelinmen, and not only the plunder but the troops themselves were in
danger. There was, however, more alarm and confusion than real fighting. The plunder was sent forward and
the legions succeeded in getting into a position free from danger. They advanced into Lucania, and the whole
of the district returned to its allegiance to Rome without offering any resistance.
No action was fought with Hannibal this year, for after the blow which had fallen upon him and upon his
country, he made no forward movement, nor did the Romans care to disturb him, such was their impression
of the powers which that single general possessed, even while his cause was everywhere round him
crumbling into ruin. I am inclined to think that he deserves our admiration more in adversity than in the time
of his greatest successes. For thirteen years he had been carrying on war with varying fortune in an enemy's
country far from home. His army was not made up of his own fellowcountrymen, it was a mixed
assemblage of various nationalities who had nothing in common, neither laws nor customs, nor language,
who differed in appearance, dress and arms, who were strangers to one another in their religious observances,
who hardly recognised the same gods. And yet he had united them so closely together that no disturbance
ever broke out, either amongst the soldiers themselves or against their commander, though very often money
and supplies were lacking and it was through want of these that numerous incidents of a disgraceful character
had occurred between the generals and their soldiers in the First Punic War. He had rested all his hopes of
victory on Hasdrubal and his army, and after that army had been wiped out he withdrew into Bruttium and
abandoned the rest of Italy to the Romans. Is it not a matter of surprise that no mutiny broke out in his camp?
For in addition to all his other difficulties, there was no prospect of feeding his army except from the
resources of Bruttium, and even if the whole of that country had been in cultivation it would have afforded
but meager support for so large an army. But as it was, a large part of the population had been diverted from
the tillage of the soil by the war and by their traditional and innate love of brigandage. He received no
assistance from home, for the government was mainly concerned about keeping their hold on Spain, just as
though everything in Italy was going on successfully.
The situation in Spain was in some respects similar, in others completely dissimilar to the state of affairs in
Italy. It was similar in so far as the Carthaginians after their defeat and the loss of their general had been
driven into the most distant parts of Spain to the shores of the ocean. It was dissimilar because the natural
features of the country and the character of the inhabitants made Spain more fitted than Italy, more fitted, in
fact, than any country in the world for the constant renewal of hostilities. Though it was the first province, at
all events on the continent, into which the Romans made their way, it was, owing to this cause, the very last
to be completely subjugated, and this only in our own days under the conduct and auspices of Augustus
Caesar. Hasdrubal Gisgo, who, next to the Barcine family, was the greatest and most brilliant general that
held command in this war, was encouraged by Mago to renew hostilities. He left Gades, and traversing
Further Spain, raised a force of 50,000 infantry and 4500 cavalry. As to the strength of his cavalry the
authorities are generally agreed, but some writers assert that the infantry force which he led to Silpia
amounted to 70,000 men. Near this city the two Carthaginian commanders encamped on a wide and open
plain, determined to accept battle if offered.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 72
Page No 75
When intelligence was brought to Scipio of the muster of this large army, he did not consider that he could
meet it with his Roman legions unless he employed his native auxiliaries to give at all events the appearance
of greater strength. At the same time he felt that he ought not to depend too much upon them, for if they
changed sides it might lead to the same disaster as that which had overtaken his father and his uncle. Culchas,
whose authority extended over twentyeight towns, had promised to raise a force of infantry and cavalry
during the winter, and Silanus was sent to bring them up. Then breaking up his quarters at Tarraco, Scipio
marched down to Castulo, picking up small contingents furnished by the friendly tribes which lay on his line
of march. There Silanus joined him with 3000 infantry and 500 cavalry. His entire army, Romans and allied
contingents, infantry and cavalry, amounted now to 55,000 men. With this force he advanced to meet the
enemy and took up his position near Baecula. Whilst his men were entrenching their camp they were attacked
by Mago and Masinissa with the whole of their cavalry and would have been thrown into great disorder had
not Scipio made a charge with a body of horse which he had placed in concealment behind a hill. These
speedily routed those of the assailants who had ridden close up to the lines and were actually attacking the
entrenching parties; with the others, however, who kept their ranks and were advancing in steady order the
conflict was more sustained, and for a considerable time remained undecided. But when the cohorts of light
infantry came in from the outposts, and the men at work on the intrenchments had seized their arms and, fresh
for action, were in ever increasing numbers relieving their wearied comrades until a considerable body of
armed men were hastening from the camp to do battle, the Carthaginians and Numidians retreated. At first
they retired in order though hurriedly and kept their ranks, but when the Romans pressed their attacks home
and resistance was no longer possible, they broke and fled as best they could. Though this action did much to
raise the spirits of the Romans and depress those of the enemy, there were for several days incessant
skirmishes between the cavalry and light infantry on both sides.
After the strength of each side had been sufficiently tested in these encounters Hasdrubal led out his army to
battle, on which the Romans did the same. Each army remained standing in front of its camp, neither caring
to begin the fight. Towards sunset the two armies, first the Carthaginian and then the Roman, marched back
to camp. This went on for some days; the Carthaginians were always the first to get into line and the first to
receive the order to retire when they were tired out with standing. No forward movement took place on either
side, no missile was discharged, no battleshout raised. The Romans were posted in the centre on the one
side, the Carthaginians in the centre of the other; the flanks on both armies were composed of Spanish troops.
In front of the Carthaginian line were the elephants which looked in the distance like towers. It was generally
supposed in both camps that they would fight in the order in which they had been standing, and that the main
battle would be between the Romans and Carthaginians in the centre, the principals in the war and fairly
matched in courage and in arms. When Scipio found that this was assumed as a matter of course, he carefully
altered his dispositions for the day on which he intended to fight. The previous evening he sent a tessera
through the camp ordering the men to take their breakfast and see that their horses were fed before daybreak,
the cavalry were at the same time to be fully armed with their horses ready, bitted and saddled. Day had
scarcely broken when he sent the whole of his cavalry with the light infantry against the Carthaginian
outposts, and at once followed them up with the heavy infantry of the legions under his personal command.
Contrary to universal expectation he had made his wings the strongest part of his army by posting the Roman
troops there, the auxiliaries occupied the centre.
The shouts of the cavalry roused Hasdrubal and he rushed out of his tent. When he saw the melee in front of
the rampart and the disordered state of his men, and in the distance the glittering standards of the legions and
the whole plain covered with the enemy, he at once sent the whole of his mounted force against the hostile
cavalry. He then led his infantry out of the camp, and formed his battle line without any change in the
existing order. The cavalry fight had now been going on for some time without either side gaining the
advantage. Nor could any decision be arrived at, for as each side was in turn driven back they retreated into
safety amongst their infantry. But when the main bodies were within half a mile of each other, Scipio recalled
his cavalry and ordered them to pass to the rear of the infantry, whose ranks opened out to give them passage,
he then formed them into two divisions, and posted one as a support behind each of the wings. Then when the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 73
Page No 76
moment for executing his maneuver arrived he ordered the Spaniards in the centre to make a slow advance,
and sent word to Silanus and Marcius that they were to extend to the left as they had seen him extend to the
right, and engage the enemy with their light cavalry and infantry before the centers had time to close. Each
wing was thus lengthened by three infantry cohorts and three troops of horse, besides velites, and in this
formation they advanced against the enemy at a run, the others following en echelon. The line curved inwards
towards the centre because of the slower advance of the Spaniards. The wings were already engaged whilst
the Carthaginians and African veterans, the main strength of their army, had not yet had the chance of
discharging a single missile. They did not dare to leave their place in the line and help their comrades for fear
of leaving the centre open to the advance of the enemy. The wings were being pressed by a double attack, the
cavalry and light infantry had wheeled round and were making a flank charge, whilst the cohorts were
pressing their front in order to sever them from their centre.
The struggle had now become a very onesided one in all parts of the field. Not only were untrained
Balearics and raw Spanish levies face to face with the Roman and Latin legionaries but as the day went on,
the physical strength of Hasdrubal's army began to give way. Surprised by the sudden attack in the early
morning they had been compelled to go into battle before they could strengthen themselves with food. It was
with this view that Scipio had deliberately delayed the fight till late in the day, for it was not until the seventh
hour that the attack began on the wings, and it was some time after that before the battle reached the centre,
so that, what with the heat of the day, the fatigue of standing under arms, and the hunger and thirst from
which they were suffering, they were worn out before they closed with the enemy. Thus exhausted they
leaned on their shields as they stood. To complete their discomfiture the elephants, scared by the sudden
onsets of the cavalry and the rapid movements of the light infantry, rushed from the wings into the centre of
the line. Wearied and depressed, the enemy began to retreat, keeping their ranks however, just as if they had
been ordered to retire. But when the victors saw that matters were going in their favour they made still more
furious attacks in all parts of the field, which the enemy were almost powerless to withstand, though
Hasdrubal tried to rally them and keep them from giving way by calling out that the hill in their rear would
afford them a safe retreat if they would retire in good order. Their fears, however, got the better of their sense
of shame, and when those nearest to the enemy gave way, their example was suddenly followed by all and
there was a universal flight. Their first halt was on the lower slope of the hill, and as the Romans hesitated
about mounting the hill, they began to reform their ranks, but when they saw them steadily advancing they
again fled and were driven back in disorder to their camp. The Romans were not far from the rampart and
would have carried the camp in their onset had not the brilliant sunshine which often glows between heavy
showers been succeeded by such a storm that the victors could hardly get back to their camp, and some were
even deterred by superstitious fears from attempting anything further for the day. Although the night and the
storm invited the Carthaginians, exhausted as they were by their toil and many of them by their wounds, to
take the rest they so sorely needed, yet their fears and the danger they were in allowed them no respite. Fully
expecting an attack on their camp as soon as it was light they strengthened their rampart with large stones
collected from all the valleys round, hoping to find in their intrenchments the defence which their arms had
failed to afford them. The desertion of their allies, however, decided them to seek safety in flight rather than
risk another battle. The first to abandon them was Attenes, chief of the Turdetani; he went over with a
considerable body of his countrymen, and this was followed by the surrender of two fortified towns with their
garrisons to the Romans. For fear of the evil spreading and the spirit of disaffection becoming general,
Hasdrubal shifted his camp the following night.
When the outposts brought intelligence of the enemy's departure Scipio sent on his cavalry and followed with
his entire army. Such was the rapidity of the pursuit that had they followed in Hasdrubal's direct track they
must have caught him up. But, acting on the advice of their guides, they took a shorter route to the river
Baetis, so that they might be able to attack him if he attempted its passage. Finding the river closed to him,
Hasdrubal turned his course towards the ocean, and his hurried march, which in its haste and confusion
looked like a flight gave him a considerable start on the Roman legions. Their cavalry and light infantry
harassed and retarded him by attacking him in flank and rear, and whilst he was continually forced to halt to
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 74
Page No 77
repel first the cavalry and then infantry skirmishers, the legions came up. Now it was no longer a battle but
sheer butchery, until the general himself set the example of flight and escaped to the nearest hills with some
6000 men, many of them without arms. The rest were killed or made prisoners. The Carthaginians hastily
improvised an intrenched camp on the highest point of the hills, and as the Romans found it useless to
attempt the precipitous ascent, they had no difficulty in making themselves safe. But a bare and sterile height
was hardly a place in which to stand even a few days' siege, and there were numerous desertions. At last
Hasdrubal sent for shipshe was not far from the seaand fled in the night, leaving his army to its fate. As
soon as Scipio heard of his flight he left Silanus to keep up the investment of the Carthaginian camp with
10,000 infantry and 1000 cavalry, whilst he himself with the rest of his force returned to Tarraco. During his
seventy days' march to this place, he took steps to ascertain the attitude of the various chiefs and tribes
towards Rome, so that they might be recompensed as they deserved. After his departure Masinissa came to a
secret understanding with Silanus, and crossed over with a small following to Africa, to induce his people to
support him in his new policy. The reasons which determined him on this sudden change were not evident at
the time, but the loyalty which he subsequently displayed throughout his long life to its close proved beyond
question that his motives at the beginning were carefully weighed. After Mago had sailed to Gades in the
ships which Hasdrubal had sent back for him, the rest of the army abandoned by their generals broke up,
some deserting to the Romans, others dispersing amongst the neighbouring tribes. No body of troops
remained worth consideration either for numbers or fighting strength. Such, in the main, was the way in
which under the conduct and auspices of Publius Scipio the Carthaginians were expelled from Spain, fourteen
years from the commencement of the war, and five years after Scipio assumed supreme command. Not long
after Mago's departure Silanus joined Scipio at Tarraco, and reported that the war was at an end.
Lucius Scipio was sent to Rome in charge of numerous prisoners of high rank to announce the subjugation of
Spain. Everybody else welcomed this brilliant success with feelings of delight and exultation, but the one
man who had achieved it and whose thirst for solid and lasting renown was insatiable looked upon his
conquest of Spain as only a small instalment of what his lofty ambition led him to hope for. Already he was
looking to Africa and the great city of Carthage as destined to crown his glory and immortalise his name.
This was the goal before him and he thought it best to prepare the way to it by gaining over the kings and
tribes in Africa. He began by approaching Syphax, king of the Masaesulians, a tribe of Moorish nationality.
They lived opposite that part of the Spanish coast where New Carthage lies. At that time there existed a treaty
of alliance between their king and Carthage, but Scipio did not imagine that Syphax would regard the sanctity
of treaties more scrupulously than they are generally regarded by barbarians whose fidelity depends upon the
caprices of fortune. Accordingly he sent C. Laelius to him with presents to win him over. The barbarian was
delighted with the presents, and, as he saw that the cause of Rome was everywhere successful, whilst the
Carthaginians had failed in Italy and entirely disappeared from Spain, he consented to become friendly to
Rome, but insisted that the mutual ratification of the treaty should take place in the presence of the Roman
general. All that Laelius could obtain from the king was a safeconduct, and with that he returned to Scipio.
In furtherance of his designs on Africa it was of supreme importance for him to secure Syphax; he was the
most powerful of the native princes, and had even attempted hostilities against Carthage; moreover, his
frontiers were only separated from Spain by a narrow strait.
Scipio thought it worth while running considerable risk in order to accomplish his end, and as it could not be
effected in any other way, he made arrangements for visiting Syphax. Leaving the defence of Spain in the
hands of L. Marcius at Tarraco and M. Silanus at New Carthage, to which latter place he had proceeded by
forced marches from Tarraco, he sailed across to Africa accompanied by C. Laelius. He only took two
quinqueremes, and as the sea was calm most of the passage was made by rowing, though a light breeze
occasionally assisted them. It so happened that Hasdrubal after his expulsion from Spain entered the harbour
at the same time. He had brought his seven triremes to anchor and was preparing to land when the two
quinqueremes were sighted. No one entertained the smallest doubt that they belonged to the enemy and could
easily be overpowered by superior numbers before they gained the harbour. The efforts of the soldiers and
sailors, however, to get their arms ready and the ships into trim amidst much noise and confusion were
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 75
Page No 78
rendered futile by a freshening breeze from the sea, which filled the sails of the quinqueremes and carried
them into port before the Carthaginians could get up their anchors. As they were now in the king's harbour,
no one ventured to make any further attempt to molest them. So Hasdrubal, who was the first to land. and
Scipio and Laelius, who disembarked soon afterwards, all made their way to the king.
Syphax regarded it as an exceptional honouras indeed it wasfor the captains of the two most powerful
nations of their time to come to him seeking his friendship and alliance. He invited them both to be his
guests, and as Fortune had willed that they should be under the same roof and at the same hearth he tried to
induce them to confer together with the view of removing all causes of quarrel. Scipio declined on the ground
that he had no personal quarrel with the Carthaginian and he was powerless to discuss affairs of State without
the orders of the senate. The king was anxious that it should not seem as if one of his guests was excluded
from his table, and he did his utmost to persuade Scipio to be present. He raised no objection, and they both
dined with the king, and at his particular request occupied the same couch. Such was Scipio's charm of
manner and innate tact in dealing with everybody that he completely won over not only Syphax, who as a
barbarian was unaccustomed to Roman manners, but even his deadly enemy. Hasdrubal openly avowed that
"he admired Scipio more now that he had made his personal acquaintance than after his military successes,
and he had no doubt that Syphax and his kingdom were already at the disposal of Rome, such skill did the
Roman possess in winning men. The question for the Carthaginians was not how Spain had been lost, but
how Africa was to be retained. It was not from a love of travel or a passion for sailing along pleasant shores
that a great Roman commander had quitted his newly subjugated province and his armies and crossed over
with two vessels to Africa, the land of his enemies, and trusted himself to the untried honour of a king. His
real motive was the hope of becoming master of Africa; this project he had long been pondering over; he
openly complained that 'Scipio was not conducting war in Africa as Hannibal was in Italy."' After the treaty
with Syphax was concluded Scipio set sail from Africa and, after a four days' passage in which he was
buffeted by changeable and mostly stormy winds, reached the harbour of New Carthage.
Spain was now quiet as far as war with Carthage was concerned, but it was quite evident that some
communities conscious of wrongdoing were kept quiet more by their fears than by any feeling of loyalty to
Rome. Amongst these Iliturgi and Castulo were foremost in importance and foremost in guilt. As long as
Roman arms were successful Castulo remained true to her alliance; after the Scipios and their armies were
destroyed they revolted to Carthage. Iliturgi had gone further, for the inhabitants had betrayed and put to
death those who had sought refuge with them after those disasters, thus aggravating their treason by crime.
To take action against these cities immediately on his arrival in Spain, whilst the issue was still undecided,
might have been justifiable but hardly wise. Now, however, that matters were settled, it was felt that the hour
of punishment had arrived. Scipio sent orders to L. Marcius to take a third part of his force to Castulo and at
once invest the place, and with the remainder he himself marched to Iliturgi where he arrived after a five
days' march. The gates were closed and every preparation had been made to repel an assault; the townsmen
were quite conscious of the punishment they deserved, and any formal declaration of war was, therefore,
unnecessary. Scipio made this the subject of his address to his soldiers. "The Spaniards," he said, "by closing
their gates have shown how well they deserve the punishment which they fear. We must treat them with
much greater severity than we treated the Carthaginians; with the latter we contend for glory and dominion,
with hardly any feeling of anger, but from the former we have to exact the penalty for cruelty, treachery and
murder. The time has come for you to avenge the atrocious massacre of your fellowsoldiers and the
treachery meditated against yourselves had you been carried there in your flight. You will make it clear for all
time by this awful example that no one must ever consider a Roman citizen or a Roman soldier a fit subject
for illtreatment, whatever his condition may be."
Roused by their general's words the men began to prepare for the assault, storming parties were picked out of
all the maniples and supplied with ladders, and the army was formed into two divisions, one being placed
under the command of Laelius, so that the town might be attacked from opposite sides and a twofold terror
created. The defenders were stimulated to a determined and prolonged resistance not by their general or their
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 76
Page No 79
chiefs but by the fear which came from a consciousness of guilt. With their past crime in mind they warned
each other that the enemy was seeking not victory so much as vengeance. The question was not how to
escape from death but where to meet it, whether, sword in hand, on the battlefield where the fortune of war
often raises up the vanquished and flings the victor to the ground, or amidst the ashes of their city before the
eyes of their captive wives and children after being torn with the lash and subjected to shameful and horrible
tortures. With this prospect before them every man who could carry arms took his part in the fighting, and
even the women and children working beyond their strength supplied missiles to the combatants, and carried
stones up to the walls for those who were strengthening the defences. Not only was their liberty at stakethat
motive only inspires the bravebut they had before their eyes the very extremity of torture and a shameful
death. As they looked at each other and saw that each was trying to outdo all the rest in toil and danger, their
courage was fired, and they offered such a furious resistance that the army which had conquered Spain was
again and again repulsed from the walls of one solitary city, and fell back in confusion after a contest which
brought it no honour. Scipio was afraid that the futile efforts of his troops might raise the enemies' courage
and depress his own men, and he decided to take his part in the fighting and his share of the danger.
Reproaching his soldiers for their cowardice he ordered the ladders to be brought up and threatened to mount
himself if the rest hung back. He had already reached the foot of the wall and was in imminent danger when
shouts arose on all sides from the soldiers who were anxious for their commander's safety, and the ladders
were at once planted against the wall. Laelius now delivered his attack from the other side of the town. This
broke the back of the resistance; the walls were cleared of their defenders and seized by the Romans, and in
the tumult the citadel also was captured on that side where it was considered impregnable.
Its capture was effected by some African deserters who were serving with the Romans. Whilst the attention
of the townsmen was directed to defending the positions which appeared to be in danger and the assailants
were mounting their ladders wherever they could approach the walls, these men noticed that the highest part
of the city, which was protected by precipitous cliffs, was left unfortified and undefended. These Africans,
men of light make and through constant training extremely agile, were furnished with iron hooks, and where
the projections of the cliff gave them a footing they climbed it, when they came to a place where it was too
steep or too smooth they fixed the hooks in at moderate intervals and used them as steps, those in front
pulling up those behind, and those below pushing up those above them. In this way, they managed to reach
the top, and no sooner had they done so than they ran down with loud shouts into the city which the Romans
had already captured. And now the hatred and resentment which had prompted the attack on the city showed
itself. No one thought of making prisoners or securing plunder though everything was at the mercy of the
spoilers; the scene was one of indiscriminate butchery, noncombatants together with those in arms, women
equally with men were all alike massacred; the ruthless savagery extended even to the slaughter of infants.
Then they flung lighted brands on the houses and what the fire could not consume was completely
demolished. So bent were they upon obliterating every vestige of the city, and blotting out all record of their
foes. From there Scipio marched to Castulo. This place was being defended by natives from the surrounding
towns and also by the remains of the Carthaginian army who had gathered there after their flight. But Scipio's
approach had been preceded by the news of the fall of Iliturgi, and this spread dismay and despair
everywhere. The interests of the Carthaginians and of the Spaniards were quite distinct, each party consulted
for its own safety without regard to the other, and what was at first mutual suspicion soon led to an open
rupture between them. Cerdubelus openly advised the Spaniards to surrender, Himilco, the Carthaginian
commander, counselled resistance. Cerdubelus came to a secret understanding with the Roman general, and
betrayed the city and the Carthaginians into his hands. More clemency was shown in this victory; the town
was not so deeply involved in guilt and the voluntary surrender went far to soften any feelings of resentment.
After this Marcius was sent to reduce to submission any tribes that had not yet been subjugated. Scipio
returned to New Carthage to discharge his vows and to exhibit the gladiatorial spectacle which he had
prepared in honour of the memory of his father and his uncle. The gladiators on this occasion were not drawn
from the class from which the trainers usually take themslaves and men who sell their bloodbut were all
volunteers and gave their services gratuitously. Some had been sent by their chiefs to give an exhibition of
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 77
Page No 80
the instinctive courage of their race, others professed their willingness to fight out of compliment to their
general, others again were drawn by a spirit of rivalry to challenge one another to single combat. There were
several who had outstanding quarrels with one another and who agreed to seize this opportunity of deciding
them by the sword on the agreed condition that the vanquished was to be at the disposal of the victor. It was
not only obscure individuals who were doing this. Two distinguished members of the native nobility, Corbis
and Orsua, first cousins to each other, who were disputing the primacy of a city called Ibes gave out that they
intended to settle their dispute with the sword. Corbis was the elder of the two, but Orsua's father had been
the last to hold that dignity, having succeeded his brother. Scipio wanted them to discuss the question calmly
and peaceably, but as they had refused to do so at the request of their own relations, they told him that they
would not accept the arbitrament of any one, whether god or man except Mars, and to him alone would they
appeal. The elder relied upon his strength, the younger on his youth; they both preferred to fight to the death
rather than that one should be subject to the commands of the other. They presented a striking spectacle to the
army and an equally striking proof of the mischief which the passion for power works amongst men. The
elder cousin by his familiarity with arms and his dexterity easily prevailed over the rough untrained strength
of the younger. The gladiatorial contests were followed by funeral games with all the pomp which the
resources of the province and the camp could furnish.
Meantime Scipio's lieutenants were by no means inactive. Marcius crossed the Baetis, called by the natives
the Certis, and received the surrender of two cities without striking a blow. Astapa was a city which had
always been on the side of Carthage. But it was not this that created a strong feeling of resentment so much as
its extraordinary hatred against the Romans, far more than was justified by the necessities of war. Neither the
situation nor the fortifications of the city were such as to inspire its inhabitants with confidence, but their love
of brigandage induced them to make raids on the territories of their neighbours who were allies of Rome. In
these excursions they made a practice of capturing any Roman soldiers or camp sutlers or traders whom they
came across. As it was dangerous to travel in small parties, large companies used to travel together and one of
these whilst crossing the frontier was surprised by the brigands who were lying in ambush, and all were
killed. When the Roman army advanced to attack the place, the inhabitants, fully aware of the chastisement
which their crime merited, felt quite certain that the enemy were too much incensed to allow of any hope of
safety in surrender. Despairing of protection either in their walls or their arms, they resolved upon a deed
equally cruel and horrible to themselves and to those who belonged to them. Collecting the more valuable of
their possessions they piled them up into a heap in a selected place in their forum. On this pile they ordered
their wives and children to take their seats and then heaped round them a quantity of wood, on the top of
which they threw dead brushwood. Fifty armed men were told off to guard their possessions and the persons
of those who were dearer than their possessions, and the following instructions were given them: "Remain on
guard as long as the battle is doubtful, but if you see that is going against us, and the city is on the point of
being captured, you know that those whom you see going into action will never return alive, and we implore
you by all the gods celestial and infernal in the name of liberty, liberty which will end in either an honourable
death or a dishonourable servitude, that you leave nothing on which a savage enemy can vent his rage. Fire
and sword are in your hands. Better that faithful and loving hands should make away with what is doomed to
die than that the enemy should add mockery and scorn to murder. "These admonitions were followed by a
dire curse on any one who was turned from his purpose by hope of life or by softheartedness.
Then they flung open the gates and burst out in a tumultuous charge. There was no advanced post strong
enough to check them, for the last thing to be feared was that the besieged would venture outside their walls.
One or two troops of horse and some light infantry were sent against them from the camp, and a fierce
irregular fight ensued in which the troopers who had been first to come into collision with the enemy were
routed, and this created a panic amongst the light infantry. The attack would have been pushed even to the
foot of the rampart if the pick of the legions had not made the most of the few minutes allowed them for
getting into line. As it was, there was at first some wavering amongst the front ranks, for the enemy, blinded
by rage, rushed with mad recklessness upon wounds and death. Then the veterans who came up in support,
unshaken by the frantic onset, cut down the front ranks and stayed the advance of those behind. When in their
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 78
Page No 81
turn they tried to force the enemy back they found that not a man would give ground, they were all resolved
to die where they stood. On this the Romans extended their lines, which their superiority in numbers enabled
them to do easily, until they outflanked the enemy, who fighting in a compact body were killed to a man.
The wholesale slaughter was at any rate the work of an exasperated soldiery who met their armed foes in the
shock of open battle. But a much more horrible butchery took place in the city, where a weak and defenceless
crowd of women and children were massacred by their own people, and their still writhing bodies flung on to
the lighted pile which was again almost extinguished by the streams of blood. And last of all the men
themselves, exhausted by the pitiful slaughter of those dear to them, flung themselves arms and all into the
midst of the flames. All had perished by the time the Romans came on the scene. At first they stood
horrorstruck at such a fearful sight, then, seeing the melted gold and silver flowing amongst the other
articles which made up the heap, the greediness common to human nature impelled them to try and snatch
what they could out of the fire. Some were caught by the flames, others were scorched by the heated air, for
those in front could not retreat owing to the crowd pressing on behind. Thus Astapa was destroyed without
yielding any plunder to the soldiers. After accepting the surrender of the remaining cities in that district
Marcius led his victorious army back to Scipio at New Carthage. Just at this time some deserters came from
Gades and promised to deliver up the city with its Carthaginian garrison and the commandant and also the
ships in the harbour. After his flight Mago had taken up his quarters in that city, and with the help of the ships
which he had assembled he had got together a considerable force, partly from the opposite coast of Africa and
partly through the agency of Hanno from the Spanish tribes round. After guarantees of good faith had been
given on both sides, Scipio sent Marcius with the cohorts of light infantry and Laelius with seven triremes
and one quinquereme to conduct joint operations against the place by sea and land.
Scipio was overtaken by a serious illness, which rumour, however, made still more serious, as each man from
the innate love of exaggeration added some fresh detail to what he had already heard. The whole of Spain,
especially the remoter parts, was much agitated at the news, and it was easy to judge what an amount of
trouble would have been caused by his actual death from seeing what storms arose from the groundless
rumour of it. Friendly states did not preserve their fidelity, the army did not remain loyal. Mandonius and
Indibilis had made up their minds, that after the expulsion of the Carthaginians the sovereignty of Spain
would pass to them. When they found that their hopes were frustrated they called out their countrymen, the
Lacetani, and raised a force amongst the Celtiberians with which they ravaged the country of the
Suessitanians and the Sedetanians, who were allies of Rome. A disturbance of a different kind, an act of
madness on the part of the Romans themselves, occurred in the camp at Sucro. It was held by a force of 8000
men who were stationed there to protect the tribes on this side the Ebro. The vague rumours about their
commander's life were not however the primary cause of their movement. A long period of inactivity had, as
usual, demoralised them, and they chafed against the restraints of peace after being accustomed to live on the
plunder captured from the enemy. At first their discontent was confined to murmurs amongst themselves. "If
there is war going on in the province," they said, "what are we doing here amongst a peaceable population? If
the war is at an end why are we not taken back to Rome? "Then they demanded their arrears of pay with an
insolence quite inconsistent with military discipline or the respect which soldiers should show towards their
officers. The men at the outposts insulted the tribunes as they went their rounds of inspection, and some went
off during the night to plunder the peaceable inhabitants in the neighbourhood, till at last they used to quit
their standards in broad daylight without leave. They did everything just as their caprice and fancy dictated,
no attention was paid to rules or discipline or to the orders of their officers. One thing alone helped to keep up
the outward aspect of a Roman camp and that was the hope which the men entertained that the tribunes would
become infected with their madness and take part in their mutiny. In this hope they allowed them to
administer justice from their tribunals, they went to them for the watchword and the orders of the day, and
relieved guard at the proper intervals. Thus after depriving them of any real authority they kept up the
appearance of obedience, whilst they were actually their own commanders. When they found that the tribunes
censured and reprobated their proceedings and endeavoured to repress them, and openly declared that they
would have nothing to do with their insensate folly, they broke out into open mutiny. They drove the tribunes
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 79
Page No 82
from their official seats, and then out of the camp, and amidst universal acclamation placed the supreme
command in the hands of the chief ringleaders of the mutiny, two common soldiers whose names were C.
Albius of Cales and C. Atrius, an Umbrian. These men were by no means content to wear the insignia of the
military tribunes, they had the audacity to affect those of the chief magistrates, the fasces and the axes. It
never occurred to them that those symbols which they had carried before them to strike fear into others were
impending over their own backs and necks. The false belief that Scipio was dead blinded them; they felt
certain that the spread of this report would kindle the flames of war throughout the whole of Spain. In the
general turmoil they imagined that they would be able to levy contributions on the allies of Rome and plunder
the cities round them, and when crime and outrage were being committed everywhere, what they had done
would not be noticed in the universal confusion.
They were every hour expecting fresh details of Scipio's death, and even news of his funeral. None came
however and the idle rumours by degrees died away. Then they began to look for those who started the
report, but each in turn kept out of the way, preferring to be thought credulous rather than suspected of
inventing such a story. Abandoned by their followers, the ringleaders looked with dread upon the insignia
they had assumed, and fully expected that in return for this idle show of power they would draw down upon
themselves the weight of the true and legitimate authority. While the mutiny was thus at a standstill, definite
information was brought that Scipio was alive and this was soon followed by the further intelligence that his
health was restored. This intelligence was brought by a party of seven military tribunes, whom Scipio had
sent to Sucro. At first their presence was strongly resented, but the quiet talks they had with those they
happened to know had a calming effect; they visited the soldiers in their tents, and chatted with the groups
which gathered round the tribunals or in front of the headquarters tent. They made no reference to the treason
the soldiers had been guilty of, but only questioned them as to the causes of the sudden outbreak. They were
told in reply that the men did not get their pay punctually, nor their due share of credit for the part they had
played in the campaign. It was by their courage, they asserted, that the Roman name was preserved and the
province saved for the republic after the destruction of the two armies and their commanders, at the time
when the Iliturgans committed their foul crime. And though they had received the just recompense for their
treason, no one had been found to reward the Roman soldiers for their meritorious services.
In reply to these and similar complaints the tribunes told the men that their requests were reasonable and they
would lay them before the general. They were glad that these were nothing worse or harder to set right, and
the men might rest assured that P. Scipio, after the favour the gods had shown him, and, indeed, the whole
State, would show their gratitude. Scipio was experienced in war, but unfamiliar with the storms of internal
disturbances. Two things made him anxious, the possibility of the army exceeding all measure in its
insubordination, or of his inflicting punishments which would be excessive. For the present he decided to go
on as he had begun, and handle the matter gently. Collectors were sent among the tributary states so that the
soldiers might hope to receive their pay soon. An order was shortly after issued for them to assemble at New
Carthage for that purpose; they might go in a body or successively in single detachments as they preferred.
The unrest was already dying down when the sudden cessation of hostilities on the part of the revolted
Spaniards completely stopped it. When Mandonius and Indibilis heard that Scipio was still alive, they gave
up their enterprise and retired within their frontiers, and the mutineers could no longer find any one either
amongst their own countrymen or amongst the natives who would associate himself with their mad scheme.
After carefully considering every possible plan they saw that the only way of escaping the consequences of
their evil counsels, and that not a very hopeful way, was to submit themselves either to the just displeasure of
their general or to his clemency, which they were not without hopes of experiencing. They argued that he had
ever pardoned the enemies of his country after armed conflict, whereas during their mutiny not a wound had
been received or a drop of blood shed, it had been free from all cruelty and did not deserve a cruel
punishment. So ready are men with reasons when they wish to palliate their own misconduct. There was
considerable hesitation as to whether they should go to receive their pay separately cohort by cohort. or all
together. The latter course seemed the safer and they decided upon it.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 80
Page No 83
Whilst they were discussing these points a council of war was being held over them in New Carthage. The
members were divided; some thought it sufficient to proceed only against the ringleaders, who did not
number more than fiveandthirty; others regarded it as an act of high treason rather than a mutiny and held
that such a bad example could only be dealt with by the punishment of the many who were implicated. The
more merciful view, that punishment should only fall on those with whom the mischief originated, finally
prevailed; for the troops generally a severe reprimand was considered sufficient. On the breaking up of the
council the army stationed in Carthage was informed that an expedition was to be made against Mandonius
and Indibilis, and that rations were to be prepared for several days in advance. The object was to make it
appear that this was the business for which the council had been held. The seven tribunes who had been sent
to Sucro to quell the mutiny now returned in advance of the troops, and each handed in the names of five
ringleaders. Suitable men had been told off to meet the culprits with smiles and pleasant words, and invite
them to their houses, and when they had drunk themselves into a state of stupor place them in fetters. When
the men were now not far from New Carthage they were informed by people who met them that the whole of
the army at Carthage were starting on the morrow with M. Silanus against the Lacetanians. This news did not
completely dispel the secret fears which haunted their minds, still they were greatly rejoiced to hear it, as they
imagined that now that their commander would be alone, they would have him in their power, instead of their
being in his.
The sun was setting when they entered the city, and they found the other army making all preparations for
their march. It had been arranged beforehand how they were to be received, they were told that their
commander was glad that they had arrived when they did, just before the other army left. They then dispersed
for food and rest, and the ringleaders were conducted by the men selected for the purpose to their houses,
where they were entertained, and where the tribunes arrested and manacled them without any disturbance. At
the fourth watch the baggage train of the army began to move for its pretended march; at daybreak the
standards went forward, but the whole army was halted as soon as it reached the gate, and guards were posted
round all the gates to prevent any one from leaving the city. The newly arrived troops were then summoned
to an assembly, and they ran into the forum and crowded threateningly round their general's tribunal,
expecting to intimidate him by their shouts. At the moment when he ascended his tribunal the troops who had
marched back from the gate and were fully armed surrounded the unarmed crowd. Now their rebellious spirit
was completely cowed, and, as they afterwards admitted, the thing that they were most afraid of was the
colour and vigour of their chief whom they expected to see looking weak and ill, and the expression in his
face such as they had never witnessed before, not even in the heat of battle. For some time he sat in silence,
until he received information that the ringleaders had been brought down to the forum and everything was in
readiness.
After the usher had obtained silence he made the following speech: "I never supposed that I should want
words in which to address my army, not that I ever trained myself to speak rather than to act, but that having
lived a camp life from boyhood I have learnt to understand the soldier's character. As to what I am to say to
you now, words and ideas alike fail me; I do not even know by what title I am to address you. Am I to call
you Roman citizensyou who have revolted against your country? Can I call you soldiers when you have
renounced the authority and auspices of your general, and broken the solemn obligations of your military
oath? Your appearance, your features, your dress, your demeanour I recognise as those of my
fellowcountrymen, but I see that your actions, your language, your designs, your spirit and temper are those
of your country's foes. What difference is there between your hopes and aims and those of the Ilergetes and
the Lacetanians? And yet they chose men of kingly rank, Mandonius and Indibilis, to lead them in their
madness, whilst you delegated the auspices and the supreme command to Atrius, an Umbrian, and Albius, a
man from Cales. Do tell me, soldiers, that you did not all join in that or approve of its being done. I will
gladly believe that only a few were guilty of such insensate folly, if you assure me that this is so. For the
crime is of such a nature that had it involved the whole army it could only have been expiated by a frightful
sacrifice.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 81
Page No 84
"It is painful for me to speak thus, opening up, as it were, wounds, but unless they are handled and probed
they cannot be healed. After the expulsion of the Carthaginians from Spain I did not believe that there were
anywhere people who wished me dead, such had been my conduct towards friends and enemies alike. And
yet, alas so greatly was I mistaken that even in my own army the report of my death was not only credited but
eagerly looked for. I would not for a moment wish to lay this to the charge of you all, for if I thought that the
whole of my army wished for my death, I would die here before your eyes. My life would have no attraction
for me if it were hateful to my fellowcountrymen and my soldiers. But every multitude is like the sea which
left to itself is naturally motionless, till winds and gales excite it. So it is with calm and storms amongst you,
the cause and origin of your madness is to be found in your ringleaders, who infected you with their frenzy.
For you do not seem even now to be aware to what lengths of folly you have gone or what criminal
recklessness you have been guilty of towards me, towards your country, your parents and your children,
towards the gods who were witnesses of your military oath, towards the auspices under which your served,
towards the traditions of the army and the discipline of our ancestors, towards the majesty inherent in
supreme authority. About myself I prefer to be silent; you may have lent a thoughtless rather than a willing
ear to the report of my death; I may be a man whose rule might be naturally expected to prove irksome to his
army. But your countrywhat has it deserved of you that you should make common cause with Mandonius
and Indibilis for its betrayal? What have the Roman people done that you should deprive the tribunes whom
they elected of their authority, and bestow it on private individuals? And not content with having such men
for tribunes you, a Roman army, have transferred the fasces of your commander to men who never possessed
a single slave to be at their command! The headquarters tent was occupied by an Albius and an Atrius; at
their doors the trumpet sounded; to them you went for orders; they were seated on P. Scipio's tribunal; the
lictor was in attendance and cleared the way before them; in front of them the axes and fasces were borne!
When there is a shower of stones, or buildings are struck by lightning, or animals produce monstrous
offspring, you consider these things as portents. We have here a portent which no victims, no intercessions
can expiate but the blood of those who have dared such an awful crime.
"Though no crime is dictated by rational motives, I should still like to know what was in your mind, what was
your intention, so far as such wickedness admitted of any. Years ago a legion which was sent to garrison
Regium murdered the principal men of the place and kept possession of that wealthy city for ten years. For
this crime the entire legion of 4000 men were beheaded at Rome in the Forum. But they did not choose for
their leader an Umbrian who was little more than a campfollower, an Atrius whose very name is an evil
omen. They followed D. Vibellius, a military tribune. Nor did they join hands with Pyrrhus, or with the
Samnites and Lucanians, the enemies of Rome, but you communicated your plans to Mandonius and Indibilis
and prepared to join them in arms. They were content to do as the Campanians did when they wrested Capua
from the Tuscans, its old inhabitants, or as the Mamertines did when they seized Messana in Sicily; they
intended to make Regium their future home without any idea of attacking Rome or the allies of Rome. Did
you intend to make Sucro your permanent abode? If, after subjugating Spain, I had gone away and left you
here you would have rightly complained to gods and men that you had not returned to your wives and
children. But you may have banished from your minds all thought of them, as you have in the case of your
country and in my own case. I want to trace the course which your criminal project would have taken, though
stopping short of the extreme of madness. As long as I was alive and retained intact the army with which in
one day I captured New Carthage and defeated and routed four Carthaginian armies, would you really have
wrested the province of Spain from the hands of Rome, you, a force of some 8000 men, every one of you of
less account at all events than the Albius and Atrius whom you made your masters?
"I put aside and ignore my own honour and reputation, and assume that I was in no way injured by your too
easily crediting the story of my death. But what then? Supposing I had died, would the commonwealth have
died with me, would the sovereignty of Rome have shared my fate? No, Jupiter Optimus Maximus would
never have allowed a City built for eternity, built under the auspices and sanction of the gods, to be as
shortlived as this fragile mortal body of mine. C. Flaminius, Aemilius Paulus, Sempronius Gracchus,
Postumius Albinus, M. Marcellus, T. Quinctius Crispinus, Cnaeus Fulvius, and my own relations, the two
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 82
Page No 85
Scipios, all of them distinguished generals, have been carried off in this single war, and yet Rome lives on
and will live on though a thousand more should perish through sickness or the sword. Would then the
republic have been interred in my solitary grave? Why even you yourselves, after the defeat and death of my
father and my uncle, chose Septimus Marcius to lead you against the Carthaginians, flushed as they were with
their recent victory. I am speaking as though Spain would have been left without a general; but would not the
sovereignty of the empire have been amply vindicated by M. Silanus, who came into the province invested
with the same power and authority as I myself with my brother Lucius and C. Laelius as his lieutenants? Can
any comparison be made between their army and you, between their rank and experience and those of the
men you have chosen, between the cause for which they are fighting and the one which you have taken up?
And if you were superior to them all would you bear arms in company with the Carthaginians against your
country, against your fellowcitizens? What injury have they done to you?"
"Coriolanus was once driven to make war on his country by an iniquitous sentence which condemned him to
dishonoured and forlorn exile, but his affection as a son recalled him from the crime which he was meditating
as a citizen. What have you suffered to call out this bitter hostility? Did you proclaim war against your
country, did you desert the people of Rome in favour of the Ilergetes, did you trample underfoot all law,
human and divine, simply because your pay was a few days in arrear owing to your general's illness? There is
no doubt about it, soldiers, you were seized with madness; the bodily illness from which I suffered was not
one whit more severe than the mental malady which overtook you. I shrink with horror from dwelling upon
the credit men gave to rumours, the hopes they entertained, the ambitious schemes they formed. Let all be
forgotten, if possible, or if not that, let silence at least draw a veil over all. I admit that my words have
appeared stern and unfeeling to you, but how much more unfeeling, think you, has your conduct been than
anything I have said? You imagine that it is right and proper for me to tolerate your actions, and yet you have
not patience to hear them mentioned. Bad as they are however, I will not reproach you with them any longer;
I only wish you may forget them as easily as I shall. As for the army as a body, if you sincerely repent of
your wrongdoing you give me satisfaction enough and more than enough. Albius of Cales and Atrius of
Umbria with the other ringleaders in this detestable mutiny will expiate their crime with their blood. The
sight of their punishment ought to give you satisfaction rather than pain, if indeed you have recovered your
sanity, for their designs would have proved more mischievous and destructive to you than to any one else."
He had hardly finished speaking when, at a preconcerted signal, the eyes and ears of his audience were
assailed by everything which could terrify and appal. The army which was on guard all round the assembly
clashed their swords against their shields, and the voice of the usher was heard calling over the names of
those who had been sentenced in the council or war. These were stripped to the waist and conducted into the
middle of the assembly; all the apparatus of punishment was at once brought out; they were tied to the stake,
scourged and finally beheaded. The spectators were so benumbed by terror that no voice was raised against
the severity of the punishment, not even a groan was heard. Then the bodies were all dragged away, and after
the place was cleansed, the soldiers were summoned each by name to take the oath of obedience to P. Scipio
before the military tribunes. Then they each received the pay due to them. Such was the end and issue of the
mutiny which started amongst the soldiers at Sucro.
Hanno, Mago's lieutenant, had been despatched during this time, with a small body of Africans to hire troops
among the Spanish tribes, and succeeded in raising 4000 men. Soon afterwards, his camp was captured by L.
Marcius, most of his men were killed in the assault, some during their flight by the pursuing cavalry; Hanno
himself escaped with a handful of his men. Whilst this was going on at the Baetis Laelius sailed westward
and brought up at Carteia, a city situated on that part of the coast where the Straits begin to widen into the
ocean. Some men had come into the Roman camp with a voluntary offer to surrender the city of Gades, but
the plot was discovered before it was ripe. All the conspirators were arrested and Mago handed them over to
the custody of Adherbal for conveyance to Carthage. Adherbal placed them on board a quinquereme which
was sent on in advance as it was a slower vessel than the eight triremes with which he followed shortly after
The quinquereme was just entering the Straits when Laelius sailed out of the harbour of Carteia in another
quinquereme followed by seven triremes. He bore straight down upon Adherbal, feeling quite sure that the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 83
Page No 86
quinquereme could not be brought round, as it was caught by the current sweeping through the channel.
Surprised by this unsuspected attack, the Carthaginian general hesitated for a few moments whether to follow
his quinquereme or turn his prows against the enemy. This hesitation put it out of his power to decline the
contest, for they were now within range of one another's missiles, and the enemy were pressing on him on all
sides. The strength of the tide prevented them from steering their ships as they wished. There was no
semblance of a naval battle, no freedom of action, no room for tactics or maneuvers. The tidal currents
completely dominated the action and carried the ships against their own side and against the enemy
indiscriminately, in spite of all the efforts of the rowers. You might see a ship which was endeavouring to
escape carried stem foremost against the victors, whilst the one pursuing it, if it got into an opposing current,
was swept back as though it were the one in flight. And when they were actually engaged and one ship was
making for another in order to ram it, it would swerve from its course and receive a sideblow from the
other's beak, whilst the one which was coming broadside on would suddenly be swung round and present its
prow. So the varying struggle of the triremes went on, directed and controlled by Chance. The Roman
quinquereme answered the helm better, either because its weight made it steadier, or because it had more
banks of oars to cut through the waves. It sank two triremes, and sweeping rapidly past a third sheared off all
the oars on one side, and it would have disabled the rest if Adherbal had not got clear away with the
remaining five, and crowding all sail reached Africa.
After his victory Laelius returned to Carteia where he learnt what had been going on at Gades, how the plot
had been discovered and the conspirators sent to Carthage. As the purpose for which he had come was thus
frustrated he sent word to L. Marcius, saying that if they did not wish to waste their time by sitting before
Gades, they ought both to rejoin their commanderinchief. Marcius quite agreed, and they both returned in
a few days to New Carthage. On their departure Mago breathed more freely after having been threatened by
the double danger from land and sea, and on receiving intelligence of the renewal of hostilities by the
Ilergetes, he once more entertained hopes of reconquering Spain. Messengers were despatched to Carthage, to
lay before the senate a highly coloured account of the mutiny in the Roman camp and the defection of the
allies of Rome, and at the same time strongly urge that assistance should be sent to him in order that he might
win back the heritage left him by his ancestors, the sovereignty of Spain. Mandonius and Indibilis had retired
for some time within their borders and were quietly waiting till they knew what was decided with regard to
the mutiny. They felt no doubt that if Scipio pardoned the offence of his own fellowcountrymen, he would
exercise clemency towards them also. But when the severity of the punishment became generally known they
were convinced that equal measure would be meted out to them, and so they decided to resume hostilities.
They summoned their tribesmen once more to arms, and called out the auxiliaries who had joined them
before, and with a force of 20,000 infantry and 2500 cavalry they crossed their frontiers and marched to their
old camping ground in Sedetania.
By his punctual payment of arrears to all alike, the guilty as well as the innocent, and by his affable tone and
bearing towards every one, Scipio soon regained the affection of his soldiers. Before he broke up his quarters
at New Carthage, he called his troops together and after denouncing at some length the treachery of the two
chiefs in recommencing war went on to say that the temper in which he was going to avenge that crime was
very different from the spirit in which he had recently healed the fault of his misled fellowcitizens. Then he
felt as if he were tearing his own vitals, when with groans and tears he expiated either the thoughtlessness or
the guilt of 8000 men at the cost of thirty lives. Now it was in a cheerful and confident spirit that he was
marching to the destruction of the Ilergetes. They were not natives of the same soil with him, nor was there
any treaty bond between them; the only bond was that of honour and friendship, and that they had themselves
broken by their crime. When he looked at his own army he saw that they were all either Roman citizens or
Latin allies, but what affected him most was the fact that there was hardly a single soldier amongst them who
had not been brought from Italy, either by his uncle Cnaeus Scipio, who was the first Roman general to come
into that province, or by his father or else by himself. They were all of them accustomed to the name and
auspices of the Scipios, and he wanted to take them back with him to their country to enjoy a wellearned
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 84
Page No 87
triumph. Should he become a candidate for the consulship he hoped that they would support him, as the
honour conferred on him would belong to them all. As to the expedition in front of them the man who
regarded it as a war must have forgotten all that he had hitherto done. Mago, who had fled with a few ships to
an island surrounded by an ocean; beyond the limits of the world of men, was, he assured them, more of a
concern to him than the Ilergetes were, for a Carthaginian general and a Carthaginian garrison, however
small, were still there, but here there were only brigands and brigand chiefs. They may be strong enough to
plunder their neighbours' fields and burn their houses and carry off their flocks and herds but they have no
courage for a pitched battle and an open field; when they have to fight they will trust more to their swiftness
for flight than to their weapons. It was not, therefore, because he saw that there was any danger from them, or
any prospect of serious war that he was marching to crush the Ilergetes before his departure from the
province, but because such a criminal revolt must not go unpunished, and also because it must not be said
that a single enemy has been left behind in a province which by such courage and good fortune has been
reduced to submission. "Follow me then," he said, in conclusion, "with the kind help of heaven, not to make
warfor you have to do with an enemy who is no match for youbut to inflict punishment upon men steeped
in crime."
The men were then dismissed with orders to make their preparations for the next day's departure. Ten days
after leaving New Carthage he reached the Ebro, and within four days of his passage of the river he came
within view of the enemy. In front of his camp there was a level stretch of ground shut in on either side by
mountains. Scipio ordered some cattle taken mostly from the enemy's fields to be driven towards the hostile
camp in order to rouse the savagery of the barbarians. Laelius was instructed to remain with his cavalry in
concealment behind a projecting mountain spur, and when the light infantry who went to guard the cattle had
drawn the enemy into a skirmish he was to charge from his hidingplace. The battle soon began, the
Spaniards on catching sight of the cattle rushed out to secure them, and the skirmishers attacked them while
occupied with their plunder. At first the two sides harassed one another with missiles, then they discharged
light darts, which are more likely to provoke than to decide a battle, and at last they drew their swords. It
would have been a steady handtohand fight if the cavalry had not come up. They not only made a frontal
attack, riding down all in their way, but some galloped round the foot of the mountain so as to cut off the
retreat of the enemy. There was more slaughter than usually occurs in skirmishes of this kind, and the
barbarians were infuriated rather than disheartened at their want of success.
In order, therefore, to show that they were not defeated, they marched out to battle the next morning at
daybreak. There was not room for them all in the narrow valley, described above; two divisions of their
infantry and the whole of their cavalry occupied the plain and the rest of their infantry were posted on the
slope of a hill. Scipio saw that the confined space would give him an advantage. Fighting on a narrow front
was more adapted to Roman than to Spanish tactics, and as the enemy had brought his line into a position
where he could not employ all his strength, Scipio adopted a novel stratagem. As there was no room for him
to outflank the enemy with his own cavalry, and as the enemy's cavalry which was massed with the infantry
would be useless where it was, he gave Laelius orders to make a detour along the hills, escaping observation
as far as possible, and keep the cavalry action distinct from the infantry battle. Scipio led the whole of his
infantry against the enemy with a front of four cohorts, as it was impossible to extend further. He did not lose
a moment in beginning the fight, for he hoped that in the heat of battle his cavalry might execute their
maneuver unnoticed. Nor were the enemy aware of their movements till they heard the sounds of battle in
their rear. So two separate contests were going on through the whole length of the valley, one between the
infantry and the other between the cavalry, and the narrow width of the valley prevented the two armies from
assisting each other or acting in concert. The Spanish infantry, who had gone into action trusting to the
support of their cavalry, were cut to pieces and the cavalry, unable to stand the attack of the Roman infantry
after their own had all fallen, and taken in rear by Laelius and his cavalry, closed up and for a time stood their
ground and kept up their resistance, but at last all were killed to a man. Not a single combatant out of the
cavalry and infantry which fought in the valley remained alive. The third division which had been standing
on the mountain side, looking on in safety instead of participating in the fight, had room and time enough to
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 85
Page No 88
make good their retreat. Amongst them were the two chieftains, who escaped in the confusion before the
entire army was surrounded.
The Spanish camp was captured the same day and in addition to the rest of the booty 3000 prisoners were
secured. As many as 2000 Romans and allies fell in the battle; the wounded amounted to more than 3000.
The victory would not have been so costly had the battle been fought in a wider plain where flight would
have been easier. Indibilis laid aside all idea of continuing the war, and thought that the safest course,
considering his hopeless position, would be to throw himself on Scipio's wellknown clemency and honour.
He sent his brother Mandonius to him. Throwing himself on his knees before the victor he put everything
down to the fatal frenzy of the time, which like some pestilential contagion had infected not only the Ilergetes
and Lacetanians but even a Roman army with madness. He declared that he and his brother and the rest of
their countrymen were in such a condition that they would, if he thought it right, give back their lives to the
same P. Scipio from whom they had received them, or, if they were spared a second time, they would devote
the whole of their lives to the one man to whom they owed them. Previously they had trusted to the strength
of their cause and had not made trial of his clemency, now that their cause was hopeless they put all their
trust in their conqueror's mercy. It was the traditional practice of the Romans, in the case of a conquered
nation with whom no friendly relations had previously existed either through treaty or community of rights
and laws, not to accept their submission or allow any terms of peace until all their possessions sacred and
profane had been surrendered, hostages given, their arms taken away and garrisons placed in their cities. In
the present instance however, Scipio, after sternly reprimanding Mandonius and the absent Indibilis at
considerable length, said that their lives were justly forfeited by their crime, but that through his own
kindness and that of the Roman people, they would be spared. He would not, however, demand hostages,
since these were only a security for those who feared a fresh outbreak of hostilities, nor would he take away
their arms, he would leave their minds at rest. But if they revolted it was not unoffending hostages but they
themselves who would feel the weight of his arm; he would inflict punishment not upon a defenceless but
upon an armed foe. He would leave it to them whether they preferred the favour or the wrath of Rome; they
had experience of both. So Mandonius was dismissed, the only condition imposed upon him being a
pecuniary indemnity sufficient to furnish the pay which was owing to the troops. After sending Marcius on in
advance into Southern Spain, Scipio stayed where he was for a few days until the Ilergetes paid over the
indemnity and then, setting out with a lightarmed force, overtook Marcius who was already nearing the
ocean.
The negotiations which had been begun with Masinissa were delayed for various reasons. He wanted in any
case to meet Scipio personally and to grasp his hand in confirmation of the league between them, and this
was the reason why Scipio undertook at that time such a long and outoftheway journey. Masinissa was at
Gades, and on being informed by Marcius that Scipio was coming, he represented to Mago that his horses
were getting out of condition through being confined in so small an island, and were causing a general
scarcity from which all alike suffered, whilst his cavalry were becoming enervated through inaction. He
persuaded the Carthaginian commander to allow him to cross to the mainland for the purpose of plundering
the adjacent country. When he had landed he sent three Numidian chieftains to Scipio to fix the time and
place of the interview. Two were to be detained by Scipio as hostages, the third was to be sent back to
conduct Masinissa to the place that had been decided upon. They came to the conference, each with a small
escort. From what he had heard of his achievements the Numidian had already conceived a great admiration
for the Roman commander and had pictured him in imagination as a man of grand and imposing presence.
But when he saw him he felt a deeper veneration for him. The majesty, natural to Scipio, was heightened by
his flowing hair and the simplicity of his general appearance, which was devoid of all adornment and
decoration, and in the highest degree manly and soldierly. He was at the most vigorous time of life, and his
recovery from his recent illness had given him a freshness and clearness of complexion which renewed the
bloom of youth.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 86
Page No 89
Almost speechless with astonishment at this his first meeting with him, the Numidian began by thanking him
for having sent his nephew home. From that moment, he declared, he had looked for such an opportunity as
this of expressing his gratitude, and now that one was offered him by the kindness of heaven he would not let
it slip. He was desirous of rendering such service to Scipio and to Rome that no one of foreign birth might
ever be found to have afforded more zealous assistance. This had long been his wish, but Spain was a strange
and unknown land to him, and he had been unable to carry out his purpose there; it would, however, be easy
to do it in the land of his birth, where he had been brought up in the expectation of succeeding to his father's
throne. If the Romans sent Scipio as their general into Africa, he felt pretty certain that the time of Carthage
would be very short. Scipio watched him and listened to him with great pleasure. He knew that Masinissa
was the masterspirit in all the enemy's cavalry, and the youth's whole bearing showed high courage. After
they had pledged their faith to each other, Scipio returned to Tarraco. Masinissa was allowed by the Romans
to carry off plunder from the adjacent fields, in order that he might not be thought to have sailed across to the
mainland without sufficient cause. After this he returned to Gades.
Mago's hopes had been raised by the mutiny in the Roman camp and the revolt of Indibilis. Now he despaired
of effecting anything in Spain and made preparations for his departure. Whilst he was so employed a
despatch came from the Carthaginian senate ordering him to take the fleet which he had at Gades over to
Italy, and after raising as large a force as possible of Gauls and Ligurians in that country to form a junction
with Hannibal and not allow the war which had been begun with so much energy and even more success to
drag on lifelessly. Money was brought to him from Carthage for the purpose, and he also requisitioned as
much as he could from the people in Gades. Not only their public treasury but even their temples were
plundered, and they were all compelled to contribute their private stores of gold and silver. Sailing along the
Spanish coast, he landed a force not far from New Carthage, and plundered the nearest fields, after which he
brought up his fleet at the city. During the day he kept his men on board, and did not disembark them till
night. He then took them to that part of the city wall where the Romans had effected the capture of the place;
thinking that the city was held by a weak garrison and that there would be a movement amongst some of the
townsmen who hoped for a change of masters. The country people, however, who were fleeing from their
fields had brought news of the depredations and approach of the enemy. His fleet had also been seen during
the day, and it was obvious that they would not have taken their station before the city without some special
reason. An armed force was accordingly drawn up outside the gate which faced the sea. The enemy
approached the walls in disorder, soldiers and seamen were mixed together, and there was much more noise
and tumult than fighting strength. Suddenly the gate was thrown open and the Romans burst out with a cheer;
the enemy were thrown into confusion, turned their backs at the very first discharge of missiles and were
pursued with heavy loss down to the shore. If the ships had not been brought up close to the beach and so
afforded a means of escape, not a single fugitive would have survived. On the ships, too, there was hurry and
confusion; the crews drew up the ladders, lest the enemy should clamber on board with their comrades, and
cut the cables and hawsers so as not to lose time in weighing anchor. Many who tried to swim to the ships
could not see in the darkness what direction to take or what dangers to avoid, and perished miserably. The
next day, after the fleet had regained the ocean, it was discovered that 800 men had been killed between the
wall and the shore and as many as 2000 arms of different kinds picked up.
On his return to Gades, Mago found the gates closed against him, so he anchored off Cimbii, a place not far
from Gades, and sent envoys to lodge a complaint against the gates being closed to him, an ally and a friend.
They excused themselves by saying that it was done by a gathering of the townsmen who were incensed at
some acts of pillage committed by the soldiers during the embarkation. He invited their sufetesthe title of
their supreme magistratetogether with the city treasurer to a conference, and when they were come he
ordered them to be scourged and crucified. From there he sailed to Pityusa, an island about a hundred miles
distant from the mainland, which had at the time a Phoenician population. Here the fleet naturally met with a
friendly reception, and not only were supplies furnished on a generous scale but he received reinforcements
for his fleet in the shape of arms and men. Thus encouraged, the Carthaginian sailed on to the Balearic Isles, a
voyage of about fifty miles. There are two islands so called; the larger one was better supplied with arms and
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 87
Page No 90
contained a more numerous population; it also possessed a harbour where Mago thought he could
conveniently shelter his fleet for the winter, as the autumn was now closing. But his fleet met with quite as
hostile a reception as if the island had been inhabited by Romans. The sling which the Balearics make most
use of today was at that time their sole weapon, and no nation comes near them in the skill with which they
handle it. When the Carthaginians tried to approach the land such a shower of stones fell upon them like a
violent hailstorm that they did not venture inside the harbour. Putting out once more to sea they approached
the smaller island, which possessed a fertile soil, but fewer resources in men and arms. Here they landed and
encamped in a strong position commanding the harbour, from which they became masters of the island
without meeting any resistance. They raised a force of 2000 auxiliaries which they sent to Carthage and then
beached their ships for the winter. After Mago's departure Gades surrendered to the Romans.
Such is the record of Scipio's command in Spain. After handing over the charge of the province to the
proconsuls L. Lentulus and L. Manlius Acidinus, he set sail with ten ships for Rome. On his arrival a meeting
of the senate was held at the temple of Bellona, at which he gave a report of all he had done in Spain, how
many pitched battles he had fought, how many towns he had captured, and what tribes he had brought under
the dominion of Rome. He asserted that when he arrived in Spain he found four Carthaginian armies opposed
to him; when he. left, there was not a single Carthaginian in the country. He was not without hope that a
triumph might be accorded to him for his services; he did not, however, press his demand for one, as it was
quite understood that no one had up to that time enjoyed a triumph who was not invested with a magistracy.
After the senate had been dismissed, he made his entry into the City and had borne before him 14,342 pounds
of silver and a great quantity of silver coins, all of which he, deposited in the treasury. L. Veturius Philo now
proceeded to hold the consular elections, and all the centuries voted amidst much enthusiasm for Scipio.
Publius Licinius Crassus, the Pontifex Maximus, was elected as his colleague. It is recorded that a larger
number of voters took part in that election than at any other time during the war. They had come from all
parts, not only to give their votes, but also to get sight of Scipio; they flocked in crowds round his house, and
at the Capitol when he sacrificed the hecatomb which he had vowed to Jupiter in Spain. They assured
themselves that as C. Lutatius had brought the First Punic War to a close, so Scipio would terminate this one,
and as he had driven the Carthaginians out of Spain, so he would drive them out of Italy. They were marking
out Africa as his province just as though the war in Italy was at an end. Then followed the election of
praetors. Two of those electedSpurius Lucretius and Cnaeus Octaviuswere plebeian aediles at the time; the
othersCnaeus Servilius Caepio and L. Aemilius Papuswere not holding any office. It was in the fourteenth
year of the Second Punic War (B.C. 205) that P. Cornelius Scipio and P. Licinius Crassus entered on their
consulship. In the assignment of the consular provinces Scipio with his colleague's consent took Sicily
without recourse to the ballot, because Crassus, as Pontifex Maximus, was prevented by his sacred duties
from leaving Italy; he therefore took Bruttium. The praetors then balloted for their provinces. The City
jurisdiction fell to Cnaeus Servilius; Spurius Lucretius received Ariminum, as the province of Gaul was then
called; Sicily fell to L. Aemilius and Sardinia to Cnaeus Octavius.
The senate held a session in the Capitol. A resolution was passed on the motion of P. Scipio that he should
celebrate the Games which he had vowed during the mutiny and defray the cost out of the money which he
had brought into the treasury. Then he introduced a deputation from Saguntum, the senior member of which
addressed the House in the following terms: "Although there is no form of suffering, senators, which we have
not endured in order to keep our faith with you to the last, still the kindness which you and your generals
have shown to us has made us forget our misery. For us you have undertaken war and for fourteen years have
carried it on with such determination that often you have brought yourselves and often reduced the
Carthaginians to the last extremities. Though you had in the heart of Italy such a terrible war and such an
enemy as Hannibal, you nevertheless sent a consul with his army to Spain to collect, as it were, the remains
of our wreckage. From the day that the two Scipios, Publius and C. Cornelius, came into the province they
never at any moment failed to do good to us and injury to our enemies. First of all, they restored our city to
us, and sent men all over Spain to find out those of us who had been sold into slavery and set them free.
When our fortunes, from being utterly miserable, had become almost enviable, your two generals Publius and
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 88
Page No 91
C. Cornelius met with their deaths, a loss which we felt even more bitterly than you. It seemed at the time as
though we had been brought back from distant exile to our old home only to see for the second time our own
ruin and our country's destruction. It did not require a Carthaginian general or army to effect our annihilation,
the Turduli, our inveterate enemies who had been the cause of our former collapse, would have been quite
able to extinguish us. And just when we had lost all hope, you suddenly sent P. Scipio, whom we are more
fortunate than all our fellowcitizens in seeing here today. We shall carry back to our people the news that
we have seen, as your consulelect, the one man in whom we placed all our hopes of safety. City after city
has been taken by him from your enemies throughout Spain, and in every instance he picked out the
Saguntines from the mass of prisoners and sent them home. And lastly the Turdetani, such deadly enemies to
us that had their strength remained unimpaired Saguntum must have fallen, even they have been brought so
low by his arms that they are no longer to be feared by us, nor, if I may dare to say so, by our posterity. The
tribe in whose favour Hannibal destroyed Saguntum have had their own city destroyed before our eyes. We
take tribute from their land, but it is not the profit, but the revenge that we enjoy most.
"For these blessings, the greatest that we could hope for or ask heaven to grant, the senate and people of
Saguntum have sent this deputation to convey their grateful thanks. We are at the same time to convey their
congratulations to you on having been so successful these last years in Spain and Italy that you have
subjugated the one country by the might of your arms, not only as far as the Ebro, but even to its most distant
shores which the ocean bounds, whilst in the other you have left the Carthaginian nothing outside the rampart
of his camp. To the great Guardian of your stronghold in the Capitol, Jupiter Optimus Maximus, we are
bidden not only to render thanks for these boons, but also, if you allow us, to offer and carry to him in the
Capitol this gift of a golden crown, as a memorial of your victories. We pray that you will sanction this and
further, if it seem good to you, that you will ratify and confirm for all time the advantages which your
generals have conferred upon us." The senate replied to the effect that the destruction and restoration of
Saguntum would both alike be a proof to all the world of the faith which each side had kept to the other.
Their generals had acted wisely and properly and in accordance with the wishes of the senate in restoring
Saguntum and rescuing its citizens from slavery, and all other acts of kindness which they had performed
were such as the senate wished to have done. They accorded permission to the envoys to place their gift in the
Capitol. Free quarters and hospitality were provided for them at the cost of the State, and orders were given
for each to be presented with a sum of not less than 10,000 ases. The other deputations were then admitted to
an audience of the senate. The Saguntines also asked to be allowed to make a tour through Italy as far as they
could with safety, and guides were furnished them and letters sent to the different towns requesting them to
give the Spaniards a hospitable reception
The next question before the senate concerned the raising of troops and the distribution of the various
commands. There was a rumour that Africa was to form a new province and be allotted to Scipio without
having recourse to the ballot. Scipio himself, no longer contented with a moderate share of glory, was telling
people that he had been returned as consul not simply to carry on the war but to bring it to an end, and the
only way of doing that was for him to take an army over to Africa. In the event of the senate's opposition he
asserted openly that he would carry his proposal by the authority of the people. The project was most
distasteful to the leaders of the senate, and as the rest of the senators, afraid of becoming unpopular, refused
to speak out, Q. Fabius Maximus was asked for his opinion. This he gave in the following speech: "I am quite
aware, senators, that many of you regard the question before us today as already decided, and consider that
any one who discusses the destination of Africa as though it were still an open question is wasting words. I
do not quite understand, however, how Africa can have been definitely assigned as the province of our gallant
and energetic consul, when neither the senate nor the people have decided that it shall be included amongst
the provinces for the year. If it has been so assigned then I think the consul is quite wrong in inviting a sham
discussion upon a measure that has been decided upon; he is not only stultifying the senate as a body, but
each individual senator who is called upon in turn for his opinion.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 89
Page No 92
"In expressing my dissent from those who think that we ought at once to invade Africa, I am quite conscious
that I expose myself to two imputations. For one thing my action will be set down to my cautious nature.
Young men may call it timidity and indolence if they please, as long as we have no cause to regret that
though the counsels of others have seemed at first sight more attractive, experience shows that mine are
better. The other charge against me will be that I am actuated by motives of malevolence and envy against the
evergrowing glory of our most gallant consul. If my past life, my character, my dictatorship and five
consulships, the glory I have acquired as a citizen and as a soldier, a glory so great as to produce surfeit rather
than a desire for moreif these do not shield me from this imputation at least let my age free me from it.
What rivalry can exist between myself and a man who is not even as old as my son? When I was Dictator, in
the full maturity of my powers and engaged in most important operations my authority was by an unheardof
innovation divided with the Master of the Horse. Yet no one ever heard a word of protest from me either in
the senate or in the Assembly, even when he was pursuing me with abuse. It was through my actions rather
than my words that I wished the man whom others considered my equal to be compelled to admit his
inferiority to me. And am I, who have received all the honours that the State can confer, to enter into
competition with one who is in the full flower of his youth? And simply that if Africa is refused to him, it
may be granted to me, tired as I am not only of public business but of life itself? No, I must live and die with
the glory that I have won. I have prevented Hannibal from conquering in order that he might be conquered by
those of you who are in the full vigour of your powers."
"It is but fair, Publius Cornelius, that whilst in my own case I have never preferred my own reputation to the
interests of the State, you should pardon me for not regarding even your glory as more important than the
welfare of the commonwealth. I admit that if there were no war in Italy or only an enemy from whose defeat
no glory was to be gained, then the man who would keep you in Italy though acting in the public interest
might appear to be depriving you of the chance of winning glory in a foreign war. But as our enemy Hannibal
has been holding Italy for fourteen years with an undefeated army, you will surely not despise the glory of
expelling from Italy during your consulship the enemy who has been the cause of so many defeats, so many
deaths, and of leaving it on record that it is you who have terminated this war, as C. Lutatius has the lasting
glory of bringing the First Punic War to a close? Unless, indeed, Hasdrubal was a finer general than
Hannibal, or the last war a more serious one than this one, or the victory which closed it a greater and more
brilliant one than this will be, should it fall to our lot to conquer whilst you are consul. Would you rather have
drawn Hamilcar away from Drepana and Eryx, than expel Hannibal and his Carthaginians from Italy? Even
though you should cling to the glory you have acquired more than to what you hope for, you will not pride
yourself upon having delivered Spain from war rather than Italy. Hannibal is not yet such an enemy that the
man who prefers to fight against another foe would not be thought to fear rather than to despise him. Why do
you not gird yourself to this task? Why do you not march straight from here to where Hannibal is and carry
the war thither instead of taking a roundabout course in the hope that when you have crossed over into Africa
he will follow you? You are anxious to win the crowning glory of bringing the Punic War to an end; your
natural course will be to defend your own country before you go to attack the enemy's. Let there be peace in
Italy before there is war in Africa; let our own fears be banished before we make others tremble. If both
objects can be achieved under your generalship and auspices, then when you have conquered Hannibal here,
go on and capture Carthage. If one of the two victories must be left for your successors, the former is the
greater and more glorious one and will necessarily lead to the latter. As matters now are, the public exchequer
is unable to support two armies in Italy and also in Africa, we have nothing left from which to equip a fleet
and furnish it with supplies, and over and above all this who can fail to see what great dangers would be
incurred? P. Licinius, let us suppose, is conducting the campaign in Italy and P. Scipio one in Africa. Well,
supposingmay all the gods avert the omen which I shudder at the mention of! but what has happened may
happen againsupposing, I say, that Hannibal wins a victory and marches on Rome, are we to wait till then
before recalling you from Africa, as we recalled Q. Fulvius from Capua? What, if even in Africa the fortunes
of war prove equally favourable for both sides? Take warning from the fate of your own house, your father
and uncle destroyed with their armies within a month of each other in the country where they had raised the
name of Rome and the glory of your family high among the nations through their successful operations by
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 90
Page No 93
land and sea. The daylight would fail me if I attempted to enumerate the kings and captains who by their rash
invasion of their enemy's territory have brought the most crushing defeat on themselves and their armies.
Athens, a city most sensible and wise, listened to the advice of a young man of high birth and equally high
ability, and sent a great fleet to Sicily before it had disposed of the war at home, and in one naval battle the
flourishing republic was, for ever ruined."
"I will not take instances from distant lands and remote times. This very Africa we are speaking about and the
fate of Atilius Regulus form a conspicuous example of the fickleness of fortune. "When you, Scipio, have a
view of Africa from the sea will not your conquest of Spain seem mere child's play? What resemblance is
there between them? You began by coasting along the shores of Italy and Gaul over a sea free from any
hostile fleet, and you brought up at Emporiae, a friendly city. After disembarking your troops you led them
through a perfectly safe country to Tarraco, to the friends and allies of Rome, and from Tarraco your route
led through the midst of Roman garrisons. Round the Ebro lay the armies of your father and your uncle,
whose courage had been raised by defeat and who were burning to avenge the loss of their commanders.
Their leader was, it is true, irregularly chosen by the vote of the soldiery to meet the emergency, but had he
belonged to an ennobled family and been duly appointed he would have rivalled distinguished generals in his
mastery of the art of war. Then you were able to attack New Carthage without the slightest interruption; not
one out of the three Carthaginian armies attempted to defend their allies. The rest of your operations, though I
am far from depreciating them, are not to be compared with a war in Africa. There no harbour is open to our
fleet, no district which will receive us peaceably, no city in alliance with us, no king friendly to us, no spot
which we can use as a base of operations. Wherever you turn your eyes, you see hostility and menace.
"Do you put your trust in Syphax and his Numidians? Be satisfied with having trusted them once. Rashness
does not always succeed and duplicity prepares the way for confidence through trifles, so that when the
occasion calls for it, it may succeed in securing some great advantage. Your father and your uncle were not
defeated until the treachery of their Celtiberian auxiliaries left them victims to the enemy. You yourself were
not exposed to anything like the danger from the Carthaginian commanders, Mago and Hasdrubal, that you
were from Indibilis and Mandonius after you had accepted their alliance. Can you trust the Numidians after
the experience you have had of the disloyalty of your own troops? Syphax and Masinissa would both prefer
that they rather than the Carthaginians should be the leading powers in Africa, but failing that, they would
rather have the Carthaginians than any one else. At this moment mutual rivalry and numberless grounds of
complaint are embittering them against one another, because external dangers are far distant; but once let
them see the arms of Rome and a foreign army, and they will hasten side by side to extinguish, as it were, a
conflagration which threatens them both. Those Carthaginians defended Spain in a very different way from
that in which they would defend their country's walls, the temples of their gods, their hearths and homes,
when their trembling wives will follow them and their little children cling to them as they march out to battle.
What, moreover, if, feeling quite assured of the united support of Africa, the fidelity of their royal allies and
the strength of their walls, and seeing that you and your army are no longer here to protect Italy, the
Carthaginians should send over a fresh army from Africa, or order Mago, who, we understand, has left the
Balearic Isles and is sailing along the Ligurian coast, to form a junction with Hannibal? Surely we should be
in the same state of alarm as we were at the appearance in Italy of Hasdrubal, after you had allowed him to
slip through your handsyou, who are going to blockade not Carthage only but the whole of Africa with your
army! You will say that you defeated him. Then I regret all the more, both on your account and on behalf of
the republic, that you allowed him after his defeat to invade Italy.
"Allow us to ascribe all that has gone happily for you and for the dominion of Rome to your wise counsels,
and all misfortunes to the uncertain chances of warthe more talent and courage you claim for yourself the
more will your native country and all Italy desire to keep such a doughty defender at home. Even you cannot
disguise the fact that where Hannibal is, there is the centre and mainstay of the war, for you are giving out
that the one reason for your going to Africa is to draw Hannibal there. Whether there then or here, you still
have Hannibal to deal with. And will you, I should like to know, be in a stronger position in Africa,
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 91
Page No 94
singlehanded, than here with your own army and your colleague's acting together? What a difference that
makes is shown by the recent instance of the consuls Claudius and Livius. Where, pray, is Hannibal more
likely to be supplied with men and arms? In the most remote corner of Bruttium where he has so long been
vainly asking for reinforcements from home, or in the country round Carthage and on the soil of Africa which
is entirely occupied by his allies? What an extraordinary idea that is of yours to fight where your forces are
reduced by onehalf and those of the enemy largely augmented, rather than in a country where with two
armies you would engage only one, and that, too, exhausted by so many battles, and such long and
burdensome service. Just think how different your plan is from your father's. On his election as consul he
proceeded to Spain, then left his province and returned to Italy in order to meet Hannibal on his descent from
the Alps; you are preparing to leave Italy while Hannibal is actually here, not in the interest of the republic
but because you think it a grand and glorious thing to do. Just in the same way you, a general of the Roman
people, left your province and your army without any legal authority, without any instructions from the
senate, and entrusted to a couple of ships the fortunes of the State and the majesty of the empire which were
for the time bound up with your own safety. I hold the view that P. Cornelius Scipio was elected consul not
for his own private ends, but for us and the commonwealth, and that armies are raised to guard this city and
the soil of Italy, and not for consuls to transport to any part of the world they please in the arrogant style of
kings and despots."
This speech of Fabius, so appropriate to the circumstances under which it was delivered, and backed up by
the weight of his character and his longestablished reputation for prudence, produced a great effect upon
most of those present, especially upon the seniors. Seeing that the majority approved of the sage counsels of
age in preference to the impetuous temper of youth, Scipio is reported to have made the following reply:
"Senators, at the beginning of his speech, Q. Fabius admitted that what he had to say might lay him under a
suspicion of jealousy. Personally, I should not dare to accuse so great a man of that weakness, but either
through the inadequacy of his defence or the impossibility of making a successful one, he has utterly failed to
clear himself of the charge. For in his anxiety to dispel the suspicion, he spoke about his distinctions and his
reputation in such exaggerated terms as to give the impression that I was in danger of finding a rival in the
lowest of the Romans, not in him who, because he stands above all othersa position which I frankly confess
I am striving to attain, denies the possibility of any rivalry between us. He has represented himself as an old
man full of honours, and me as a youth not even as old as his son, as if the passion for glory did not extend
beyond the span of human life and find its chief satisfaction in the memory of future generations. I am quite
certain that it is the lot of all great men to compare themselves not with their contemporaries alone, but also
with the illustrious of all ages. I admit, Quintus Fabius, that I am desirous not only of equalling your renown
butforgive my saying soof surpassing it, if I can. Let not your feeling towards me, or mine towards my
juniors, be such that we would prevent any of our fellowcitizens from reaching our level. That would not
only injure the victims of our envy, it would be a loss to the State, and almost to the human race.
"The speaker dwelt upon the danger to which I should be exposed if I landed in Africa, showing apparently
solicitude not only for the commonwealth and its army but even for me. What has led to this sudden anxiety
on my account? When my father and my uncle were killed and their armies all but annihilated; when Spain
was lost; when four Carthaginian armies and their generals were holding the whole country down by the
terror of their arms; when you were looking for a man to take the supreme command in that war and no one
appeared, no one came forward to offer himself but me; when the Roman people conferred the supreme
command on me before I had reached my twentyfifth yearwhy did no one then say anything about my age,
the strength of the enemy, the difficulties of the campaign or the recent disaster which had overtaken my
father and my uncle? Has some calamity occurred recently in Africa greater than the one which happened
then in Spain? Are there larger armies and better and more numerous commanders in Africa now than there
were then in Spain? Was I then at a riper age for undertaking a great war than I am today? Is Spain a more
convenient field for operations against the Carthaginians than Africa? Now that I have scattered four
Carthaginian armies in flight, reduced so many cities by force or fear, and subjugated every part down to the
shores of the ocean, petty kings and savage tribes alike; now that I have reconquered the whole of Spain so
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 92
Page No 95
completely that no vestige of war anywhere remains, it is an easy task to make light of my services, as easy,
in fact, as it will be, when I have returned victorious from Africa, to make light of those very difficulties
which are now painted in such dark colours in order to keep me here.
"Fabius says that no part of Africa is accessible, that there are no harbours open to us. He tells us that M.
Atilius Regulus was made prisoner in Africa, as though he had met with misfortune as soon as he landed. He
forgets that that very commander, unfortunate as he was afterwards, did find some harbours in Africa open to
him, and for the first twelve months won some brilliant victories, and as far as the Carthaginian generals were
concerned, remained undefeated to the last. You will not, therefore, deter me by quoting that instance. Even if
that disaster had occurred in this war instead of in the last one, quite recently and not forty years agoeven
then why should I be prevented from invading Africa because Regulus was made prisoner any more than I
was prevented from going to Spain after the two Scipios were killed? I should be sorry to believe that
Xanthippus, the Lacedaemonian, was born to be a greater blessing to Carthage than I am to be to my country,
and my confidence is strengthened by seeing what tremendous issues depend upon one man's courage. We
have had to listen even to stories about the Athenians, how they neglected the war at their doors in order to go
to Sicily. Well, since you are at leisure to tell us tales about Greece why do you not mention Agathocles, king
of Syracuse, who after Sicily had long been wasted by the flames of the Punic War sailed across to this same
Africa and turned the tide of war back to the country from which it had started?"
"Put what need is there of instances drawn from other lands and other times to remind us how much depends
upon taking the aggressive and removing danger from ourselves by making it recoil upon others? It makes all
the difference in the world whether you are devastating the territory of another nation or seeing your own
destroyed by fire and sword. It shows more courage to attack than to repel attacks. Then again, the unknown
always inspires terror, but when you have entered your enemy's country you have a nearer view of his
strength and weakness. Hannibal never hoped that so many communities would go over to him after Cannae;
how much less could the Carthaginians, faithless allies, harsh and tyrannical masters as they are, count upon
the firmness and stability of their African empire! So far, even when deserted by our allies, we stood in our
own strength, the soldiery of Rome. The Carthaginians have no citizen army, their soldiers are all
mercenaries, ready to change sides on the smallest provocation. If only nothing stops me, you will hear that I
have landed, that Africa is wrapped in the flames of war, that Hannibal is tearing himself away from Italy,
that Carthage is besiegedall at one stroke. You may look for more cheerful and more frequent news from
Africa than you received from Spain. Everything inspires me with hopethe Fortune which waits on Rome,
the gods who witnessed the treaty which the enemy has broken, the two princes Syphax and Masinissa,
whose fidelity I shall so far trust as to protect myself from any perfidy they may attempt. Many advantages
which at this distance are not apparent will be disclosed as the war goes on. A man proves his capacity for
leadership by seizing every opportunity that presents itself, and making every contingency subserve his plans.
I shall have the adversary whom you, Q. Fabius assign to meHannibalbut I would rather draw him away
than that he should keep me here; I would compel him to fight in his own country, and Carthage shall be the
prize of victory rather than the halfruined strongholds of Bruttium.
"And now as to any injury that may befall the republic during my voyage or whilst I am disembarking my
men on the shores of Africa or during my advance on Carthage. As the consul, P. Licinius, is also Pontifex
Maximus, and cannot be absent from his sacred duties, it is impossible for him to ballot for so distant a
province. Would it not be almost an insult to say that he cannot accomplish the task, after Hannibal's power
has been shaken and almost shattered, which you, Q. Fabius, were able to accomplish when Hannibal in the
hour of victory was flying about in every part of Italy? And even if the war should not be brought to a more
speedy termination by the plan which I suggest, the dignity of Rome and her prestige amongst foreign kings
and nations would surely require us to show that we possess sufficient courage not only to defend Italy but to
carry our arms even as far as Africa. We must not let the idea get abroad that no Roman general durst do what
Hannibal has done, or that whilst in the First Punic War, when the struggle was for Sicily, Africa was
frequently attacked by our fleets and armies, in this war, when the struggle is for Italy, Africa is left in peace.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 93
Page No 96
Let Italy, which has been so long harassed, have some rest at last; let Africa take its turn of fire and ruin; let a
Roman camp threaten the gates of Carthage rather than that we should see the enemy's lines from our walls.
Let Africa be the seat of war henceforth; let us roll back there all the terror and the flight, all the wasting of
our lands and the defection of our allies, all the other miseries of war which have been assailing us for the last
fourteen years. Enough has been said as to the republic and the present war and the allocation of provinces. It
would be a long and uninteresting discussion if I were to follow the example of Q. Fabius, and as he has
depreciated my services in Spain, so I were to pour ridicule on his glory and extol my own. I will do neither
the one nor the other, senators, and if, young as I am, I cannot have the advantage over an old man in
anything else, I will at least prove his superior in moderation and restraint of language. My life and my
conduct of affairs have been such that I am quite content to accept in silence the judgment which you have
spontaneously formed."
Scipio was listened to with impatience, for it was generally believed that if he did not succeed in inducing the
senate to decree that Africa should be his province, he would at once bring the question before the Assembly.
So Q. Fabius, who had held four consulships, challenged Scipio to say openly before the senate whether he
left the decision as to the provinces in their hands, and was prepared to abide by it, or whether he was going
to refer it to the people. Scipio replied that he should act as he thought best in the interests of the State. On
this Fabius observed: "It was not because I did not know what you would say or how you would act that I
made my request, for you openly avow that you are sounding the House rather than consulting it, and that if
we do not at once assign you the province which you want, you have a resolution ready to put to the
Assembly." (Then, turning to the tribunes) "I demand of you, tribunes of the plebs, that you support me in my
refusal to vote, for even if the decision is in my favour the consul is not going to recognise it." Then a
discussion arose between the consul and the tribunes, he asserting that there was no just ground for their
intervening and supporting a senator in his refusal to vote, when called upon to do so. The tribunes gave their
decision in the following terms: "If the consul submits to the senate the allocation of the provinces their
decision shall be binding and final, and we will not allow any reference to the people. If he does not so
submit it, we shall support any senator in his refusal to vote when called upon to do so." The consul asked for
a day's grace in order to consult his colleague. The following day he submitted the matter to the decision of
the senate. The decree made respecting the provinces was that one consul should take Sicily and the thirty
warships which C. Servilius had had the previous year, permission being granted him to sail to Africa, if he
thought such a course would be in the interests of the State; the other consul was to take Bruttium and the
operations against Hannibal, with either the army which had served under L. Veturius, or the one which Q.
Caecilius had commanded. These two were to ballot and arrange which of them was to act in Bruttium with
the two legions which the consul would not require, and the one to whom that field should fall was to have
his command extended for a year. With the exception of the consuls and praetors, all who were to take charge
of armies and provinces had their commands extended for a year. It fell to Q. Caecilius to act with the consul
against Hannibal in Bruttium.
Scipio exhibited the Games amidst the applause of a large and enthusiastic crowd of spectators. M.
Pomponius Matho and Q. Catius were sent on a mission to Delphi to carry thither the offering made from the
plunder of Hasdrubal's camp. It was a golden crown of 200 pounds' weight, and there were facsimiles of the
pieces of spoil made in silver weighing in the aggregate 1000 pounds. Scipio did not succeed in obtaining
permission to levy troops and indeed he did not press the point, but he was allowed to enlist volunteers. As he
had stated that his fleet would not be a charge on the State he was given liberty to accept any materials
contributed by the allies for the construction of his ships. The cantons of Etruria were the first to promise
assistance, each according to its means. Caere contributed corn and provisions of all kinds for the crews;
Populonia, iron; Tarquinii, cloth for the sails; Volaterrae, timber for the hulls and corn; Arretium, 3000
shields and as many helmets, whilst they were ready to supply as many as 50,000 darts, javelins and long
spears. They also offered to furnish all the axes, spades, sickles, gabions and handmills required for forty
warships as well as 120,000 pecks of wheat and provision for the sailingmasters and the rowers on the
voyage. Perusia, Clusium and Russellae sent pinewood for the timbers of the ships and a large quantity of
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain 94
Page No 97
corn. The Umbrian communities as well as the inhabitants of Nursia, Reate and Amiternum and the whole of
the Sabine country promised to furnish men. Numerous contingents from the Marsi, the Paeligni and the
Marrucini volunteered to serve on board the fleet. Camerinum, a city leagued on a basis of equal rights with
Rome, sent a cohort of six hundred menatarms. The keels of thirty shipstwenty quinqueremes and ten
quadriremeswere laid down, and Scipio pressed on the work so rapidly that fortyfive days after the timber
had been brought from the forests, the ships were launched with their tackle and armament complete.
Scipio sailed to Sicily with 7000 volunteers on board his thirty warships, and P. Licinius proceeded to
Bruttium. Of the two consular armies stationed there he selected the one which the former consul L. Veturius
had commanded. He allowed Metellus to keep the legions he was in command of, as he thought he would do
better with men accustomed to his leadership. The praetors also departed for their several provinces. As
money was needed for the war the quaestors received instructions to sell that part of the Capuan territory
which extends from the Fossa Graeca to the coast, and evidence was asked for of any cases where land had
been appropriated by a citizen of Capua, that it might be included in the Roman stateland. The informer was
to receive a gratuity of ten per cent. of the value of the land. The City praetor, Cnaeus Servilius, was also to
see that the citizens of Capua were residing where the senate had given them permission to reside, and any
who were living elsewhere were to be punished. During the summer Mago who had been wintering in
Minorca embarked with a force of 12,000 infantry and 2000 cavalry, and set sail for Italy with about thirty
warships and a large number of transports. The coast was quite unguarded and he surprised and captured
Genua. From there he went on to the Ligurian coast on the chance of rousing the Gauls. One of their
tribesthe Ingauniwere at the time engaged in a war with the Epanterii, an Alpine tribe. After storing his
plunder in Savo and leaving ten vessels as guardships, Mago sent the remainder of his ships to Carthage to
protect the coast, as it was rumoured that Scipio intended to invade Africa, and then he formed an alliance
with the Ingauni, from whom he expected more support than from the mountaineers, and commenced to
attack the latter. His army grew in numbers every day; the Gauls, drawn by the spell of his name, flocked to
him from all parts. The movement became known in Rome through a despatch from Spurius Lucretius, and
the senate were filled with the gravest apprehensions. It seemed as though the joy with which they heard of
the destruction of Hasdrubal and his army two years before would be completely stultified by the outbreak of
a fresh war in the same quarter, quite as serious as the former one, the only difference being in the
commander. They sent orders to the proconsul M. Livius to move the army of Etruria up to Ariminum, and
the City praetor, Cnaeus Servilius, was empowered, in case he thought it advisable, to order the City legions
to be employed elsewhere and give the command to the man whom he thought most capable. M. Valerius
Laevinus led these legions to Arretium. About this time Cnaeus Octavius who was commanding in Sardinia
captured as many as eighty Carthaginian transports in the neighbourhood. According to Coelius' account they
were loaded with corn and supplies for Hannibal; Valerius, however, says that they were carrying the plunder
from Etruria and the Ligurian and Epanterian prisoners to Carthage. Hardly anything worth recording took
place in Bruttium this year. A pestilence attacked the Romans and the Carthaginians and was equally fatal to
both, but in addition to the epidemic, the Carthaginians were suffering from scarcity of food. Hannibal spent
the summer near the temple of Juno Lacinia, where he built and dedicated an altar with a long inscription
recording his exploits in Phoenician and also in Greek.
Book 29. Scipio in Africa
On his arrival in Sicily Scipio organised the volunteers into maniples and centuries, and selected three
hundred of the most robust and active whom he kept about his person. They did not carry arms, and did not
know why they were unarmed, and why they were not included in the centuries. Then he picked out of the
whole military population of Sicily three hundred of the noblest and wealthiest and formed them into a
cavalry corps to take with him into Africa. He fixed a day on which they were to present themselves fully
equipped with horses and arms. The prospect of a campaign far from home with its many toils and great
dangers both by land and sea appalled the young fellows as well as their parents and relations. When the
appointed day arrived they all appeared fully armed and accounted. Scipio then told them that it had come to
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 95
Page No 98
his knowledge that some of the Sicilian cavalry were looking forward with dread to their expedition as one
full of difficulties and hardships. If any of them felt like that he would rather that they owned it at once than
that the republic should have reluctant and inefficient soldiers who were always grumbling. They should
speak out their mind, he would listen to them without any feeling of resentment. One of them ventured to say
that if he were free to choose he would rather not go, whereupon Scipio replied: "Since, young man, you have
not concealed your real sentiments I will provide a substitute for you; you will give up to him your horse and
your arms and other military outfit and take him with you at once to train him and instruct him in the
management of a horse and the use of arms." The man was delighted to get off on these terms and Scipio
handed over to him one of the three hundred whom he was keeping unarmed. When the others saw the
trooper exempted in this way with the commander's approval they, every one of them, excused themselves
and accepted a substitute. By this means the Romans replaced the three hundred Sicilian cavalry without any
expense to the State. The Sicilians had all the care of their training, for the general's orders were that any one
who did not carry this out would have to go on active service himself. It is said that this turned out a splendid
squadron of cavalry and did good work for the republic in many battles.
Then he inspected the legions and picked out the men who had seen most service, particularly those who had
been under Marcellus, as he considered that these had been trained in the best school, and after their
protracted investment of Syracuse were thoroughly familiar with the methods of attacking fortified places. In
fact Scipio was not contemplating any small operations, he had already fixed his mind on the capture and
destruction of Carthage. He then distributed his army amongst the fortified towns and ordered the Sicilians to
supply corn, thus husbanding what had been brought from Italy. The old ships were refitted and C. Laelius
was sent with them to plunder the African coast; the new ones he beached at Panormus, as owing to their
hasty construction they had been built of unseasoned wood and he wished them to be on dry land through the
winter. When his preparations for war were completed, Scipio visited Syracuse. This city had not yet
recovered its tranquillity after the violent convulsions of the war. Certain men of Italian nationality had seized
the property of some Syracusans at the time of the capture, and though the senate had ordered its restitution
they still retained it. After making fruitless efforts to recover it, the Greeks came to Scipio for redress. He felt
that confidence in the honesty of the government was of the very first importance, and by issuing a
proclamation and pronouncing judgment against those who persisted in keeping possession he succeeded in
restoring their property to the Syracusans. This action on his part was gratefully appreciated not only by the
owners themselves but by all the cities of Sicily, and they exerted themselves more than ever to assist him.
During this summer an extensive war broke out in Spain at the instigation of Indibilis, whose sole motive was
his intense admiration for Scipio which made him think lightly of other commanders. The people looked
upon him as the only general the Romans had left to them, all the others having been killed by Hannibal.
Indibilis told the Spaniards that it was owing to this there was no one else who could be sent to Spain after
the two Scipios were killed, and when the war began to press more heavily on Italy he was recalled home as
the only man who could oppose Hannibal. The Roman generals in Spain were nothing but names and the
veteran army had been withdrawn; now there was confusion everywhere, and an untrained mob of raw
recruits. Never again would Spain have such a chance of recovering its liberty. Up to that time it had been in
bondage to either the Romans or the Carthaginians, nor always to one alone, occasionally to both at the same
time. The Carthaginians had been expelled by the Romans, the Romans could be expelled by the Spaniards if
they were unanimous, and then with their country freed for ever from foreign domination they could return to
the traditions and rites of their forefathers. By arguments of this kind he succeeded in rousing his own people
and their neighbours, the Ausetani. Other tribes round joined them and in a few days 30,000 infantry and
about 4000 cavalry mustered in the Sedetanian territory, the appointed rendezvous.
The Roman commanders, L. Lentulus and L. Manlius Acidinus, were determined not to let the war spread
through any remissness on their part. They united their forces and marched with their combined strength
through the Ausetanian territory, inflicting no injury on either the hostile or the peaceable districts, until they
came to where the enemy was encamped. They fixed their own camp at a distance of three miles from that of
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 96
Page No 99
the enemy, and sent envoys to persuade him to lay down his arms. When, however, the Spanish horse
attacked a party of foragers, cavalry supports were at once hurried up from the Roman outposts, and a
skirmish took place without any special advantage to either side. On the morrow the whole of the Spanish
army marched under arms and in battle formation to within a mile of the Roman camp. The Ausetani formed
the centre, the Ilergetes were on the right and the left was made up of various nameless tribes. Between the
wings and the centre open spaces were left, wide enough to allow of the cavalry charging through when the
right moment arrived. The Roman line was formed in the usual way, except that they so far copied the enemy
as to leave spaces between the legions for their cavalry also to pass through. Lentulus, however, saw that this
disposition would be of advantage to that side only who were the first to send their cavalry through the wide
gaps in the opposing line. Accordingly he gave the military tribune, Servius Cornelius, orders to send his
cavalry at full speed through the openings. He himself, finding that his infantry were making no progress, and
that the twelfth legion, who were on the left, opposed to the Ilergetes, were beginning to give ground, brought
up the thirteenth legion who were in reserve to their support. As soon as the battle was restored in this quarter
he rode up to L. Manlius, who was at the front encouraging his men and bringing up assistance wherever it
was required, and pointed out to him that all was safe on his left and that S. Cornelius, acting under his
orders, would soon envelop the enemy with a whirlwind of cavalry. He had hardly said this when the Roman
cavalry charging into the middle of the enemy threw his infantry into confusion, and at the same time barred
the passage for the Spanish horse. These, finding themselves unable to act as cavalry, dismounted and fought
on foot. When the Roman commanders saw the enemy's ranks in disorder, confusion and panic spreading and
the standards swaying to and fro, they appealed to their men to break up the enemy while thus shaken and not
let them reform their line. The barbarians would not have withstood the furious attack which followed had
not Indibilis and his dismounted cavalry placed themselves in front to screen the infantry. There was very
violent fighting for some time, neither side giving way. The king though half dead kept his ground till he was
pinned to the earth by a javelin, and then those who were fighting round him were at last overwhelmed
beneath showers of missiles. A general flight began and the carnage was all the greater because the troopers
had no time to recover their horses, and the Romans never relaxed the pursuit until they had stripped the
enemy of his camp. 13,000 Spaniards were killed on that day and about 1800 prisoners taken. Of the Romans
and allies a little more than 200 fell, mainly on the left wing. The Spaniards who had been routed on the field
or driven out of their camp, dispersed amongst the fields, and finally returned to their respective
communities.
After this Mandonius summoned a meeting of the national council, at which loud complaints were uttered
about the disasters they had incurred, and the authors of the war were strongly denounced. It was resolved to
send envoys to make a formal surrender and offer to give up their arms. They threw all the blame on Indibilis
for starting the war, and on the other chieftains also, most of whom had fallen in the battle. The reply they
received was that their surrender would only be accepted on condition of their giving up Mandonius alive and
the other instigators of the war; failing this, the Roman army would march into the country of the Ilergetes
and Ausetani, and into the territories of other nations one after another. When this reply was reported to the
council, Mandonius and the other chiefs were at once arrested and handed over for punishment. Peace was
reestablished amongst the Spanish tribes. They were required to furnish double pay for the troops that year,
a six months' supply of corn, and cloaks and togas for the army. Hostages were also demanded from about
thirty tribes. In this way the revolt in Spain was crushed without any serious disturbance, and all the terror of
our arms was turned towards Africa. C. Laelius reached Hippo Regius in the night, and at daybreak his
soldiers and the crews of the vessels were sent ashore for the purpose of ravaging the surrounding country. As
the inhabitants were all peacefully pursuing their avocations and suspecting no danger, considerable mischief
was done amongst them. Wild alarm was spread through Carthage by the breathless fugitives, who declared
that a Roman fleet had arrived under the command of Scipio; the report of his having crossed over to Sicily
had already got abroad. As no one was quite clear as to how many ships had been sighted, or what was the
strength of the force that was landed, they were led by their fears to exaggerate everything. When they had
recovered from the first shock of alarm they were filled with consternation and grief. "Has Fortune," they
asked, "so completely changed that the nation which in the pride of victory had an army before the walls of
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 97
Page No 100
Rome, and after making so many of the enemy's armies bite the dust, forced or persuaded into submission all
the peoples of Italy should now in the recoil of war have to witness the desolation of Africa and the siege of
Carthage without having anything like the resources which the Romans have wherewith to meet these
troubles? In the Roman plebs and in Latium they are supplied with a soldiery which is always growing more
efficient and more numerous to replace all the armies they have lost, whilst our common people are utterly
unwarlike whether in town or country. We have to hire mercenaries from amongst the Africans, upon whom
no dependence can be placed, who are as fickle as the wind. The native sovereigns are hostile now; Syphax
has quite turned against us since his interview with Scipio; Masinissa has openly declared himself our
bitterest enemy. Nowhere does there appear the slightest prospect of help. Mago has not created any outbreak
in Gaul nor has he effected a junction with Hannibal; Hannibal himself is weakening, both in prestige and in
strength."
The Carthaginians were recalled from the gloomy reflections into which the dire news had plunged them by
the pressure of immediate danger and the necessity of devising means to meet it. They decided to raise a
hasty levy from the town and country population alike, to send officers to enlist African mercenaries, to
strengthen the defences of the city, to accumulate stores of corn, to prepare a supply of weapons and armour,
to fit out ships and despatch them against the Roman fleet at Hippo. In the midst of these preparations news
came that it was Laelius, not Scipio, who was in command, that the force he had brought was only sufficient
to make a raid and that the main strength of the war was still in Sicily. So they breathed freely once more, and
began to send deputations to Syphax and the other princes with the view of consolidating their alliance. They
even sent envoys to Philip with the promise of two hundred talents of silver to induce him to invade either
Sicily or Italy. Instructions were also sent to their generals in Italy to keep Scipio fully employed at home and
so prevent him from leaving the country. To Mago they sent not only instructions but also 25 warships, a
force of 6000 infantry, 800 cavalry and 7 elephants. A large amount of money was also forwarded to him to
enable him to raise a body of mercenaries, with which he might be able to move nearer Rome and form a
junction with Hannibal. Such were the preparations and plans of Carthage. While Laelius was carrying off the
enormous quantity of booty which he had taken from the defenceless and unprotected peasantry, Masinissa,
who had heard of the arrival of the Roman fleet, came with a small escort to visit him. He complained of the
want of energy shown by Scipio. Why, he asked, had he not brought his army to Africa just at a time when
the Carthaginians were in a state of dismay and consternation, and Syphax was preoccupied with war with his
neighbours? He was quite certain that if time were allowed him for arranging matters as he wished, Syphax
would be anything but a true friend to the Romans. Laelius must urge Scipio to push on without delay and he,
Masinissa, though driven from his kingdom would assist him with a force of horse and foot, which would be
by no means contemptible. Laelius himself, too, must not stay in Africa, there was reason to believe that a
fleet had sailed from Carthage with which in Scipio's absence it would not be safe to engage. After this
conversation Masinissa took his departure, and the following day Laelius left Hippo with his ships laden with
plunder and returned to Sicily where he laid Masinissa's instructions before Scipio.
It was about this time that the ships which had been despatched from Carthage to Mago appeared off the
coast at a place situated between the Ingauni and Genua. Mago's fleet happened to be anchored there at the
time, and as soon as he learnt the nature of the instructions brought to him and that he was to gather together
as large a force as possible, he at once summoned a council of the Gallic and Ligurian chieftains, the two
nationalities of which the large population of that country was composed. When they were assembled he told
them that his mission was to restore them to liberty, and as they could see for themselves reinforcements were
being sent to him from home. But it depended upon them what numbers and strength would be available for
the war. There were two Roman armies in the field, one in Gaul, the other in Etruria, and he knew as a matter
of fact that Spurius Lucretius would unite his forces with M. Livius. A good many thousands of men must be
armed if they were to offer an effectual resistance to two Roman generals and two armies. The Gauls assured
him that they were perfectly willing to do their part, but as one Roman camp was on their territory and the
other just within the frontier of Etruria, almost within sight of them, any attempt to assist the Carthaginians
openly would subject their country to an invasion from both sides. Mago must ask from the Gauls only such
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 98
Page No 101
assistance as they could furnish secretly. As for the Ligurians, the Roman camp was a long way from their
cities, they were therefore free to act as they chose, it was right that they should arm their men and take their
fair share in the war. The Ligurians raised no objection, they only asked for an interval of two months in
which to raise their force. Mago in the meantime after sending the Gauls home began to hire mercenary
troops secretly throughout their country, and clandestine supplies were sent to him from the different
communities. M. Livius marched his army of volunteer slaves from Etruria into Gaul and after joining hands
with Lucretius made preparations for opposing any movement which Mago might make in the direction of
Rome. If on the other hand the Carthaginians remained quiet in that corner of the Alps he would also stay
where he was, near Ariminum, to defend Italy.
Scipio's eagerness to carry out his project was quickened by the report which C. Laelius brought back of his
conversation with Masinissa, and the troops, too, were very keen to make the voyage when they saw the
whole of Laelius' fleet loaded with plunder taken from the enemy. His larger purpose, however, was crossed
by a smaller undertaking, namely the conquest of Locri, one of the cities which in the general defection of
Italy had gone over to the Carthaginians. The hope of achieving this object had arisen from a very trivial
incident. The struggle in Bruttium had assumed the character of brigandage much more than that of regular
warfare. The Numidians had commenced the practice, and the Bruttians followed their example, not so much
because of their alliance with the Carthaginians as because it was their traditional and natural method of
carrying on war. At last even the Romans were infected by the passion for plunder and, as far as their
generals allowed them, used to make predatory incursions on the enemy's fields. A party of Locrians who had
left the shelter of their city were caught by them in one of these raids and carried off to Regium, and amongst
them were some artisans who had been working for the Carthaginians in the citadel of Locri. Many of the
Locrian nobles who had been expelled by their opponents when the city was surrendered to Hannibal had
retired to Regium and were living there at the time. They recognised these artisans and naturally after their
long absence wanted to know what was going on at home. After replying to all their questions the prisoners
said that if they were ransomed and sent back they believed that they could betray the citadel to them, as they
lived there and were implicitly trusted by the Carthaginians. The nobles, filled as they were, with a yearning
for home and burning to take vengeance on their opponents, came to an understanding with them as to how
the project was to be executed and what signals those in the citadel were to look out for. They then promptly
ransomed them and sent them back. Their next step was to proceed to Syracuse, where some of the refugees
were staying, and interview Scipio. They told him what the prisoners had promised to do, and he felt that
there was a reasonable prospect of success. Two military tribunes, M. Sergius and P. Matienus, accompanied
them back to Regium with orders to take 3000 men from the garrison there and march to Locri. Written
instructions were also sent to the propraetor Q. Pleminius to take command of the expedition.
The troops started from Regium carrying with them ladders specially constructed to reach the lofty elevation
of the citadel and about midnight they arrived at the place from which they were to give the signal agreed
upon. The conspirators were on the look out, and when they observed the signal they lowered ladders which
they had made for the purpose, and in this way the assailants were able to mount at several different points
simultaneously. Before any shouting arose they attacked the men on guard who, suspecting no danger, were
asleep. Their dying groans were the first sounds that were heard, then there was the consternation of men
suddenly awakened and not knowing the cause of the tumult, and at last when they discovered it they roused
the rest and every man shouted his loudest, "To arms! the enemy is in the citadel and the sentinels are being
killed!" The Romans, who were far outnumbered, would have been overpowered had not the shouts of those
outside bewildered the garrison, whilst everything seemed more terrible in the confusion and panic of a
nocturnal assault. The Carthaginians in their alarm imagined that the citadel was filled by the enemy, and
abandoning all further resistance fled to the other citadel which was situated not far from the first. The city
itself, which lay between the two as the prize of victory, was held by the townsmen. Sorties were made from
each citadel and skirmishes went on day by day. Q. Pleminius commanded the Roman garrison and Hamilcar
the Carthaginian. The numbers on each side were augmented by reinforcements from neighbouring positions.
At last Hannibal himself moved up and the Romans would not have held out had not the population,
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 99
Page No 102
embittered by the tyranny and rapacity of the Carthaginians, taken their side.
When information reached Scipio as to the serious state of affairs at Locri and Hannibal's approach, he feared
for the garrison, which would be in great danger owing to the difficulty of withdrawal. Leaving his brother
Lucius in command of a detachment at Messana, he set sail as soon as the tide turned and allowed a
favourable voyage. Hannibal had reached the river Bulotus, at a point not far from Locri, and had sent
instructions from there to Hamilcar, ordering him to commence a violent attack on the Romans and Locrians,
whilst he himself would deliver an assault on the opposite side of the city, which would be left unguarded as
everyone's attention would be devoted to the attack which Hamilcar was making. He arrived before the city at
daybreak and found the fighting already begun, but he would not confine himself in the citadel where his
men, crowded together, would hamper one another's movements, and he had not brought scaling ladders for
an attempt on the walls. After giving orders for the baggage to be piled, he displayed his army in battle
formation with the view of intimidating the enemy. Whilst ladders were being got ready and preparations
made for an assault he rode round the walls with his Numidians to see where an approach could best be made.
As he was advancing towards the wall, one of those who happened to be close to him was struck by a missile
from a scorpion, and, alarmed at the danger to which his men were exposed, he ordered the retreat to be
sounded and entrenched himself in a position far beyond the range of any missiles. The Roman fleet arrived
from Messana sufficiently early in the day to allow of the whole force disembarking and entering the city
before sunset. The next day the Carthaginians began the fighting from the citadel, whilst Hannibal advanced
to the walls with the scaling ladders and all other apparatus in readiness for the assault. Suddenly a gate was
flung open, and the Romans sallied out against himthe last thing he was expecting. In their sudden charge
they killed as many as 200, and Hannibal, finding that the consul was commanding in person, retired the rest
of his force to his camp. He sent word to those in the citadel that they must provide for their own safety.
During the night he broke up his camp and departed, and the men in the citadel, after setting their quarters on
fire in order to delay any pursuit by the confusion thus created, followed and overtook their main body with a
speed which looked very much like flight.
When Scipio discovered that the citadel had been evacuated and the camp abandoned, he summoned the
Locrians to an assembly and bitterly reproached them for their defection. The authors of the revolt were
executed and their property assigned to the leaders of the other party as a reward for their exceptional loyalty
to Rome. As regarded the political status of Locri he said that he would make no change, they were to send
representatives to Rome, and what the senate thought right, that would be their fate. He added that he was
quite sure that although they had behaved so badly to Rome, they would be better off under the Romans,
incensed as they were against them, than under their friends, the Carthaginians. Leaving the detachment
which had captured the citadel, with Pleminius in command, to protect the city, he returned with the troops he
had brought to Messana. After their secession from Rome the Locrians had met with such tyrannical and
brutal treatment from the Carthaginians, that they could have submitted to ordinary illusage not only with
patience but almost with cheerfulness. But, as a matter of fact, Pleminius so far surpassed Hamilcar, his
soldiers so far surpassed the Carthaginians in criminality and greed that they seemed to be rivalling one
another in vice, not in courage. Nothing that can make the power of the strong hateful to the weak and
defenceless was left undone by the general and his men in their conduct towards the townsmen. Unspeakable
outrages were inflicted on their persons, their wives and their children. Their rapacity did not shrink even
from sacrilege; not content with plundering the other temples it is recorded that they laid hands on the
treasury of Proserpine, which had always been undisturbed, except by Pyrrhus, and even he restored the
plunder and made a costly offering to expiate his sacrilegious deed. As on that occasion the king's ships,
tempest tossed and shattered, brought to land nothing that was uninjured, except the sacred money of the
goddess, so now by a disaster of a different kind the same money drove all who were contaminated by the
violation of her temple to such a pitch of frenzy that general was turned against general, and soldier against
soldier in all the madness of mortal strife.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 100
Page No 103
Pleminius was in supreme command, and he had with him the troops he had brought from Regium, the rest
were under the military tribunes. One of his men was running off with a silver cup which he had stolen from
a house, and the owners were running after him. He happened to meet Sergius and Matienus, the military
tribunes, who ordered the cup to be taken from him. A dispute arose, angry shouts were raised, and at last a
regular fight began between the soldiers of Pleminius and those of the military tribunes. As first one and then
another ran up and joined his own side, the number and noise of the combatants went on increasing.
Pleminius' party were worsted and ran to their commander with loud and angry shouts, showing him their
wounds and bloodstained armour, and repeating the insulting language which had been used about him in
the quarrel. He was furious, and rushing out of his house summoned the tribunes before him, and ordered
them to be stripped and the rods got ready. This took some time, for they struggled and appealed for help to
their men, who, excited by their recent victory, ran up from all parts as though they had been summoned to
arms to repel an attack. When they saw the persons of their tribunes actually outraged by the rods they were
kindled into ungovernable fury, and without the slightest respect for the majesty of office or even for
humanity, they grossly maltreated the lictors, and then having separated Pleminius from his men and hemmed
him in, they slit his nose and ears and left him half dead. All this was reported to Scipio at Messana, and a
few days later he came in a sixbanked galley to Locri, where he held a formal enquiry into the causes of the
disturbance. Pleminius was acquitted and retained his post; the tribunes were declared to be guilty and thrown
into chains with a view to their being sent to Rome. Scipio then returned to Messana, and from there
proceeded to Syracuse. Pleminius was beside himself with rage. He considered that Scipio had treated his
wrongs far too lightly, and that the only man who could assess the penalty was the man who had suffered the
outrage. The tribunes were dragged before him, and after undergoing every torture which the human body
can endure, were put to death. Even then his cruelty was not satiated and he ordered the bodies to be cast
forth unburied. He exercised the same savage cruelty upon the leading citizens of Locri, who he learnt had
gone to Scipio to complain of his misconduct. The shocking proofs he had already given of his lust and greed
amongst the allies of Rome were now multiplied in his fury, and the shame and odium they created recoiled
not only on him but on his commanderinchief as well.
The date of the elections was approaching, when a despatch was received from the consul P. Licinius. In it he
stated that both he and his army were suffering from serious illness, and they could not have held their
position if the enemy had not been visited with equal or even greater severity. As, therefore, he could not
himself come, he would, if the senate approved, nominate Quintus Caecilius Metellus as Dictator to conduct
the elections. He suggested that it would be advisable in the public interest for Q. Caecilius' army to be
disbanded, as there was no immediate use for them now that Hannibal had gone into winter quarters and the
epidemic had attacked their camp with such violence that unless they were soon disbanded, not a single man,
judging from appearances, would survive. The senate left it to the consul to take such steps as he thought
most consistent with his duty to the commonwealth. About this time the citizens were much exercised by a
religious question which had lately come up. Owing to the unusual number of showers of stones which had
fallen during the year, an inspection had been made of the Sibylline Books, and some oracular verses had
been discovered which announced that whenever a foreign foe should carry war into Italy he could be driven
out and conquered if the Mater Idaea were brought from Pessinus to Rome. The discovery of this prediction
produced all the greater impression on the senators because the deputation who had taken the gift to Delphi
reported on their return that when they sacrificed to the Pythian Apollo the indications presented by the
victims were entirely favourable, and further, that the response of the oracle was to the effect that a far
grander victory was awaiting Rome than the one from whose spoils they had brought the gift to Delphi. They
regarded the hopes thus raised as confirmed by the action of Scipio in demanding Africa as his province as
though he had a presentiment that this would bring the war to an end. In order, therefore, to secure all the
sooner the victory which the Fates the omens and the oracles alike foreshadowed, they began to think out the
best way of transporting the goddess to Rome.
Up to that time the Roman people had no allies amongst the communities in Asia. They had not forgotten
however, that when they were suffering from a serious epidemic they had sent to fetch Aesculapius from
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 101
Page No 104
Greece though they had no treaty with that country, and now that King Attalus had formed a friendly league
with them against their common enemy, Philip, they hoped that he would do what he could in the interest of
Rome. Accordingly, they decided to send a mission to him; those selected for the purpose being M. Valerius
Laevinus who had been twice consul and had also been in charge of the operations in Greece, M. Caecilius
Metellus an expraetor, S. Sulpicius Galba, formerly aedile, and two who had been quaestors, Cnaeus
Tremellius Flaccus and M. Valerius Falto. It was arranged that they should sail with five quinqueremes in
order that they might present an appearance worthy of the people of Rome when they visited those states
which were to be favourably impressed with the greatness of the Roman name. On their way to Asia the
commissioners landed at Delphi, and at once went to consult the oracle and ascertain what hopes it held out
to them and their country of accomplishing their task. The response which they are said to have received was
that they would attain their object through King Attalus and when they had conveyed the goddess to Rome
they were to take care that the best and noblest men in Rome should accord her a fitting reception. They went
on to the royal residence in Pergamum, and here the king gave them a friendly welcome and conducted them
to Pessinus in Phrygia. He then handed over to them the sacred stone which the natives declared to be "the
Mother of the Gods," and bade them carry it to Rome. M. Valerius Falto was sent on in advance to announce
that the goddess was on her way, and that the best and noblest man in Rome must be sought out to receive her
with all due honour. The consul commanding in Bruttium nominated Q. Caecilius Metellus as Dictator to
conduct the elections and his army was disbanded; L. Veturius Philo was Master of the Horse. The new
consuls were M. Cornelius Cethegus and P. Sempronius Tuditanus; the latter was elected in his absence as he
was commanding in Greece. Then followed the election of praetors, those elected being Tiberius Claudius
Nero, M. Marcius Ralla, L. Scribonius Libo and M. Pomponius Matho. When the elections were over, the
Dictator resigned his office. The Roman Games were celebrated three times, the Plebeian Games, seven
times. The curule aediles were the two Cornelii, Cnaeus and Lucius. Lucius was in charge of the province of
Spain; he was elected in his absence, and though absent, discharged the duties of his office. Tiberius Claudius
Asellus and M. Junius Pennus were the plebeian aediles. The temple of Virtus near the Porta Capena was
dedicated by M. Marcellus this year; it had been vowed by his father at Clastidium in Gaul seventeen years
previously. M. Aemilius Regillus, Flamen of Mars, died this year.
Little attention had been paid to affairs in Greece for the last two years. As a result, Philip, finding that the
Aetolians had been abandoned by the Romans to whom alone they looked for help, compelled them to sue for
peace and accept whatever terms he chose. Had he not devoted all his strength to secure this result as soon as
possible, his operations against them would have been interrupted by the proconsul P. Sempronius who had
succeeded Sulpicius and commanded a force of 10,000 infantry, 1000 cavalry and 35 ships of war, a
considerable force to bring to the assistance of our allies. Hardly had the peace been concluded when news
reached the king that the Romans were at Dyrrachium and that the Parthini and neighbouring tribes had risen
and were besieging Dimallum. The Romans had diverted their force to this place, for as the Aetolians had
concluded the treaty with the king without their consent, they showed their resentment by refusing the help
which they were sent to give them. On receiving this intelligence Philip, anxious to prevent the movement
from spreading, hastened to Apollonia. Sempronius had withdrawn to this place after sending Laetorius with
a portion of his force and fifteen ships to Aetolia to see how matters stood there and, if possible, upset the
peace. Philip ravaged the country round Apollonia, and brought his forces up to the city in order to give the
Romans an opportunity of fighting. As, however, he saw that they kept within their walls, and feeling
doubtful as to his ability to attack the place, he withdrew into his kingdom. An additional motive for his
retirement was his desire to establish peace with them as he had with the Aetolians, or if not peace at all
events a truce, and consequently he avoided irritating them by further hostilities.
The Epirotes were by this time tired of the longcontinued war and after sounding the Romans sent envoys to
Philip with proposals for a general settlement and assuring him that there was no doubt as to its being
arranged if he would confer with Sempronius. The king was by no means averse from the proposal, and
readily consented to visit Epirus. Phoenice, an important city in Epirus, was chosen as the place of meeting,
and there the king, after a preliminary interview with Aeropus, Dardas and Philip, the chief magistrates of the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 102
Page No 105
Epirotes, met Sempronius. There were present at the conference Amynander, king of the Athamanians, as
well as the chief magistrates of the Epirotes and Acarnanians. The Epirote magistrate, Philip, opened the
discussion by appealing to the king and the Roman general to put a stop to the war out of consideration for
the Epirotes. The conditions of peace as stated by Sempronius were that the Parthini together with the towns
of Dimallum, Bargullum and Eugenium should belong to Rome, and Atintania should be annexed by
Macedon, if Philip obtained the sanction of the senate to the arrangement. When the terms were settled the
king included Prusias, king of Bithynia, and also the Achaeaus, the Boeotians, the Thessalians, the
Acarnanians and the Epirotes as parties to the agreement. The Romans on their side extended its provisions to
the Ilienses, King Attalus, Pleuratus, Nabis, tyrant of the Lacedaemonians, the Eleans, the Messenians and the
Athenians. The clauses were then reduced to writing and duly sealed. A two months' armistice was agreed
upon to allow of envoys being sent to Rome to obtain from the Assembly the ratification of the treaty. All the
tribes voted for it; they were glad to be relieved for the time from the pressure of other wars now that their
efforts were directed towards Africa. After the conclusion of peace, P. Sempronius left for Rome to take up
the duties of his consulship.
P. Sempronius and M. Cornelius entered upon their consulship in the fifteenth year of the Punic War. To the
latter was decreed the province of Etruria with the standing army there; Sempronius received Bruttium and
had to enrol fresh troops. Of the praetors, M. Marcius took over the City jurisdiction, L. Scribonius Libo was
charged with the jurisdiction over aliens and also the administration of Gaul, Sicily fell to M. Pomponius
Matho, and Sardinia to Tiberius Claudius Nero. P. Scipio had his command extended for twelve months with
the army and fleet which he already had. P. Licinius was to remain in Bruttium with two legions as long as
the consul thought it advisable for him to retain his command there. M. Livius and Sp. Lucretius were also to
retain the legions with which they had been protecting Gaul against Mago. Cnaeus Octavius was to hand over
his legion and the command in Sardinia to Nero and take charge of a fleet of forty ships for the protection of
the coast within the limits fixed by the senate. The remains of the army of Cannae, amounting to two legions,
were assigned to M. Pomponius, the praetor commanding in Sicily. T. Quinctius was to hold Tarentum and
C. Hostilius Tubulus Capua with the existing garrisonsboth with the rank of propraetor. With regard to the
command in Spain it was left to the people to decide upon the two proconsuls who were to be sent into that
province and they were unanimous in retaining L. Cornelius Lentulus and L. Manlius Acidinus in command
there. The consuls proceeded with the enlistment, as ordered by the senate, for the purpose of raising fresh
legions for Bruttium and bringing the other armies up to full strength.
Although Africa had not been officially placed among the provincesthe senators, I think, kept it secret to
prevent the Carthaginians from getting information beforehandthe citizens fully expected that Africa would
be the scene of hostilities this year, and that the end of the Punic War was not far off. In this state of
excitement men's minds were filled with superstition and the ready credence given to announcement of
portents increased their number. Two suns were said to have been seen; there were intervals of daylight
during the night; a meteor was seen to shoot from east to west; a gate at Tarracina and at Anagnia a gate and
several portions of the wall were struck by lightning; in the temple of Juno Sospita at Lanuvium a crash
followed by a dreadful roar was heard. To expiate these portents special intercessions were offered for a
whole day, and in consequence of a shower of stones a nine days' solemnity of prayer and sacrifice was
observed. The reception of Mater Idaea was also being anxiously discussed. M. Valerius, the member of the
deputation who had come in advance, had reported that she would be in Italy almost immediately and a fresh
messenger had brought word that she was already at Tarracina. The attention of the senate was engrossed by
a very difficult question; they had to decide who was the best and noblest man in the State. Every one felt that
to gain this distinction would be for him a real victory, far outweighing any official position or honourable
distinction which either patricians or plebeians could confer. Of all the great and good men in the State they
adjudged the best and noblest to be P. Scipio, the son of the Cnaeus Scipio who had fallen in Spain; a young
man not yet old enough to be quaestor. What special merits of his induced the senate to come to this
conclusion I should have been glad to record for posterity had the writers who lived nearest to those days
handed them down. As it is I will not obtrude my conjectures upon a matter hidden in the mists of antiquity.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 103
Page No 106
P. Scipio was ordered to go to Ostia, accompanied by all the matrons, to meet the goddess. He was to receive
her as she left the vessel, and when brought to land he was to place her in the hands of the matrons who were
to bear her to her destination. As soon as the ship appeared off the mouth of the Tiber he put out to sea in
accordance with his instructions, received the goddess from the hands of her priestesses, and brought her to
land. Here she was received by the foremost matrons of the City, amongst whom the name of Claudia Quinta
stands out preeminently. According to the traditional account her reputation had previously been doubtful,
but this sacred function surrounded her with a halo of chastity in the eyes of posterity. The matrons, each
taking their turn in bearing the sacred image, carried the goddess into the temple of Victory on the Palatine.
All the citizens flocked out to meet them, censers in which incense was burning were placed before the doors
in the streets through which she was borne, and from all lips arose the prayer that she would of her own free
will and favour be pleased to enter Rome. The day on which this event took place was 12th April, and was
observed as a festival; the people came in crowds to make their offerings to the deity; a lectisternium was
held and Games were constituted which were known afterwards as the Megalesian.
Whilst steps were being taken to complete the drafts for the legions in the provinces, some of the senators
suggested that the time had come to deal with a state of things, which, however they might have put up with
it at a time of critical emergency, was intolerable now that the goodness of the gods had removed their fears.
Amid the close attention of the House they stated that "the twelve Latin colonies which refused to furnish
soldiers when Q. Fabius and Q. Fulvius were our consuls have now for almost six years been enjoying an
exemption from military service, as though an honourable distinction had been conferred upon them. In the
meanwhile our good and faithful allies have, as a reward for their fidelity and devotion, been completely
exhausted by the levies which they have raised year after year." These words not only recalled to the memory
of the senate a fact which they had almost forgotten, but they called forth a strong feeling of resentment.
Accordingly, they insisted on taking this as the first business before the House, and made the following
decree: "The consuls shall summon to Rome the chief magistrates and the ten leading councillors of each of
the offending colonies, namely, Nepete, Sutrium, Ardea, Cales, Alba, Carseoli, Sora, Suessa, Setia, Cerceii,
Narnia, and Interamna. They shall order each colony to supply a contingent of infantry twice as numerous as
the largest they have raised since the Carthaginians appeared in Italy, and 120 cavalry in addition. In case any
colony cannot make up the required number of mounted men they shall be allowed to substitute three
footsoldiers for each horseman deficient. Both the cavalry and infantry are to be selected from the
wealthiest citizens, and sent wherever reinforcements are required outside the limits of Italy. If any of them
refuse to comply with this demand, we order that the magistrates and representatives of that colony be
detained, and no audience of the senate shall be granted until they have done what is required of them. In
addition to these requirements a property tax of one tenth per cent. shall be imposed on those colonies to be
paid annually, and the assessment shall be made similarly to the one in force in Rome. The Roman censors
are to supply the censors of the colonies with the necessary schedule of instructions, and the latter must bring
their lists to Rome and verify their accuracy on oath before going out of office."
In pursuance of this resolution of the senate the magistrates and chief councillors of those colonies were
summoned to Rome. When the consuls ordered them to furnish the necessary supplies of men and money
they broke out into loud and angry remonstrances. It was impossible, they said, for so many soldiers to be
raised, they would have the utmost difficulty in getting as many as they were bound to supply under the old
conditions. They entreated that they might be allowed to appear and plead their cause before the senate, and
protested that they had done nothing to justify this ruinous treatment. Even if it meant death to them, no fault
which they might have committed, no angry threats on the part of Rome could make them raise more men
than they possessed. The consuls were inflexible and ordered the representatives to remain in Rome whilst
the magistrates returned home to levy the men. They were told that unless the required number of men was
brought to Rome the senate would grant them no audience. As there was no hope of approaching the senate
and begging for more favourable treatment, they proceeded with the enlistment throughout the twelve
colonies, and it presented no difficulty owing to the increase in the number of men of military age through the
long exemption.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 104
Page No 107
Another matter which had been lost sight of for a similar length of time was brought up by M. Valerius
Laevinus. It was only just and right, he said, that the sums which were contributed by private individuals in
the year when he and M. Claudius were the consuls should at last be repaid. No one ought to be surprised that
he was particularly anxious for the State to meet its obligations honourably, for, apart from the fact that it
specially concerned the consul for that year, it was he himself who advocated these contributions at a time
when the treasury was exhausted, and the plebeians were unable to pay their wartax. The senators were glad
to be reminded of the incident, and the consuls were instructed to submit a resolution to the House. They
made a decree that the loans should be repaid in three instalments, the first, immediately by the consuls then
in office, the second and third by the consuls who should be in office in two and four years' time,
respectively. A subject was afterwards brought up which absorbed all other interests, namely the terrible state
of things at Locri. Up to that time nothing had been heard of it, but since the arrival of the delegates it had
become generally known. Deep resentment was felt at the criminal conduct of Pleminius, but still more at the
partiality or the indifference shown by Scipio. The delegates from Locri, presenting a picture of grief and
misery, approached the consuls, who were on their tribunals in the comitium, and holding out in Greek
fashion olivebranches as tokens of suppliants prostrated themselves on the ground with tears and groans. In
reply to the consuls' enquiry as to who they were, they stated that they were Locrians, and that they had
experienced at the hands of Pleminius and his Roman soldiers such treatment as the Roman people would not
wish even the Carthaginians to undergo. They craved permission to appear before the senate and unfold their
tale of woe.
An audience was granted them, and the senior delegate addressed the senate in the following terms:
"Whatever importance, senators, you attach to our complaints must, I am well aware, depend very largely
upon your knowing accurately the circumstances under which Locri was betrayed to Hannibal, and after the
expulsion of his garrison was again brought under your suzerainty. For if our senate and people were in no
way responsible for the defection, and it can be shown that our return to your obedience was brought about
not only with our full consent, but even by our own efforts and courage, then you will feel all the more
indignation at such shameful outrages having been inflicted by your officer and soldiers upon good and
faithful allies. I think, however, that we ought to put off for another time any explanation of our double
change of sides, for two reasons. One is that the matter ought to be discussed when P. Scipio is present, as he
recaptured Locri and was an eyewitness of all our acts, both good and bad, and another reason is that,
however bad we may be, we ought not to have suffered as we have done. We do not deny, senators, that when
we had the Carthaginian garrison in our citadel we had to submit to many acts of insolence and cruelty at the
hands of Hamilcar and his Numidians and Africans, but what were they compared with what we are going
through today? I pray, senators, that you will not take offence at what I am most reluctantly compelled to say.
The whole world is waiting in feverish expectation to see whether you or the Carthaginians are to be the lords
of the earth. If the choice between Roman and Punic supremacy depended upon the way in which the
Carthaginians have treated us Locrians as compared with what we are suffering today from your soldiers,
there is not one of us who would not prefer their rule to yours. And yet in spite of all this, see what our
feeling towards you has been. When we were suffering comparatively slight injuries from the Carthaginians
we betook ourselves to your commander; now that we are suffering from your troops injuries worse than any
enemy would inflict it is before you and no one else that we lay our complaint. If you, senators, do not show
any regard for our misery, there is nothing left which we can pray for, even to the immortal gods themselves."
Q. Pleminius was sent with a body of troops to recover Locri from the Carthaginians and was left with his
troops in the city. In this officer of yoursthe extremity of misery gives me courage to speak freelythere is
nothing human except his face and appearance, there is no trace of the Roman save in his garb and speech; he
is a wild beast, a monster such as were fabled to haunt the waters which divide us from Sicily, to the
destruction of navigators. If he were content with wreaking his own villainy and lust and rapacity upon your
allies, we might fill up this one gulf, deep as it is, by patient endurance, but as it is, he has been so eager to
spread licentiousness and wickedness indiscriminately that he has made every centurion and every private
soldier into a Pleminius. They all alike rob, plunder, beat, wound, kill, outrage matrons, maidens and boys
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 105
Page No 108
torn from their parent's arms. Each day witnesses a fresh storm, a fresh sack of our city; everywhere, day and
night, it is echoing with the shrieks of women who are being seized and carried off. Any one who knows
what is going on might wonder how we are able to endure it all, or why they have not become weary of their
crimes. I cannot go into details, nor is it worth your while to hear what each of us has suffered; I will give you
a general description. There is not a single house in Locri, I venture to assert, not a single individual who has
escaped illtreatment; there is no form of villainy or lust or rapacity which has not been practiced upon
everyone who was a suitable victim. It is difficult to decide which is the worst misfortune for a city, to be
captured by an enemy in war, or to be crushed by force and violence by a sanguinary tyrant. All the horrors
which attend the capture of a city we have suffered and are suffering to the utmost; all the tortures which
ruthless and cruel tyrants inflict on their downtrodden subjects Pleminius has inflicted on us, our children
and our wives."
"There is one matter about which our religious instincts compel us to make a special complaint, and we
should be glad if you would hear what has happened, and if you so decide, take steps to clear your State from
the taint of sacrilege. We have seen with what pious care you not only worship your own gods, but even
recognise those of other nations. Now there is in our city a shrine sacred to Proserpine, and I believe some
rumours of the sanctity of that temple reached your ears during your war with Pyrrhus. On his return voyage
from Sicily he touched at Locri and added to the atrocities which he had committed against us for our loyalty
to you by plundering the treasury of Proserpine, which up to that day had never been disturbed. He placed the
money on board his fleet, and continued his journey overland. What happened, senators? The very next day
his fleet was shattered by a terrible storm and the ships which were carrying the sacred gold were all cast
ashore on our coast. Taught by this great disaster that there are gods after all, the arrogant monarch gave
orders for all the money to be collected and carried back to Proserpine's treasury. In spite of this nothing ever
prospered with him afterwards, he was driven out of Italy and in a foolhardy attempt to enter Argos by night
he met with an ignoble and dishonourable death. Your commander and the military tribunes had heard of this
incident and of countless others which were related to them not so much to increase the feeling of dread as to
give proofs of the direct and manifest power of the goddess, a power which we and our ancestors had often
experienced. Notwithstanding this, they dared to lay sacrilegious hands on that inviolate treasure and to
attains themselves and their houses and your soldiers with the guilt of their unhallowed plunder. We implore
you therefore, senators, by all you hold sacred, not to employ these men in any military service till you have
expiated their crime, lest their sacrilege should be atoned for, not by their blood alone but also by disaster to
the commonwealth.
Even now the wrath of the goddess is not slow to visit your officers and soldiers. Frequently have they
already engaged in pitched battles; Pleminius leading the one side, the military tribunes the other. They have
fought quite as furiously with one another as they ever fought with the Carthaginians, and in their frenzy
would have given Hannibal an opportunity of recapturing Locri if we had not sent for Scipio. Do not suppose
that whilst the guilt of sacrilege drove the soldiers mad, the goddess did not manifest her wrath by punishing
the leaders. It is just here where she manifested it most clearly. The tribunes were beaten with rods by their
superior officer, afterwards he was caught unawares by them and, in addition to being hacked all over, his
nose and ears were sliced off and he was left for dead. At length, recovering from his wounds, he placed the
tribunes in irons and then, after flogging them and subjecting them to all the tortures that are inflicted on
slaves, he put them to death and after they were dead forbade them to be buried. In this way is the goddess
inflicting retribution upon the despoilers of her temple, nor will she cease to vex them with every kind of
madness until the sacred hoard has once more been deposited in the shrine. Once when our ancestors were
hard pressed in the war with Croto, they decided, as the temple was outside the city walls, to carry the
treasure into the city. A voice was heard at night proceeding from the shrine and uttering a warning: 'Lay no
hand upon it! The goddess will protect her temple.' Deterred by religious fears from moving the treasure, they
wanted to build a wall round the temple. After it had been carried up some distance it suddenly collapsed.
Often in the past has the goddess protected her temple and the seat of her presence, or else as at the present
time she has exacted a heavy atonement from those who have violated it. But our wrongs she cannot avenge,
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 106
Page No 109
nor can any one but you, senators; it is your honour that we invoke and your protection beneath which we
seek shelter. To allow Locri to remain under that commander and those troops is, as far as we are concerned,
the same as handing us over for punishment to all the rage of Hannibal and his Carthaginians. We do not ask
you to accept what we say at once, in the absence of the accused or without hearing his defence. Let him
appear, let him hear the charges against him, and let him rebut them. If there be any single crime that one
man can be guilty of towards another, which that man has failed to commit against us, then we are willing to
go through all our sufferings, if it is in our power to do so, once more, and ready to pronounce him void of all
offence towards gods and men."
At the close of the delegate's speech, Q. Fabius enquired whether they had laid their complaints before
Scipio. They stated in reply that they had sent a deputation to him, but he was fully occupied with his
preparations for war and had either sailed or was going to sail in a very few days for Africa. They had had
proof of the high favour in which Pleminius stood with his commanderinchief, for after investigating the
circumstances which led to the dispute between him and the military tribunes Scipio had thrown the tribunes
into chains and allowed his subordinate to retain his command though he was equally or even more guilty.
They were then ordered to withdraw, and in the discussion which followed both Pleminius and Scipio were
very severely handled by the leaders of the House, especially by Quintus Fabius. He declared that Scipio was
born to destroy all military discipline. It was the same in Spain; more men had been lost there in mutiny than
in battle. His conduct was that of some foreign tyrant, first indulging the licence of the soldiers and then
punishing them. Fabius closed his attack with the following drastic resolution: "I move that Pleminius be
brought to Rome to plead his cause in chains, and if the charges which the Locrians have brought against him
are substantiated, that he be put to death in prison and his property confiscated. With regard to Publius
Scipio, as he has left his province without orders, I move that he be recalled, and that it be referred to the
tribunes of the plebs to bring in a bill before the Assembly to relieve him of his command. As to the Locrians,
I move that they be brought back into the House, and that we assure them in reply to their complaint that the
senate and the people alike disapprove of what has been done, and that we recognise them as good and trusty
allies and friends. And, further, that their wives and children and all that has been taken away from them be
restored, and that all the money abstracted from Proserpine's treasury be collected, and double the amount put
back. The question of expiation must be referred to the pontifical college, who must decide what expiatory
rites are to be observed, what deities are to be propitiated and what victims are to be sacrificed in cases where
sacred treasures have been violated. The soldiers at Locri must be transferred to Sicily and four Latin cohorts
sent to garrison the place." Owing to the heated debate between Scipio's supporters and opponents the votes
could not be collected that day. Not only had he to bear the odium of Pleminius' criminal brutality towards
the Locrians, but the Roman commander was even taunted with his style of dress as being unRoman and
even unsoldierly. It was asserted that he walked about the gymnasium in a Greek mantle and Greek slippers
and spent his time amongst rhetoricians and athletes and that the whole of his staff were enjoying the
attractions of Syracuse and living a life of similar selfindulgence and effeminacy. They had completely lost
sight of Hannibal and the Carthaginians; the entire army was demoralised and out of hand; like the one
formerly at Sucro or the one now at Locri, they were more dreaded by their allies than by the enemy.
Though there was sufficient truth in these charges to give them an air of probability, Q. Metellus carried the
majority with him. Whilst agreeing with the rest of Fabius' speech, he dissented from what he said about
Scipio. Scipio, he said, had only the other day been chosen by his fellowcitizens, young as he was, to
command the expedition which was to recover Spain, and after he had recovered it, was elected consul to
bring the Punic War to a close. All hopes were now centered in him as the man who was destined to
subjugate Africa and rid Italy of Hannibal. How, he asked, could they with any propriety order him to be
peremptorily recalled, like another Q. Pleminius, without being heard in his defence, especially when the
Locrians admitted that the cruelties of which they complained took place at a time when Scipio was not even
on the spot and when nothing could be definitely brought against him, beyond undue leniency or shrinking
from cruelty in sparing his subordinate officers? He moved a resolution that M. Pomponius, the praetor to
whom Sicily had been allotted, should depart for his province in three days' time; that the consuls should
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 107
Page No 110
select at their discretion ten members of the senate who would accompany the praetor, as well as two tribunes
of the plebs and one of the aediles. With these as his assessors he should conduct an investigation, and if the
acts of which the Locrians complained should prove to have been done under the orders or with the consent
of Scipio, they should order him to quit his province. If he had already landed in Africa, the tribunes and the
aedile with two of the ten senators whom the praetor considered fittest for the task should proceed thither, the
tribunes and the aedile to bring Scipio back and the two senators to take command of the army until a fresh
general arrived. If on the other hand M. Pomponius and his ten assessors ascertained that what had been done
was neither by the orders nor with the concurrence of Scipio, he was to retain his command and carry on the
war as he proposed. This resolution proposed by Metellus was adopted by the senate, and the tribunes of the
plebs were asked to arrange which of them should accompany the praetor. The pontifical college was
consulted as to the necessary expiations for the desecration and robbery of Proserpine's temple. The plebeian
tribunes who accompanied the praetor were M. Claudius Marcellus and M. Cincius Alimentus. A plebeian
aedile was assigned to them so that in case Scipio refused to obey the praetor or had already landed in Africa,
the tribunes might, by virtue of their sacrosanct authority, order the aedile to arrest him and bring him back
with them. They decided to go to Locri first and then on to Messana.
As to Pleminius two stories are current. One is to the effect that when he heard of the decision arrived at in
Rome he started to go into exile at Naples, and on his way was met by Q. Metellus, one of the ten senators,
who arrested him and brought him back to Regium. According to the other account Scipio himself sent an
officer with thirty men of highest rank amongst his cavalry and threw Pleminius and the prime movers of the
outbreak into chains. They were all handed over by Scipio's orders or those of the officer to the people of
Regium for safe keeping. The praetor and the rest of the commission, on their arrival at Locri, made the
religious question their first care, in accordance with their instructions. All the sacred money in the
possession of Pleminius and his soldiers was collected together, and together with what they had brought
with them was placed in the temple, and then expiatory sacrifices were offered. After this the praetor
summoned the troops to assembly, and issued an order of the day threatening severe punishment to any
soldier who stayed behind in the city or carried away anything that did not belong to him. He then ordered the
standards to be borne outside the city, and fixed his camp in the open country. The Locrians were given full
liberty to take whatever they recognised as their own property, and make a claim for whatever could not be
found. Above all he insisted upon the immediate restoration of all free persons to their homes, any one who
neglected to restore them would be very severely punished.
The praetor's next business was to convene an assembly of the Locrians, and here he announced that the
senate and people of Rome gave them back their constitution and their laws. Whoever wished to prosecute
Pleminius or any one else was to follow the praetor to Regium. If their government wished to charge Scipio
with either ordering or approving of the crimes against gods and men which had been perpetrated in Locri
they were to send representatives to Messana, where, with the aid of his assessors, he should hold an enquiry.
The Locrians expressed their gratitude to the praetor and the other members of the commission, and to the
senate and people of Rome. They announced their intention of prosecuting Pleminius, but as to Scipio,
"though he had not been much troubled about the injuries inflicted on their city, they would rather have him
their friend than their enemy. They were quite convinced that it was neither by the orders nor with the
approval of P. Scipio that such infamous crimes were committed; his fault was that he either reposed too
much confidence in Pleminius or felt too much distrust in the Locrians. Some men are so constituted that
whilst they would not have crimes committed they lack the resolution to inflict punishment when they have
been committed." The praetor and his council were greatly relieved at not having to call Scipio to account;
Pleminius and thirtytwo others they found guilty and sent them in chains to Rome. The commission then
went to Scipio to find out by personal observation whether there was any truth in the common rumours about
Scipio's style of dress and love of pleasure, in order to be able to report to Rome.
Whilst they were on their way to Syracuse Scipio prepared to justify himself, not by words but by acts. He
gave orders for the whole of the army to muster at Syracuse and the fleet to be prepared for action as though
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 108
Page No 111
he had to engage the Carthaginians that day both by land and sea. When the commission had landed he
received them courteously, and the following day he invited them to watch the maneuvers of his land and sea
forces, the troops performing their evolutions as in battle, whilst the ships in the harbour engaged in a sham
seafight. Then the praetor and the commissioners were taken for a tour of inspection round the arsenals and
magazines and the other preparations for war, and the impression made by the whole and by each separate
detail was such as to convince them that if that general and that army could not conquer Carthage, no one
ever could. They bade him sail for Africa with the blessing of heaven, and fulfil as speedily as possible the
hopes and expectations in which the centuries had unanimously chosen him as their consul. They left in such
joyous spirits that they seemed to be taking back the announcement of a victory, and not simply reporting the
magnificent preparations for war. Pleminius and his fellow criminals were thrown into prison as soon as they
reached Rome. When they were first brought before the people by the tribunes the minds of all were too full
of the sufferings of the Locrians to leave any room for pity. But after they had been brought forward several
times the feeling against them became gradually less embittered, the mutilation which Pleminius had suffered
and the thought of the absent Scipio who had befriended him disposed the populace in his favour. However,
before the trial was over he died in prison. Clodius Licinius in the Third Book of his Roman History says that
Pleminius bribed some men to set fire to various parts of the City during the Games which Scipio Africanus
was celebrating, in fulfilment of a vow, during his second consulship, to give him an opportunity of breaking
out of gaol and making his escape. The plot was discovered, and he was by order of the senate consigned to
the Tullianum. No proceedings took place with regard to Scipio except in the senate, where all the
commissioners and the tribunes spoke in such glowing terms of the general and his fleet and army that the
senate resolved that an expedition should start for Africa as soon as possible. They gave Scipio permission to
select from the armies in Sicily what troops he would like to take with him, and what he would leave in
occupation of the island.
During these occurrences in Rome, the Carthaginians had established lookout stations on all the headlands
and waited anxiously for the news which each successive courier brought; the whole winter was passed in a
state of alarm. They formed an alliance with King Syphax, a step which they considered would materially aid
in protecting Africa against invasion, for it was in reliance upon his cooperation that the Roman general
would attempt a landing Hasdrubal Gisgo had, as we have already mentioned, formed ties of hospitality with
the king when on his departure from Spain he met Scipio at his court. There was some talk of a closer
connection through the king's marriage with Hasdrubal's daughter, and with a view to realising this project
and fixing a day for the nuptialsfor the girl was of a marriageable ageHasdrubal paid Syphax a visit. When
he saw that the prince was passionately desirous of the matchthe Numidians are of all barbarians the most
ardent lovershe sent for the maiden from Carthage and hastened on the wedding. The gratification felt at the
match was heightened by the action of the king in strengthening his domestic tie with Carthage by a political
alliance. A treaty was drawn up and ratified on oath between Carthage and the king, in which the contracting
parties bound themselves to have the same friends and the same enemies. Hasdrubal, however, had not
forgotten the treaty which Scipio had formed with Syphax, nor the capricious and fickle character of the
barbarians with whom he had to deal, and his great feat was that if once Scipio landed in Africa this marriage
would prove a very slight restraint upon the king. So whilst the king was in the first transports of passion and
obedient to the persuasive endearments of his bride, he seized the opportunity of inducing Syphax to send
envoys to Scipio advising Scipio not to sail to Africa on the faith of his former promises, as he was now
connected with a Carthaginian family through his marriage with Hasdrubal's daughter; Scipio would
remember meeting her father at his court. They were to inform Scipio that he had also made a formal alliance
with Carthage, and it was his wish that the Romans should conduct their operations against Carthage at a
distance from Africa as they had hitherto done. Otherwise he might be involved in the dispute and compelled
to support one side and abandon his alliance with the other. If Scipio refused to keep clear of Africa, and led
his army against Carthage, Syphax would feel himself under the necessity of fighting in defence of the land
of his birth, and in defence of his wife's native city and her father and her home.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 109
Page No 112
Furnished with these instructions the king's envoys repaired to Syracuse to interview Scipio. He recognised
that he was deprived of the valuable support which he had hoped for in his African campaign, but he decided
to send the envoys back at once before their mission became generally known. He gave them a letter for the
king in which he reminded him of the personal ties between them, and the alliance he had formed with Rome,
and solemnly warned him against breaking those ties or violating the solemn engagements he had undertaken,
and so offending the gods who had witnessed and would avenge them. The visit of the Numidians could not,
however, be kept secret, for they strolled about the city and were seen at headquarters, and there was a danger
of the real object of their visit becoming all the more widely known through the efforts made to conceal it,
and of the army being discouraged at the prospect of having to fight the king and the Carthaginians at the
same time. To prevent this Scipio determined to keep them from the truth by preoccupying their minds with
falsehood. The troops were summoned to assembly and Scipio told them that there must be no further delay.
The friendly princes were urging him to start for Africa as soon as possible; Masinissa himself had already
gone to Laelius to complain of the way in which time was being wasted, and now Syphax had sent envoys to
express his surprise at the delay and to demand that the army should be sent to Africa or, if there was a
change of plan, that he should be informed of it in order that he might take measures to safeguard himself and
his kingdom. As therefore all the preparations were completed and circumstances did not admit of any further
delay, it was his intention to order the fleet to Lilybaeum, to muster the whole of his infantry and cavalry
there and on the very first day which promised a favourable voyage set sail, with the blessing of heaven, for
Africa. He then wrote to M. Pomponius requesting him, if he thought it advisable, to come to Lilybaeum that
they might consult together as to what legions should be selected and what ought to be the total strength of
the invading force. Orders were also sent all round the coast for every transport vessel to be requisitioned and
brought to Lilybaeum. When the whole of the military and naval forces in Sicily were assembled there, the
town could not afford accommodation for all the men, nor could the harbour hold all the ships, and such
enthusiasm prevailed in all ranks that it seemed as though instead of marching to war they were to reap the
fruits of a victory already won. This was particularly the case with the survivors of Cannae, who felt quite
certain that under no other leader would they be able to do such service for the commonwealth as would put
an end to their ignominious condition. Scipio was far from despising these men, he was quite aware that the
defeat at Cannae was not brought about by any cowardice on their part, and he knew, too, that there were no
soldiers in the Roman army who had had such a long experience in every kind of fighting, and in the conduct
of sieges. They formed the fifth and sixth legions. After announcing to them that he would take them with
him to Africa, he inspected them man by man, and those whom he did not consider suitable he left behind,
replacing them from the men whom he had brought from Italy. In this way he brought up the strength of each
legion to 6200 men and 300 cavalry. He selected the Latin contingent also, both horse and foot, out of the
army of Cannae.
As to the number of troops put on board there is considerable divergence among the authorities. I find that
some state it to have amounted to 10,000 infantry and 2200 cavalry; others give 16,000 infantry and 1600
cavalry; others again double this estimate and put the total of infantry and cavalry at 32,000 men. Some
writers give no definite number, and in a matter so uncertain I prefer to include myself amongst them.
Coelius declines, it is true, to give any definite number, but he exaggerates to such an extent as to give the
impression of a countless multitude; the very birds, he says, fell to the ground stunned by the shouting of the
soldiers, and such a mighty host embarked that it seemed as though there was not a single man left in either
Italy or Sicily. To avoid confusion Scipio personally superintended the embarkation. C. Laelius who was in
command of the fleet had previously sent all the seamen to their posts and kept them there while the soldiers
went on board. The praetor, M. Pomponius, was responsible for the shipping of the stores; fortyfive days'
provisions, including fifteen days' supply of cooked food, were put on board. When all were now on board,
boats were sent round to take off the pilots and captains and two men from each ship who were to assemble in
the forum and receive their orders. When all were present, his first enquiry was as to the supply of water for
the men and horses, whether they had put on board sufficient to last as long as the corn. They assured him
that there was water in the ships sufficient to last for fortyfive days. He then impressed upon the soldiers the
necessity of keeping quiet and maintaining discipline and not interfering with the sailors in the discharge of
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 110
Page No 113
their duties. He further informed them that he and Lucius Scipio would command the right division of twenty
ships of war, whilst C. Laelius, prefect of the fleet, in conjunction with M. Porcius Cato, who was quaestor at
the time, would be in charge of the left line containing the same number, and would protect the transports.
The warships would show single lights at night, the transports would have two, while the commander's ship
would be distinguished by three lights. He gave the pilots instructions to make for Emporia. This was an
extremely fertile district, and supplies of all kinds were to be found there in abundance. The natives, as
usually happens in a fruitful country, were unwarlike, and would probably be overpowered before assistance
could reach them from Carthage. After issuing these orders he dismissed them to their ships, and on the
morrow at the given signal they were, with the blessing of heaven, to set sail.
Many Roman fleets had put out from Sicily and from that very port, but not even during the First Punic
Warin the present war the majority were simply raiding expeditionshad any afforded a more striking
picture at its departure. And yet, if you only take into account the number of vessels, it must be remembered
that two consuls with their respective armies had left that port on a previous occasion and the warships in
their fleets were almost as numerous as the transports with which Scipio was now making his passage, for in
addition to the forty ships of war he was carrying his army in four hundred transports. Several causes
conspired to invest the occasion with unique interest. The Romans regarded the present war as a more serious
one than the former because it was going on in Italy, and had involved the destruction of so many armies with
their generals. Scipio, again, had become the most popular general of his time for his gallant deeds of arms,
and his unvarying good fortune had immensely raised his reputation as a soldier. His design of invading
Africa had never before been attempted by any commander, and it was generally believed that he would
succeed in drawing Hannibal away from Italy and finish the war on African soil. A vast crowd of spectators
had gathered in the harbour; besides the population of Lilybaeum, all the deputations from the different cities
in the island who had come to pay their respects to Scipio as well as those who had accompanied M.
Pomponius, the governor of the province, were present. The legions which were to remain in Sicily also
marched down to bid their comrades Godspeed, and the throng which crowded the harbour was as grand a
spectacle to those afloat as the fleet itself was to those ashore.
When the moment for departure came, Scipio ordered the herald to proclaim silence throughout the fleet and
put up the following prayer: "Ye gods and goddesses of sea and land, I pray and beseech you to vouchsafe a
favourable issue to all that has been done or is being done now or will be done hereafter under my command.
May all turn out happily for the burghers and plebs of Rome, for our allies of the Latin name, for all who
have the cause of Rome at heart, and for all who are marching beneath my standard, under my auspices and
command, by land or sea or stream. Grant us your gracious help in all our doings, crown our efforts with
success. Bring these my soldiers and myself safe home again, victorious over our conquered foes, adorned
with their spoils, loaded with booty and exulting in triumph. Enable us to avenge ourselves on our enemies
and grant to the people of Rome and to me the power to inflict exemplary chastisement on the city of
Carthage, and to retaliate upon her all the injury that her people have sought to do to us." As he finished he
threw the raw entrails of the victim into the sea with the accustomed ritual. Then he ordered the trumpeter to
sound the signal for departure, and as the wind which was favourable to them freshened they were quickly
carried out of sight. In the afternoon they were enveloped in so thick a fog that they had difficulty in keeping
their ships from fouling one another, and as they got out to sea the wind dropped. During the night a similar
fog prevailed, which dispersed after sunrise, and at the same the wind freshened. At last they descried land,
and a few minutes later the pilot informed Scipio that they were not more than five miles from the coast of
Africa, and that the headland of Mercurius was plainly visible. If he would give orders for him to steer for it,
the man assured him, the whole of the fleet would soon be in port. When he caught sight of land Scipio
offered a prayer that this first view of Africa might bring good to himself and to the republic. He then gave
orders for the fleet to make for an anchorage further south. They went before the wind which was still in the
same quarter, but a fog which came up about the same time as on the day before blotted out the view of the
land and made the wind fall. As night came on everything became obscure, and to avoid all risk of the ships
coming into collision or being driven ashore it was decided to cast anchor. When it grew light, the wind again
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 111
Page No 114
freshened from the same quarter, and the dispersal of the fog revealed the entire coastline of Africa. Scipio
enquired the name of the nearest headland, and on learning that was called Pulchrum ("Cape Beautiful") he
remarked, "I accept the omen, steer for it." The fleet brought up there and the whole of the force was landed.
This description of the voyage as favourable and unaccompanied by any confusion or alarms rests upon the
statements of numerous Greek and Latin authorities. According to Coelius, though the fleet was not actually
submerged by the waves, it was exposed to every possible danger from sea and sky, and was at last driven
from the African coast to the island of Aegimurus, and from here with great difficulty succeeded in getting on
the right course. He adds that as the ships were leaking badly and all but sinking, the soldiers took to the
boats without orders just as though they were shipwrecked and escaped to land without arms and in the
utmost disorder.
When the disembarkation was completed, the Romans measured out a site for their camp on some rising
ground close by. The sight of a hostile fleet, followed by the bustle and excitement of the landing, created
consternation and alarm, not only in the fields and farms on the coast, but in the cities as well. Not only were
the roads filled everywhere by crowds of men and troops of women and children, but the peasantry were
driving their live stock inland, so that you would say that Africa was being suddenly depopulated. The terror
which these fugitives created in the cities was greater even than what they themselves felt, especially in
Carthage, where the confusion was almost as great as if it had been actually captured. Since the days of the
consuls M. Atilius Regulus and L. Manlius, almost fifty years ago, they had never seen a Roman army other
than those employed on raiding expeditions, who picked up what they could in the fields and always got back
to their ships before the countrymen could assemble together to meet them. This made the excitement and
alarm in the city all the greater. And no wonder, for there was neither an effective army nor a general whom
they could oppose to Scipio. Hasdrubal, the son of Gisgo, was by far the most prominent man in the State,
distinguished alike by his birth, his military reputation and his wealth, and now by his connection with
royalty. But the Carthaginians had not forgotten that he had been defeated and routed in several battles by this
very Scipio, and that as a general he was no more a match for him than the irregular levies which made up his
force were a match for the army of Rome. There was a general call to arms, as though they were anticipating
an immediate assault; the gates were hastily closed, troops stationed on the walls, outposts and sentinels
posted, and the night was passed under arms. The next day, a body of cavalry, 1000 strong, who had been
sent down to the sea to reconnoitre and harass the Romans during the disembarkation, came upon the Roman
outposts. Scipio, meanwhile, after sending the fleet to Utica, had advanced a short distance from the shore
and seized the nearest heights, where he stationed some of his cavalry as outposts; the rest he sent to plunder
the fields.
In the skirmish which ensued, the Romans killed some of the enemy in the actual fighting, but the greater
number were slain in the pursuit, amongst them the young Hanno, who was in command. Scipio ravaged the
surrounding fields and captured a fairly opulent city in the immediate neighbourhood. In addition to the
plunder which was at once put on board the transports and sent to Sicily, he made prisoners of some 8000
men, freemen and slaves. What cheered the whole army most of all at the outset of their campaign was the
arrival of Masinissa, who, according to some writers, was accompanied by a mounted force of 200 men; most
authorities, however, assert that it numbered 2000. As this monarch was by far the greatest of his
contemporaries and rendered most important service to Rome, it may be worth while to digress from the
order of our narrative and give a brief account of the various fortunes he experienced in the loss and
subsequent recovery of the throne of his ancestors. Whilst he was fighting for the Carthaginians in Spain, his
father Gala died. In accordance with the Numidian custom the crown passed to the late king's brother
Oezalces, a man advanced in years. He died not long afterwards and the elder of his two sons, Capussathe
other was quite a boysucceeded to the throne. But as he wore the crown by right of descent rather than
through any influence or authority he possessed with his subjects, a certain Mazaetullus prepared to dispute
his claim. This man was also of royal blood and belonged to a family which had always been foes to the
reigning house, and had kept up a constant struggle with varying fortunes against the occupants of the throne.
He succeeded in rousing his countrymen, over whom, owing to the king's unpopularity, he had considerable
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 112
Page No 115
influence, and taking the field against him, compelled him to fight for his crown. Capussa fell in the action,
together with many of his principal supporters; the whole of the Maesulian tribe submitted to Mazaetullus.
He would not, however, accept the title of king, this he bestowed on the boy Lacumazes, the sole survivor of
the royal house. and contented himself with the modest title of Protector. With a view to an alliance with
Carthage he married a Carthaginian lady of noble birth, a niece of Hannibal's, and widow of Oezalces. He
also sent envoys to Syphax and renewed the old ties of hospitality with him, thus securing on all sides support
for the coming struggle with Masinissa.
On hearing of his uncle's death, followed by that of his cousin, Masinissa left Spain for Mauretania. Baga was
king at the time, and Masinissa, by his earnest and humble entreaties, obtained from him a force of 4000
Moors to serve as an escort as he could not induce him to supply enough for warlike operations. With this
escort he reached the frontiers of Numidia, having sent messengers in advance to his father's friends and his
own. Here about 500 Numidians joined him, and, as had been arranged, his escort of Moors returned to their
king. His adherents were fewer than he expected, too few, in fact, with which to venture on so great an
enterprise. Thinking, however, that by active personal effort he might collect a force which would enable him
to achieve something, he advanced to Thapsus, where he met Lacumazes, who was on his way to Syphax.
The king's escort retreated hurriedly into the town, and Masinissa captured the place at the first assault. Some
of the royal troops surrendered, others who offered resistance were killed, but the great majority escaped with
their boyking in the confusion and continued their journey to Syphax. The news of this initial success, slight
though it was, brought the Numidians over to Masinissa, and from the fields and hamlets on all sides the old
soldiers of Gala flocked to his standard and urged the young leader to win back his ancestral throne.
Mazaetullus had considerably the advantage in point of numbers; he had the army with which he had defeated
Capussa as well as some of the troops who had gone over to him after the king's death, and Lacumazes had
brought very large reinforcements from Syphax. His total force amounted to 15,000 infantry and 10,000
cavalry, but, though so inferior in both arms, Masinissa engaged him. The courage of the veterans and the
skill of their commander, trained as he had been in the wars in Spain, carried the day; the king and the
Protector with a mere handful of Masaesulians escaped into Carthaginian territory. Thus Masinissa won back
the throne of his ancestors. As he saw, however, that a much more serious contest awaited him with Syphax,
he thought it best to effect a reconciliation with his cousin, and sent to the boy to assure him that if he would
place himself in Masinissa's hands he would experience the same honourable treatment that Oezalces
received from Gala. He also pledged his word to Mazaetullus that he should not suffer for what he had done,
and, more than that, that all his property should be restored to him. Both Lacumazes and Mazaetullus
preferred a moderate share of fortune at home to a life of exile, and in spite of all the efforts of the
Carthaginians went over to Masinissa.
Hasdrubal happened to be on a visit to Syphax at the time. The Numidian did not consider it a matter of much
importance to him whether the Maesulian throne was occupied by Lacumazes or Masinissa, but Hasdrubal
warned him that he was making a very great mistake if he supposed that Masinissa would be content with the
same frontiers as his father Gala. "That man," he said, "possessed much more ability and much more force of
character than any one of that nation had hitherto shown. In Spain he had often exhibited to friends and foes
alike proofs of a courage rare amongst men. Unless Syphax and the Carthaginians stifled that rising flame,
they would soon be involved in a conflagration which nothing could check. As yet his power was weak and
insecure, he was nursing a realm whose wounds had not yet closed." By continually urging these
considerations, Hasdrubal persuaded him to move his army up to the frontiers of Maesulia and fix his camp
on territory which he claimed as beyond question forming part of his dominions, a claim which Gala had
contested not only by argument, but by force of arms. He advised him in case any one offered oppositionand
he only wished they wouldto be prepared to fight; if they for fear of him retired he must advance into the
heart of the kingdom. The Maesulii would either submit to him without a struggle or they would find
themselves hopelessly outmatched in arms. Encouraged by these representations Syphax commenced war
with Masinissa, and in the very first battle defeated and routed the Maesulians. Masinissa with a few
horsemen escaped from the field and fled to a mountain range called by the natives Bellum. Several
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 113
Page No 116
households with their tentwagons and cattletheir sole wealthfollowed the king; the bulk of the population
submitted to Syphax. The mountain district which the fugitives had taken possession of was grassy and well
watered, and as it afforded excellent pasturage for cattle it provided ample sustenance for men who lived on
flesh and milk. From these heights they harried the whole country round, at first in stealthy nocturnal
incursions, and afterwards in open brigandage. They ravaged the Carthaginian territory mainly, because it
offered more plunder and depredation was a safer work there than amongst the Numidians. At last they
reached such a pitch of audacity that they carried their plunder down to the sea and sold it to traders who
brought their ships up for the purpose. More Carthaginians fell or were made prisoners in these forays than
often happens in regular warfare. The authorities at Carthage complained loudly of all this to Syphax and
pressed him to follow up these remnants of the war. Angry as he was, however, he hardly thought it part of
his duties as a king to hunt down a robber at large on the mountains.
Boncar, one of the king's officers, a keen and energetic soldier, was selected for the task. He was supplied
with 4000 infantry and 200 horsemen and he had a good prospect of gaining rewards if he brought back
Masinissa's head, orwhat would afford measureless gratificationcaptured him alive. Making a surprise
attack on the plunderers when they were suspecting no danger, he cut off an enormous number of men and
cattle from their armed escort and drove Masinissa himself with a few followers up to the summit of the
mountain. He now regarded serious hostilities as at an end, and after despatching his capture of men and
cattle to the king, sent back also the bulk of his troops whom he considered unnecessary for what remained of
the fighting, retaining only 500 infantry and 200 mounted men. With these he hastened in pursuit of
Masinissa who had left the heights and, catching him in a narrow valley, he blocked both entrances and
inflicted a very severe loss on the Maesulii. Masinissa with not more than fifty troopers got away through
steep mountain tracks unknown to his pursuers. Boncar, however, kept on his track and overtook him in the
open country near Clupea where he surrounded him so completely that the whole party were killed with the
exception of four who with Masinissa, himself wounded, slipped out of his hands during the fray. Their flight
was observed and the cavalry were sent in pursuit. They spread over the plain, some making a short cut to
head off the five fugitives, whose flight brought them to a large river. Dreading the enemy more than the
river, they spurred their horses without a moment's hesitation into the water, and the rapid current carried
them down stream. Two were drowned before their pursuers' eyes, and it was believed that Masinissa had
perished. He, however, with the two survivors, landed amongst the bush on the other side. This was the end
of Boncar's pursuit, as he would not venture into the river and did not believe that there was any one now left
for him to follow. He returned to the king with the baseless story of Masinissa's death, and messengers were
sent to carry the good news to Carthage. The report soon spread throughout Africa, and affected men's minds
in very different ways. Masinissa was resting in a secret cave and treating his wound with herbs, and for some
days kept himself alive on what his two troopers brought in from their forays. As soon as his wound was
sufficiently healed to allow him to bear the movements of the horse he started with extraordinary boldness on
a fresh attempt to recover his kingdom. During his journey he did not collect more than forty horsemen, but
when he reached the Maesulii and made his identity known, his appearance created intense excitement. His
former popularity and the unhopedfor delight of seeing him safe and sound, after they had believed him
dead, had such an effect that in a few days 6000 infantry and 4000 cavalry had gathered round his standard.
He was now in possession of his kingdom, and began to devastate the tribes who were friendly to Carthage,
and the territory of the Maesulii, which formed part of the dominions of Syphax. Having thus provoked
Syphax into hostilities, Masinissa took up a position on some mountain heights between Cirto and Hippo, a
situation which was every way advantageous.
Syphax looked upon the struggle as too serious a one to be entrusted to his lieutenants. He placed one
division of his army under his son Vermina with instructions to march round the back of the mountain and
attack the enemy in the rear while he himself occupied his attention in front. Vermina started in the night as
he was to fall on the enemy unawares; Syphax broke camp and marched out in broad daylight with the
obvious intention of giving regular battle. When sufficient time had elapsed for Vermina to reach his
objective, Syphax led his men over a part of the mountain which afforded a gentle slope and made straight for
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 114
Page No 117
the enemy, trusting to his superiority in numbers and the success of the attack in the rear. Masinissa prepared
to meet the attack with confidence owing to his vastly superior position. The battle was fiercely and for a
long time evenly contested; Masinissa had the advantage of the ground and finer soldiers, Syphax, that of
great superiority in numbers. His masses of men, which had been formed into two divisions, one pressing the
enemy in front, the other surrounding his rear, gave Syphax a decisive victory. Flight was impossible as they
were hemmed in on both sides, and almost the whole force of infantry and cavalry were killed or made
prisoners. Some two hundred horsemen had gathered as a bodyguard round Masinissa, and he divided them
into three troops with orders to cut their way through at different points and after they had got clear away to
rejoin him at a spot he named. He himself charged through the enemy and escaped in the direction he
intended, but two of the troops found escape impossible, one surrendered, the other after an obstinate
resistance was buried beneath the enemy's missiles. Masinissa found Vermina almost at his heels, but by
continually doubling first to one side and then to the other he eluded his pursuit until at last he forced him to
abandon the exhausting and hopeless chase. Accompanied by sixty troopers he reached the Lesser Syrtis.
Here, in the proud consciousness of his many heroic efforts to recover his father's throne, he passed his time
between the Carthaginian Emporia and the tribe of the Garamantes until the appearance of Scipio and the
Roman fleet in Africa. This leads me to believe that when Masinissa came to Scipio it was with a small rather
than with a large body of troops; the former would be much more suitable to the fortunes of an exile, the
latter to those of a reigning prince.
After the loss of their cavalry corps and its commander, the Carthaginians raised a fresh force which they
placed under Hamilcar's son Hanno. They had sent repeated messages to both Hasdrubal and Syphax and at
last sent a special embassy to each of them, appealing to Hasdrubal to succour his native city which was all
but invested, and imploring Syphax to come to the aid of Carthage and indeed of the whole of Africa. Scipio
at the time was encamped about a mile from Utica, having moved up from the coast where for a few days he
had occupied an intrenched position close to his fleet. The mounted troops which had been supplied to Hanno
were by no means strong enough to harass the enemy or even to protect the country from his depredations,
and his first and most pressing task was to increase its strength. Though he did not reject recruits from other
tribes, his levy consisted mainly of Numidians, by far the finest cavalry in Africa. When he had brought his
corps up to about 4000 men, he took possession of a town called Salaeca, about fifteen miles from the Roman
camp. This was reported to Scipio, and he exclaimed, "What? Cavalry in houses in the summer! Let there be
more of them as long as they have such a leader!" Realising that the less energy the enemy showed, the less
hesitation ought he himself to show, he instructed Masinissa and his cavalry to ride up to the enemy's quarters
and draw them into action: when their whole force was engaged and he was being outnumbered he was to
retire slowly, and when the moment arrived Scipio would come to his support. The Roman general waited
until Masinissa had had sufficient time to draw the enemy, and then followed with his cavalry, his approach
being concealed by some low hills which fortunately flanked his route.
Masinissa, in accordance with his instructions, rode right up to the gates and, when the enemy appeared,
retired as though afraid to meet him; this simulated fear made the enemy all the more confident, until he was
tempted into a rash pursuit. The Carthaginians had not yet all emerged from the city, and their general had
more than enough to do in forcing some who were heavy with wine and sleep to seize their weapons and
bridle their horses and preventing others from rushing out of the gates in scattered disorder, with no attempt
at formation and even without their standards. The first who incautiously galloped out fell into Masinissa's
hands, but they soon poured out in a compact body and in greater numbers, and the fighting became more
equal. At last, when the whole of the Carthaginian cavalry were in the field, Masinissa could not longer bear
the weight of their attack. His men did not, however, take to flight but retired slowly before the enemy's
charges until their commander had brought them as far as the rising ground which concealed the Roman
cavalry. Then these latter charged from behind the hill, horses and men alike fresh, and threw themselves, in
front and flank and rear, upon Hanno and his Africans, who were tired out with the fight and the pursuit.
Masinissa at the same time wheeled round and recommenced fighting. About 1000 who were in the front
ranks, unable to effect a retreat, were surrounded and killed, amongst them Hanno himself; the rest, appalled
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 115
Page No 118
at their leader's death, fled precipitately, and were pursued by the victors for more than thirty miles. As many
as 2000 were either killed or made prisoners, and it is pretty certain that amongst them there were not less
than 200 Carthaginians, including some of their wealthiest and noblest families
On the very day on which this action was fought, it happened that the ships which had carried the plunder to
Sicily returned with supplies, as though they had divined that they would have to carry back a second cargo
of spoils of war. Not all the authorities state that two Carthaginian generals of the same name were killed in
two separate actions, they were afraid, I think, of being misled into repeating the same incident twice over.
Coelius at all events, and Valerius tell us that Hanno was taken prisoner. Scipio distributed amongst the
cavalry and their officers rewards proportioned to the service each had rendered; Masinissa was distinguished
above the rest by some splendid presents. After placing a strong garrison in Salaeca he continued his advance
with the rest of his army, and not only stripped the fields along his line of march, but captured various towns
and villages as well, spreading terror far and wide. After a week's marching he returned to camp with a long
train of men and cattle and all sorts of booty, and the ships were sent off for the second time heavily loaded
with the spoils of war. He now abandoned his plundering expeditions and devoted all his strength to an attack
on Utica, intending if he took it to make that the base of his future operations. His naval contingent was
employed against the side of the city which faced the sea, while his land army operated from some rising
ground which commanded the walls. Some artillery and siege engines he had brought with him, and some
had been sent with the supplies from Sicily, new ones were also being constructed in an arsenal where a large
number of artisans trained in this work were assembled. Under the pressure of such a vigorous investment all
the hopes of the people of Utica rested on Carthage, and all the hopes of the Carthaginians rested on
Hasdrubal and on whatever assistance he could obtain from Syphax. In their anxiety for relief everything
seemed to be moving too slowly. Hasdrubal had been doing his utmost to obtain troops, and had actually
assembled a force of 30,000 infantry and 3000 cavalry, but he did not venture to move nearer the enemy till
Syphax joined him. He came with 50,000 infantry and 10,000 cavalry, and with their united forces they at
once advanced from Carthage and took up a position not far from Utica and the Roman lines. Their approach
led to one important result at least: after prosecuting the siege of Utica with all the resources at his command
Scipio abandoned any further attempts on the place, and as winter was coming on he constructed an
intrenched camp on a tongue of land which projected into the sea and was connected by a narrow isthmus
with the mainland. He enclosed the military and naval camps within the same lines. The legions were
stationed in the middle of the headland; the ships, which had been beached, and their crews occupied the
northern side; the low ground on the south side was allotted to the cavalry. Such were the incidents in the
African campaign down to the end of the autumn.
In addition to the corn which had been accumulated from the plunder of all the country round, and the
supplies which had been conveyed from Sicily and Italy, a large quantity was sent by the propraetor Cnaeus
Octavius which he had obtained from Ti. Claudius, the governor of Sardinia. The existing granaries being all
full, new ones were built. The army was in need of clothing and Octavius received instructions to confer with
the governor as to whether any could be made and despatched from that island. The matter was promptly
attended to and in a short time 1200 togas and 12,000 tunics were sent off. During this summer the consul P.
Sempronius, who was commanding in Bruttium, was marching near Croto when he fell in with Hannibal. An
irregular battle ensued, as both armies were in column of march and did not deploy into line. The Romans
were repulsed, and though it was more of a melee than a battle no fewer than 1200 of the consul's army were
killed. They retreated in confusion to their camp, but the enemy did not venture to attack it. The consul,
however, marched away in the silence of the night after despatching a message to the proconsul P. Licinius to
bring up his legions. With their united forces the two commanders marched back to meet Hannibal. There
was no hesitation on either side, the consul's confidence was restored by the doubling of his strength, and the
enemy's courage was raised by his recent victory. P. Sempronius stationed his own legions in front, those of
P. Licinius were placed in reserve. At the commencement of the battle the consul vowed a temple to Fortuna
Primigenia in case he routed the enemy, and his prayer was granted. The Carthaginians were routed and put
to flight, above 4000 were killed, nearly 300 were made prisoners and 40 horses and 11 standards were
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 116
Page No 119
captured. Daunted by his failure, Hannibal withdrew to Croto. Etruria, at the other end of Italy, was almost
wholly in sympathy with Mago, hoping to effect a revolution with his help. The consul M. Cornelius kept his
hold on the province more by the terror created by his judicial proceedings than by force of arms. He
conducted the investigations which the senate had commissioned him to make without any respect of persons,
and many Etrurian nobles who had personally interviewed Mago or been in correspondence with him about
the defection of their cantons were brought up and condemned to death; others knowing themselves to be
equally guilty went into exile and were sentenced in their absence. As their persons were beyond arrest, their
property only could be confiscated as an earnest of their future punishment.
While the consuls were thus occupied in their widely separated spheres of action, the censors, M. Livius and
C. Claudius, were busy in Rome. They revised the roll of senators, and Q. Fabius Maximus was again chosen
as Leader of the House. Seven names were struck off the roll, but none of them had ever filled a curule chair.
The censors insisted upon the exact fulfilment of the contracts which had been made for the repair of public
buildings, and they made additional contracts for the construction of a road from the Forum Boarium to the
temple of Venus with public seats on each side of it and also for the building of a temple to Mater Magna on
the Palatine. They also imposed a new tax in the shape of a duty on salt. In Rome and throughout Italy it had
been sold at a sextans, and the contractors were bound to sell it at the old price in Rome but allowed to charge
a higher price in the country towns and markets. It was commonly believed that one of the censors had
devised this tax to spite the people because he had once been unjustly condemned by them, and it was said
that the rise in the price of salt pressed most heavily on those tribes who had been instrumental in procuring
his condemnation. It was owing to this that Livius got the name of Salinator. The lustrum was closed later
than usual because the censors had sent commissioners into the provinces to ascertain the number of Roman
citizens who were serving in the armies. Including these, the total number as shown in the census amounted
to 214,000. The lustrum was closed by C. Claudius Nero. This year, for the first time, a return was furnished
of the population of the twelve colonies, the censors of the colonies themselves furnishing the lists so that the
military strength and financial position of each might be permanently recorded in the archives of the State.
Then followed the revision of the equites. It so happened that both the censors had government horses. When
they came to the Pollian tribe, which contained the name of M. Livius, the usher hesitated about citing the
censor himself. "Cite M. Livius," exclaimed Nero and then, whether it was that the old enmity still survived
or that he was pluming himself upon an illtimed strictness, he turned to Livius and ordered him to sell his
horse as he had been condemned by the verdict of the people. When they were going through the Arniensian
tribe and came to his colleague's name, Livius ordered C. Claudius Nero to sell his horse for two reasons, first
because he had borne false witness against him, and secondly because he had not been sincere in his
reconciliation with him. Thus at the close of their censorship a dispute arose equally discreditable to both,
each besmirching the other's good name at the cost of his own.
After C. C. Nero had made the usual affidavit that he had acted in accordance with the laws, he went up to the
treasury and amongst the names of those whom he left disfranchised he placed that of his colleague. He was
followed by M. Livius who took still more dramatic action. With the exception of the Maecian tribe, who had
neither condemned him nor afterwards, in spite of his condemnation, made him either consul or censor,
Livius reduced to the status of aerarii the whole of the remaining tribes of the Roman people on the ground
that they had condemned an innocent man, and afterwards had made him consul and censor. He argued that
they must admit that either they were acting wrongfully as judges in the first instance, or afterwards as
electors. Amongst the thirtyfour tribes, C. C. Nero, he said, would be disfranchised, and if there were any
precedent for disfranchising the same man twice he would have inserted his name specially. This rivalry
between the censors in affixing a stigma on each other was deplorable, but the sharp lesson administered to
the people for their inconstancy was just what a censor ought to have given and befitted the seriousness of the
times. As the censors had fallen into disfavour one of the tribunes of the plebs, Cnaeus Baebius, thought it a
good opportunity for advancing himself at their expense, and appointed a day for their impeachment. The
project was defeated by the unanimous vote of the senate, who were determined that the censorship should
not for the future be at the mercy of popular caprice.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 29. Scipio in Africa 117
Page No 120
During the summer Clampetia in Bruttium was taken by storm by the consul; Consentia, Pandosia and some
other unimportant places surrendered voluntarily. As the time for the elections was approaching it was
thought best to summon Cornelius from Etruria as there were no active hostilities there, and he conducted the
elections. The new consuls were Cnaeus Servilius Caepio and Caius Servilius Geminus. At the election of
praetors which followed, those returned were P. Cornelius Lentulus, P. Quintilius Varus, P. Aelius Paetus and
P. Villius Tappulus; the last two were plebeian aediles at the time. When the elections were over the consul
returned to Etruria. Some deaths took place among the priests this year, and appointments were made to fill
the vacancies. Tiberius Veturius Philo was appointed Flamen of Mars in place of M. Aemilius Regillus who
died in the preceding year. M. Pomponius Matho, who had been both augur and keeper of the Sacred Books,
was succeeded by M. Aurelius Cotta in the latter office and as augur by Tiberius Sempronius Gracchus, a
very young man, a very unusual thing at that time in appointments to the priesthood. Golden chariots were
placed in the Capitol by the curule aediles, C. Livius and M. Servilius Geminus. The Roman Games were
celebrated for two days by the aediles P. Aelius and P. Villius. There was also a feast in honour of Jupiter on
the occasion of the Games.
End of Book 29
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War
It was now the sixteenth year of the Punic War. The new consuls, Cnaeus Servilius and Caius Servilius, laid
before the senate the questions of the general policy of the republic, the conduct of the war and the
assignment of the provinces. It was resolved that the consuls should come to an arrangement, or failing that
decide by ballot, which of them should oppose Hannibal in Bruttium whilst the other should have Etruria and
the Ligurians as his province. The one to whom Bruttium fell was to take over the army from P. Sempronius,
and Sempronius, whose command was extended for a year as proconsul, was to relieve P. Licinius; the latter
was to return to Rome. Licinius was not only a fine soldier but he was in every respect one of the most
accomplished citizens of the time; he combined in himself all the advantages which nature or fortune could
bestow; he was an exceptionally handsome man and possessed remarkable physical strength; he was
considered a most eloquent speaker, whether he was pleading a cause or defending or attacking a measure in
the senate or before the Assembly, and he was thoroughly conversant with pontifical law. And his recent
consulship had established his reputation as a military leader. Arrangements similar to those in Bruttium were
also made in Etruria and Liguria; M. Cornelius was to hand over his army to the new consul and hold the
province of Gaul with the legions which L. Scribonius had commanded the previous year. Then the consuls
balloted for their provinces; Bruttium fell to Caepio, Etruria to Servilius Geminus. The balloting for the
praetors' provinces followed; Aelius Paetus obtained the City jurisdiction, P. Lentulus drew Sardinia, P.
Villius Sicily, and Quintilius Varus Ariminum with the two legions which had formed Lucretius Spurius'
command. Lucretius had his command extended for a year to allow of his rebuilding Genua, which had been
destroyed by Mago. Scipio's command was extended until the war in Africa was brought to a close. A decree
was also made that, as he had entered upon his province of Africa, solemn intercessions should be offered up
that the expedition might be to the advantage of the Roman people, of the general himself and of his army.
3000 men were raised for service in Sicily, as all the troops in that province had been taken to Africa and it
had been decided that Sicily should be protected by forty ships until the fleet returned from Africa. Villius
took with him thirteen new ships, the rest were the old ones in Sicily which were refitted. M. Pomponius,
who had been praetor the year before, was appointed to take charge of this fleet, and placed on board the new
levies he had brought from Italy. A fleet of equal strength was assigned to Cnaeus Octavius, who also had
been praetor the previous year and was now invested with similar powers for the protection of the Sardinian
coast. The praetor Lentulus was ordered to furnish 2000 men for service with the fleet. In view of the
uncertainty as to where the Carthaginian fleet would land, though they would be sure to seek some unguarded
spot, M. Marcius was furnished with forty ships to watch the coast of Italy. The consuls were authorised by
the senate to raise 3000 men for this fleet and also two legions to defend the City against all contingencies.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 118
Page No 121
The province of Spain was left in the hands of the former commanders, L. Lentulus and L. Manlius Acidinus,
who retained their old legions. Altogether there were 20 legions and 160 ships of war on active service this
year. The praetors were ordered to go to their respective provinces. Before the consuls left the City they
received the commands of the senate to celebrate the Great Games which the vow of the Dictator T. Manlius
Torquatus required to be celebrated every five years, if the condition of the republic remained unaltered.
Numerous stories of portents filled men's minds with superstitious terrors. It was said that crows picked with
their beaks some of the gold on the Capitol and actually ate it, and rats gnawed a golden crown at Antium.
The whole of the country round Capua was covered by an immense flight of locusts, and no one knew
whence they had come. At Reate a foal was born with five feet; at Anagnia fiery meteors were seen in
different parts of the sky and these were followed by a huge blazing torch; at Frusino a thin bow encircled the
sun, which afterwards grew to such a size that it extended beyond the bow; at Arpinum there was a
subsidence of the ground and a vast chasm was formed. Whilst one of the consuls was sacrificing, the liver of
the first victim was found to be without a head. These portents were expiated by sacrifices of fullgrown
animals, the college of pontiffs intimated the deities to whom they were to be offered.
When this business was completed the consuls and praetors departed to their various provinces. They were
all, however, interested in Africa, as much so indeed as if the ballot had assigned it to them, whether it was
that they saw that the issue of the war and their country's fate would be decided there, or that they wished to
do a service to Scipio as the man to whom all eyes were turned. So it was that not only from Sardinia, as
above stated, but from Sicily itself and from Spain, clothing, corn, even arms as well as supplies of all kinds
were forwarded to him from the Sicilian harbours. Throughout the winter there had been no pause in the
numerous operations which Scipio was conducting on all sides. He maintained the investment of Utica; his
camp was in full view of Hasdrubal; the Carthaginians had launched their ships, their fleet was fully equipped
and ready to intercept his supplies. Nevertheless he had not lost sight of his purpose to win Syphax, in case
his passion for his bride should have cooled through unstinted enjoyment. Syphax was anxious for peace and
proposed as conditions that the Romans should evacuate Africa, and the Carthaginians Italy, but he gave
Scipio to understand that if the war continued he should not desert his allies. I believe that the negotiations
were conducted through intermediariesand most of the authorities take this viewrather than that Syphax, as
Antias Valerius asserts, came to the Roman camp to confer personally with Scipio. At first the Roman
commander would hardly allow these terms to be mentioned; afterwards, however, in order that his men
might have a plausible reason for visiting the enemies' camp he did not reject then so decidedly, and held out
hopes that after frequent discussions they might come to an agreement. The winter quarters of the
Carthaginians, constructed as they were of materials collected haphazard from the country round, were
almost wholly built of wood. The Numidians in particular lived in huts made of wattled reeds and roofed with
grass matting; they were dispersed all over the camp in no order or arrangement, and some even lay outside
the lines. When this was reported to Scipio, he was hopeful of burning the camp down if an opportunity
presented itself.
The envoys who were sent to Syphax were accompanied by some firstrank centurions, men of tried courage
and sagacity, who were disguised as campservants. Whilst the envoys were in conference these men strolled
about the camp noting all the adits and exits, the general arrangement of the camp, the positions of the
Carthaginians and Numidians, respectively, and the distance between Hasdrubal's camp and that of Syphax.
They also watched the methods adopted in posting the watches and guards, to see whether a surprise attack
would be better made by night or by day. The conferences were pretty frequent, and different men were
purposely sent each time in order that these details might become known to a larger number. As the
discussions went on with increasing frequency, Syphax, and through him the Carthaginians, fully expected
that peace would be attained with a few days. Suddenly the Roman envoys announced that they had been
forbidden to return to headquarters unless a definite reply were given. Syphax must either say what he had
made up his mind to do or, if it was necessary for him to consult Hasdrubal and the Carthaginians, he should
do so; the time had come for either a peace settlement or an energetic resumption of hostilities. Whilst
Syphax was consulting Hasdrubal and the Carthaginians, the Roman spies had time to visit every part of the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 119
Page No 122
camp, and Scipio was able to make all his arrangements. The prospect of peace had, as usually happens,
made Syphax and the Carthaginians less on the alert to guard against any hostile attempt which might be
made in the meantime. At last a reply came, but as the Romans were supposed to be anxious for peace, the
opportunity was taken of adding some unacceptable conditions. This was just what Scipio wanted to justify
him in breaking off the armistice. He told the king's messenger that he would refer the matter to his council,
and the next day he gave his reply to the effect that not a single member of the council beside himself was in
favour of peace. The messenger was to take word that the only hope of peace for Syphax lay in his
abandoning the cause of the Carthaginians. Thus Scipio put an end to the truce in order that he might be free
to carry out his plans without any breach of faith. He launched his shipsit was now the commencement of
springand placed his engines and artillery on board as though he were going to attack Utica from the sea. He
also sent 2000 men to hold the hill commanding the city which he had previously occupied, partly with a
view of diverting the enemy's attention from his real design, and partly to prevent his camp from being
attacked from the city, as it would be left with only a weak guard while he was marching against Syphax and
Hasdrubal.
After making these arrangements he summoned a council of war and ordered the spies to report what they
had discovered, and at the same time requested Masinissa who knew all about the enemy to give the council
any information he could. He then laid before them his own plan of operations for the coming night and
directed the tribunes to lead the troops out of camp as soon as the trumpets sounded on the breakup of the
council. In obedience to his order the march out began at sunset. About the first watch the column of march
was deployed into line of battle. After advancing in this order at an easy pace for seven miles they reached
the hostile camp about midnight. Scipio assigned a portion of his force, including Masinissa and his
Numidians, to Laelius with instructions to attack Syphax and fire his camp. Then he took Laelius and
Masinissa apart and appealed to them each separately to make up by extra care and diligence for the
confusion inseparable from a night attack. He told them that he should attack Hasdrubal and the Carthaginian
camp, but would wait until he saw the king's camp on fire. He had not to wait long, for when the fire was cast
on the nearest huts it very soon caught the next ones and then running along in all directions spread over the
whole camp. Such an extensive fire breaking out at night naturally produced alarm and confusion, but
Syphax's men thinking it was due to accident and not to the enemy rushed out without arms to try and
extinguish it. They found themselves at once confronted by an armed foe, mainly Numidians whom
Masinissa, thoroughly acquainted with the arrangement of the camp, had posted in places where they could
block all the avenues. Some were caught by the flames, whilst half asleep in their beds, numbers who had
fled precipitately, scrambling over one another were trampled to death in the camp gates.
In the Carthaginian camp the first to see the glowing flames were the watch, then others wakened by the
tumult observed them, and all fell into the same mistake of supposing that it was an accidental outbreak. They
took the cries proceeding from wounded combatants as due to the nocturnal alarm, and so were unable to
realise what had actually happened. Not in the least suspecting the presence of an enemy, they rushed out,
each through the gate nearest to him, without any weapons carrying out what might help to extinguish the
flames, and so came right on the Roman army. They were all cut down, for the enemy gave no quarter, that
none might escape and give the alarm. In the confusion the gates were left unguarded, and Scipio at once
seized them and fire was flung upon the nearest huts. The flames broke out at first in different places but,
creeping from hut to hut, in a very few moments wrapped the whole camp in one vast conflagration. Men and
animals alike scorched with the heat blocked the passages to the gates and fell crushed by each other. Those
whom the fire did not overtake perished by the sword and the two camps were involved in one common
destruction. Both the generals, however, saved themselves, and out of all those thousands only 2000 infantry
and 500 cavalry made good their escape, the majority being wounded or suffering from the fire. Forty
thousand men perished either from the fire or the enemy, over 5000 were taken alive, including many
Carthaginian nobles of whom eleven were senators; 174 standards were captured, 2700 horses and 6
elephants, 8 others having been killed or burnt to death. An enormous quantity of arms was secured, these the
general devoted to Vulcan, and they were all burnt.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 120
Page No 123
Hasdrubal, who was accompanied in his flight by a small body of horse, made for the nearest city, where he
was subsequently joined by all who survived, but fearing that it might be surrendered to Scipio, he left it in
the night. Soon after his departure the gates were opened to admit the Romans, and as the surrender was a
voluntary one the place suffered no hostile treatment. Two cities were taken and sacked soon afterwards, and
the loot found there with what had been rescued from the burning camp was all given to the soldiers. Syphax
established himself in a fortified position about eight miles distant; Hasdrubal hastened to Carthage, fearing
lest the recent disaster should frighten the senate into a more yielding mood. So great in fact was the alarm
that people expected Scipio to leave Utica alone and instantly commence the siege of Carthage. The
sufetesa magistrate corresponding to our consulconvened a meeting of the senate. Here three proposals
were made. One was to send envoys to Scipio to negotiate a peace; another, to recall Hannibal to protect his
country from the ruin which threatened it; the third, which showed a firmness worthy of Romans in adversity,
urged the reinforcement of the army to its proper strength and an appeal to Syphax not to abandon hostilities.
The last proposal, which was supported by Hasdrubal and the whole of the Barcine party, was adopted.
Recruiting began at once in the city and the country districts, and a deputation was sent to Syphax, who was
already doing his utmost to repair his losses and renew hostilities. He was urged on by his wife, who did not
now trust to the endearments and caresses with which she had formerly swayed her lover, but with prayers
and piteous appeals and eyes bathed in tears she conjured him not to betray her father and her country, or
allow Carthage to be devastated by the flames which had consumed his camp. The deputation gave him
encouragement and hope by informing him that they had met near a city called Obba a body of 4000
Celtiberian mercenaries who had been raised in Spain, a splendid force, and that Hasdrubal would appear ere
long with a formidable army. He answered them in friendly terms, and then took them to see a large number
of Numidian peasants to whom he had just given arms and horses, and assured them that he would call out all
the fighting men in his kingdom. He was well aware, he said, that he owed his defeat to fire, and not to the
chances of battle; it was only the man who was vanquished by arms that was inferior in war. Such was the
tenor of his reply to the deputation. A few days later, Hasdrubal and Syphax joined forces; their united
strength amounted to about 30,000 men.
Just as though the war were at end, so far as Syphax and the Carthaginians were concerned, Scipio pressed on
the siege of Utica and was already bringing his engines up to the walls when he received intelligence of the
enemy's activity. Leaving a small force to keep up the appearance of an investment by land and sea, he
marched with the main body of his army to meet his foes. His first position was on a hill some four miles
distant from the king's camp. The next day he marched his cavalry down into what are called the Magni
Campi, a stretch of level country extending from the foot of the hill, and spent the day in riding up to the
enemies' outposts and harassing them with skirmishes. For the next two days both sides kept up this desultory
fighting without any result worth mentioning; on the fourth day both sides came down to battle. The Roman
commander drew up his principes behind the leading maniples of the hastati, and the triarii as reserves; the
Italian cavalry were stationed on the right wing, Masinissa and the Numidians on the left. Syphax and
Hasdrubal placed the Numidian cavalry opposite the Italian, and the Carthaginian horse fronted Masinissa,
whilst the Celtiberians formed the centre to meet the charge of the legions. In this formation they closed. The
Numidians and Carthaginians on the two wings were routed at the first charge; the former consisting mostly
of peasants could not withstand the Roman horse, nor could the Carthaginians, also raw levies, hold their own
against Masinissa, whose recent victory had made him more formidable than ever. Though exposed on both
flanks the Celtiberians stood their ground, for as they did not know the country, flight offered no chance of
safety, nor could they hope for any quarter from Scipio after carrying their mercenary arms into Africa to
attack the man who had done so much for them and their countrymen. Completely enveloped by their foes
they died fighting to the last, and fell one after another on the ground where they stood. Whilst the attention
of all was turned to them, Syphax and Hasdrubal gained time to make their escape. The victors, wearied with
slaughter more than with fighting, were at last overtaken by the night.
On the morrow Scipio sent Laelius with the whole of the Roman and Numidian cavalry and some
lightarmed infantry in pursuit of Syphax and Hasdrubal. The cities in the neighbourhood, all of which were
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 121
Page No 124
subject to Carthage, he attacked successively with his main body; some he won by appealing to their hopes
and fears, some he took by storm. Carthage was in a state of terrible panic, they felt quite sure that when he
had subjugated all their neighbours in the rapid progress of his arms, he would make a sudden attack on
Carthage. The walls were repaired and protected by outworks, and each man carried off from the fields, on
his own account, what would enable him to endure a long siege. Few ventured to mention the word "peace"
in the senate, many were in favour of recalling Hannibal, the majority were of opinion that the fleet which
was intended to intercept supplies should be sent to destroy the ships anchored off Utica, possibly the naval
camp as well, which was insufficiently guarded. This proposal found most favour, at the same time they
decided to send to Hannibal, "for even," it was argued, "supposing that the naval operations were completely
successful, the siege of Utica would be only partly raised, and then there was the defence of Carthagethey
had no general but Hannibal, no army but his that could undertake that task." The next day the ships were
launched, and at the same time a party of delegates set sail for Italy. The critical state of affairs acted as
strong stimulus, everything was done with feverish energy, any one who showed hesitation or slackness was
regarded as a traitor to the safety of all. As Scipio was making slow progress, his army being encumbered
with the spoils of many cities, he sent the prisoners and the rest of the booty to his old camp at Utica. As
Carthage was now his objective, he seized Tyneta, from which the garrison had fled, a place about fifteen
miles from Carthage, protected by its natural situation as well as by defensive works. It is visible from
Carthage and its walls afford a view of the sea which surrounds that city.
Whilst the Romans were busily engaged in intrenching they saw the hostile fleet sailing from Carthage to
Utica. They at once ceased work, orders were given to march, and the army made a rapid advance, fearing
lest the ships should be caught with their prows turned shorewards for siege operations, in utter unreadiness
for a naval battle. "How" they asked themselves, "can a mobile and fully armed fleet in perfect sailing order
be successfully resisted by ships loaded with artillery and war machines, or converted into transports, or
brought up so close to the walls as to allow of scaling parties using them instead of an agger and gangways?"
Under the circumstances Scipio abandoned the usual tactics. Bringing the warships which could have
protected the others into the rearmost position close inshore, he lined up the transports in front of them four
deep to serve as a wall against the enemy's attack. To prevent the lines from being broken by violent charges
he laid masts and yardarms from ship to ship and secured them by stout ropes which bound them together
like one continuous chain. He then fastened planks upon the top of these, so making a free passage along the
whole line, and under these bridges the despatchboats had room to run out against the enemy and retire into
safety. After making these hurried arrangements as complete as time would allow, he placed about 1000
picked men on board the transports and an immense quantity of missile weapons, so that however long the
fighting went on there might be enough. Thus ready and eager, they waited for the enemy.
If the Carthaginians had moved more rapidly they would have found hurry and confusion everywhere, and
they might have destroyed the fleet in the first onset. They were, however, disheartened by the defeat of their
land forces, and now they did not feel confidence even on the sea, the element where they were strongest.
After sailing slowly all through the day they brought up towards sunset at a harbour called by the natives
Rusocmon. The following day, they put out to sea in line of battle, expecting the Romans to come out and
attack them. After they had been stationary for a long time and no movement on the part of the enemy was
visible, they at last commenced an attack on the transports. There was nothing in the least resembling a naval
action, it looked almost exactly as if ships were attacking walls. The transports were considerably higher than
their opponents, and consequently the missiles from the Carthaginian vessels, which had to be hurled from
below, were mostly ineffective; those from the transports thrown from above fell with more force, their
weight adding to the blow. The despatchboats and light vessels which ran out through the intervals under
the plank gangways were many of them run down by the momentum and bulk of the warships, and in time
they became a hindrance to those fighting on the transports, who were often obliged to desist for fear of
hitting them while they were mixed up with the enemy's ships. At last the Carthaginans began to throw poles
with grapplinghooks at the endthe soldiers call them harpagoneson to the Roman ships, and it was
impossible to cut away either the poles or the chains by which they were suspended. When a warship had
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 122
Page No 125
hooked one of the transports it was rowed astern, and you would see the ropes which fastened the transports
one to another give way, and sometimes a whole line of transports would be dragged off together. In this way
all the gangways connecting the first line of transports were broken up, and there was hardly any place left
where the defenders could spring back into the second line. Six transports were towed off to Carthage. Here
the rejoicing was greater than the circumstances of the case warranted, but what made it all the more
welcome was the fact that the Roman fleet had narrowly escaped destruction, an escape due to the
Carthaginian commander's slackness and the timely arrival of Scipio. Amid such continual disasters and
mourning this was an unhopedfor cause of congratulation.
Meantime Laelius and Masinissa, after a fifteen days' march, entered Numidia, and the Maesulians, delighted
to see their king whose absence they had so long regretted, placed him once more on his ancestral throne. All
the garrisons with which Syphax had held the country were expelled and he was confined within the limits of
his former dominions. He had no intention, however, of remaining quiet; he was goaded on by his wife,
whom he passionately loved, and by her father, and he had such an abundance of men and horses that the
mere sight of the resources afforded by a realm which had enjoyed many years of prosperity would have
stimulated the ambition of even a less barbarous and impulsive nature than Syphax possessed. He assembled
all who were fit for war, and after distributing horses, armour and weapons amongst them he formed the
mounted men into squadrons and the infantry into cohorts, a plan which he had learnt in the old days from the
centurions. With this army, quite as numerous as the one he had had before but consisting almost entirely of
raw and untrained levies, he marched off to meet his enemies, and fixed his camp in their vicinity. At first he
sent small bodies of cavalry from the outposts to make a cautious reconnaissance; compelled to retire by
showers of darts they galloped back to their comrades. Sorties were made on both sides alternately, and
indignant at being repulsed, larger bodies came up. This acts as an incentive in cavalry skirmishes when the
winning side find their comrades flocking to them in hopes of victory and rage at the prospect of defeat
brings supports to those who are losing. So it was then, the fighting had been begun by a few, but the love of
battle at last brought the whole of the cavalry on both sides into the field. As long as the cavalry only were
engaged the Romans had great difficulty in withstanding the immense numbers of Maesulians whom Syphax
was sending forward. Suddenly, however, the Roman light infantry ran out between the cavalry who made
way for them, and this gave steadiness to the line and checked the rush of the enemy. The latter slackened
speed and then came to a halt, and were soon thrown into confusion by this unaccustomed mode of fighting.
At last they gave ground not only before the infantry but before the cavalry also, to whom the support of their
infantry had given fresh courage. By this time the legions were coming up, but the Maesulians did not wait
for their attack, the mere sight of the standards and arms was enough, such was the effect either of the
recollection of their past defeats or of the fear which the enemy now inspired.
Syphax was riding up to the hostile squadrons in the hope that either a sense of honour or his own personal
danger might check the flight of his men, when his horse was severely wounded and he was thrown,
overpowered and made prisoner, and carried off to Laelius. Masinissa was especially delighted to see him as
a captive. Cirta was Syphax's capital, and a considerable number escaped to that city. The losses sustained
were insignificant compared with the importance of the victory, for the fighting had been confined to the
cavalry. There were not more than 5000 killed, and in the storming of the camp, whither the mass of troops
had fled after losing their king, less than half that number were made prisoners. Masinissa told Laelius that
nothing would delight him more for the moment than to visit as conqueror his ancestral dominions which had
after so many years been recovered, but prompt action was as necessary in success as in defeat. He suggested
that he should be allowed to go on with the cavalry and the vanquished Syphax to Cirta, which he would be
able to surprise amidst the general confusion and alarm; Laelius might follow with the infantry by easy
stages. Laelius gave his consent and Masinissa advanced to Cirta and ordered the leading citizens to be
invited to a conference. They were ignorant of what had happened to the king, and though Masinissa told
them all that had occurred he found threats and persuasion equally unavailing until the king was brought
before them in chains. At this painful and humiliating spectacle there was an outburst of grief, the defences
were abandoned, and there was a unanimous resolve to seek the victor's favour by opening the gates to him.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 123
Page No 126
After placing guards round all the gates and at suitable places in the fortifications he galloped up to the palace
to take possession of it.
As he was entering the vestibule, on the very threshold in fact, he was met by Sophonisba, the wife of Syphax
and daughter of the Carthaginian Hasdrubal. When she saw him surrounded by an armed escort, and
conspicuous by his arms and general appearance, she rightly guessed that he was the king, and throwing
herself at his feet, exclaimed: "Your courage and good fortune aided by the gods have given you absolute
power over us. But if a captive may utter words of supplication before one who is master of her fate, if she
may touch his victorious right hand, then I pray and beseech you by the kingly greatness in which we too not
long ago were clothed, by the name of Numidian which you and Syphax alike bear, by the tutelary deities of
this royal abode who, I pray, may receive you with fairer omens than those with which they sent him hence,
grant this favour at least to your suppliant that you yourself decide your captive's fate whatever it may be, and
do not leave me to fall under the cruel tyranny of a Roman. Had I been simply the wife of Syphax I would
still choose to trust to the honour of a Numidian, born under the same African sky as myself, rather than that
of an alien and a foreigner. But I am a Carthaginian, the daughter of Hasdrubal, and you see what I have to
fear. If no other way is possible then I implore you to save me by death from falling into Roman hands."
Sophonisba was in the bloom of youth and in all the splendour of her beauty, and as she held Masinissa's
hand and begged him to give his word that she should not be surrendered to the Romans, her tone became one
of blandishment rather than entreaty. A slave to passion like all his countrymen, the victor at once fell in love
with his captive. He gave her his solemn assurance that he would do what she wished him to do and then
retired into the palace. Here he considered in what way he could redeem his promise, and as he saw no
practical way of doing so he allowed his passion to dictate to him as a method equally reckless and indecent.
Without a moment's delay he made preparations for celebrating his nuptials on that very day, so that neither
Laelius nor Scipio might be free to treat as a prisoner one who was now Masinissa's wife. When the marriage
ceremony was over Laelius appeared on the scene, and, far from concealing his disapproval of what had been
done, he actually attempted to drag her from her bridegroom's arms and send her with Syphax and the other
prisoners to Scipio. However, Masinissa's remonstrances so far prevailed that it was left to Scipio to decide
which of the two kings should be the happy possessor of Sophonisba. After Laelius had sent Syphax and the
other prisoners away, he recovered, with Masinissa's aid, the remaining cities in Numidia which were still
held by the king's garrisons.
When the news arrived that Syphax was being brought into camp, the whole army turned out as though to
watch a triumphal procession. The king himself, in chains, was the first to appear, he was followed by a
crowd of Numidian nobles. As they passed the soldiers each in turn sought to magnify their victory by
exaggerating the greatness of Syphax and the military reputation of his nation. "This is the king," they said,
"whose greatness has been so far acknowledged by the most powerful States in the worldRome and
Carthagethat Scipio left his army in Spain and sailed with two triremes to Africa to secure his alliance,
whilst the Carthaginian Hasdrubal not only visited him in his kingdom, but even gave him his daughter in
marriage. He has had the Roman and the Carthaginian commanders both in his power at the same time. As
each side has sought peace and friendship from the immortal gods by sacrifices duly offered, so each side
alike has sought peace and friendships from him. He was powerful enough to expel Masinissa from his
kingdom, and he reduced him to such a condition that he owed his life to the report of his death and to his
concealment in the forest, where he lived on what he could catch there like a wild beast." Amidst these
remarks of the bystanders, the king was conducted to the headquarters tent. As Scipio compared the earlier
fortunes of the man with his present condition and recalled to mind his own hospitable relations with him, the
mutually pledged right hands, the political and personal bonds between them, he was greatly moved. Syphax,
too, thought of these things, but they gave him courage in addressing his conqueror. Scipio questioned him as
to his object in first denouncing his alliance with Rome and then starting an unprovoked war against her. He
admitted that he had done wrong and behaved like a madman but his taking up arms against Rome was not
the beginning of his madness, it was the last act. He first exhibited his folly, his utter disregard of all private
ties and public obligations, when he admitted a Carthaginian bride into his house. The torches which
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 124
Page No 127
illuminated these nuptials had set his palace in a blaze. That fury of a woman, that scourge, had used every
endearment to alienate and warp his feelings, and would not rest till she had with her own impious hands
armed him against his host and friend. However, broken and ruined as he was, he had this to console him in
his miserythat pestilential fury had entered the household of his bitterest foe. Masinissa was not wiser or
more consistent than he had been, his youth made him even less cautious; at all events that marriage proved
him to be more foolish and headstrong.
This was the language of a man animated, not only by hatred towards an enemy, but also by the sting of
hopeless love, knowing as he did that the woman he loved was in the house of his rival. Scipio was deeply
distressed at what he heard. Proof of the charges was found in the hurrying on of the nuptials almost amid the
clash of arms without consulting or even waiting for Laelius. Masinissa had acted with such precipitancy that
the very first day he saw his prisoner he married her, and the rites were actually performed before the tutelary
deities of his enemy's house. This conduct appeared all the more shocking to Scipio because when he himself
was in Spain, young as he was, no captive girl had ever moved him by her beauty. Whilst he was thinking all
this over, Laelius and Masinissa appeared. He extended the same gracious and friendly welcome to both, and
in the presence of a large number of his officers addressed them in most laudatory terms. Then he took
Masinissa quietly aside and spoke to him as follows: "I think, Masinissa, that you must have seen some good
qualities in me when you went to Spain to establish friendly relations with me, and also when, afterwards,
you trusted yourself and all your fortunes to me in Africa. Now, among all the virtues which attracted you
there is none upon which I pride myself so much as upon my continence and the control of my passions. I
wish, Masinissa, that you would add these to the other noble features of your own character. At our time of
life we are not, believe me, so much in danger from armed foes as from the seductive pleasures which tempt
us on every side. The man who has curbed and subjugated these by his selfcontrol has won for himself
greater glory and a greater victory than we have won over Syphax. The courage and energy you have
displayed in my absence I have gladly dwelt upon and gratefully remember; the rest of your conduct I prefer
that you should reflect upon when alone, rather than that I should make you blush by alluding to it. Syphax
has been defeated and made prisoner under the auspices of the people of Rome, and this being so, his wife,
his kingdom, his territory, his towns with all their inhabitants, whatever in short Syphax possessed, belong
now to Rome as the spoils of war. Even if his wife were not a Carthaginian, if we did not know that her father
is in command of the enemy's forces, it would still be our duty to send her with her husband to Rome, and
leave it to the senate and people to decide the fate of one who is alleged to have estranged our ally and
precipitated him in arms against us. Conquer your feelings and be on your guard against letting one vice mar
the many good qualities you possess and sullying the grace of all your services by a fault which is out of all
proportion to its cause."
On hearing this Masinissa blushed furiously and even shed tears. He said that he would comply with the
general's wishes, and begged him to take into consideration, as far as he could, the pledge he had rashly
given, for he had promised that he would not let her pass into any one's power. Then he left the headquarters
tent and retired to his own in a state of distraction. Dismissing all his attendants he remained there some time,
giving vent to continual sighs and groans which were quite audible to those outside. At last with a deep groan
he called one of his slaves in whom he placed complete confidence and who had in his keeping the poison
which kings usually have in reserve against the vicissitudes of Fortune. After mixing it in a cup he told him to
take it to Sophonisba, and at the same time tell her that Masinissa would have gladly fulfilled the first
promise that he made to his wife, but as those who have the power were depriving him of the right to do so,
he was fulfilling the secondthat she should not fall into the hands of the Romans alive. The thought of her
father, her country, and the two kings who had wedded her would decide her how to act. When the servant
came with the poison and the message to Sophonisba, she said, "I accept this wedding gift, no unwelcome
one if my husband can do nothing more for his wife. But tell him that I should have died more happily had
not my marriage bed stood so near my grave." The high spirit of these words was sustained by the fearless
way in which, without the slightest sign of trepidation, she drank the potion. When the news reached Scipio
he was afraid that the young man, wild with grief, would take some still more desperate step, so he at once
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 125
Page No 128
sent for him, and tried to console him. at the same time gently censuring him for having atoned for one act of
madness by committing another and making the affair more tragic than it need have been. The next day, with
the view of diverting his thoughts, Scipio mounted the tribunal and ordered the assembly to be sounded.
Addressing Masinissa as king and eulogising him in the highest possible terms, he presented him with a
golden crown, curule chair, an ivory sceptre and also with a purplebordered toga and a tunic embroidered
with palms. He enhanced the value of these gifts by informing him that the Romans considered no honour
more splendid than that of a triumph, and that no more magnificent insignia were borne by triumphing
generals than those which the Roman people deemed Masinissa, alone of all foreigners, worthy to possess.
Laelius was the next to be commended, he was presented with a golden crown. Other soldiers received
rewards according to their services. The honours which had had been conferred on the king went far to
assuage his grief, and he was encouraged to hope for the speedy possession of the whole of Numidia now that
Syphax was out of the way.
Laelius was sent in charge of Syphax and the other prisoners to Rome, and envoys from Masinissa
accompanied him. Scipio returned to his camp at Tyneta and completed the fortifications which he had
commenced. The rejoicing of the Carthaginians over the temporary success of their naval attack was
shortlived and evanescent, for when they heard of the capture of Syphax, on whom they had rested their
hopes almost more than on Hasdrubal and his army, they completely lost heart. The war party could no
longer gain a hearing and the senate sent the "Thirty Seniors" to Scipio to sue for peace. This body was the
most august council in their state and controlled to a very large extent even the senate itself. When they
reached the headquarters tent in the Roman camp, they made a profound obeisance and prostrated
themselvesa practice, I believe, which they brought with them from their original home. Their language
corresponded to their abject posture. They made no excuse for themselves, but threw the responsibility for the
war on Hannibal and his supporters. They craved pardon for a city which had been twice ruined by the
recklessness of its citizens and could only be preserved in safety by the goodwill of its enemy. What Rome
sought, they pleaded, was the homage and submission of the vanquished, not their annihilation. They
professed themselves ready to execute any commands which he chose to give. Scipio replied that he had
come to Africa in the hopea hope which his successes had confirmedof taking back to Rome a complete
victory, and not merely proposals for peace. Still, though victory was almost within his grasp, he would not
refuse to grant terms of peace, that all nations might know that Rome was actuated by the spirit of justice,
whether she was undertaking a war or putting an end to one.
He stated the terms of peace, which were the surrender of all prisoners, deserters and refugees; the
withdrawal of the armies from Italy and Gaul; the abandonment of all action in Spain; the evacuation of all
the islands lying between Italy and Africa and the surrender of their entire navy with the exception of twenty
vessels. They were also to provide 500,000 pecks of wheat and 300,000 of barley, but the actual amount of
the money indemnity is doubtful. In some authors I find 5000 talents, in others 5000 pounds of silver
mentioned; some only say that double pay for the troops was demanded. "You will be allowed," he added,
"three days to consider whether you will agree to peace on these terms. If you decide to do so, arrange an
armistice with me, and send envoys to the senate in Rome." The Carthaginians were then dismissed. As their
object was to gain time to allow of Hannibal's sailing across to Africa they resolved that no conditions of
peace should be rejected, and accordingly they sent delegates to conclude an armistice with Scipio, and a
deputation was also sent to Rome to sue for peace, the latter taking with them a few prisoners and deserters
for the sake of appearance, in order that peace might more be readily granted.
Several days previously Laelius arrived in Rome with Syphax and the Numidian prisoners. He made a report
to the senate of all that had been done in Africa and there were great rejoicings at the present position of
affairs and sanguine hopes for the future. After discussing the matter the senate decided that Syphax should
be interned at Alba and that Laelius should stay in Rome until the Carthaginian delegates arrived. A four
days' thanksgiving was ordered. On the adjournment of the House, P. Aelius, the praetor, forthwith convened
a meeting of the Assembly, and mounted the rostrum, accompanied by C. Laelius. When the people heard
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 126
Page No 129
that the armies of Carthage had been routed, a farfamed king defeated and made prisoner, and a victorious
progress made throughout Numidia, they could no longer restrain their feelings and expressed their
unbounded joy in shouts and other demonstrations of delight. Seeing the people in this mood the praetor at
once gave orders for the sacristans to throw open the holy places throughout the City in order that the people
might have the whole day for going round the shrines to offer up their adoration and thanksgivings to the
gods.
The next day he introduced Masinissa's envoys to the senate. They first of all congratulated the senate upon
Scipio's successes in Africa and then expressed thanks on behalf of Masinissa for Scipio's action in not only
conferring upon him the title of king, but also in giving practical effect to it by restoring to him his ancestral
dominion where now that Syphax was disposed of he would, if the senate so decided, reign free from all fear
of opposition. He was grateful for the way in which Scipio had spoken of him before his officers and for the
splendid insignia with which he had been honoured and which he had done his best to prove himself worthy
of and would continue to do so. They petitioned the senate to confirm by a formal decree the royal title and
the other favours and dignities which Scipio had conferred upon him. And as an additional boon, Masinissa
begged, if he was not asking too much, that they would release the Numidian prisoners who were under guard
in Rome; that, he considered, would increase his prestige with his subjects. The reply given to the envoys was
to the effect that the senate congratulated the king as much as themselves upon the successes in Africa; Scipio
had acted rightly and in perfect order in recognising Masinissa as king, and the senators warmly approved of
all he had done to meet Masinissa's wishes. They passed a decree that the presents which the envoys were to
take to the king should comprise two purple cloaks with a golden clasp on each and two tunics embroidered
with the laticlave; two richly caparisoned horses and a set of equestrian armour with cuirasses for each; two
tents and military furniture such as the consuls are usually provided with. The praetor received instructions to
see that these things were sent to the king. The envoys each received presents to the value of 5000 ases, and
each member of their suite to the value of 1000 ases. Besides these, two suits of apparel were given to each of
the envoys, and one to each of their suite and also to each of the Numidian prisoners who were to be restored
to the king. During their stay in Rome a house was placed at their disposal and they were treated as guests of
the State.
During this summer P. Quintilius Varus the praetor and M. Cornelius the proconsul fought a regular
engagement with Mago. The praetor's legions formed the fighting line; Cornelius kept his in reserve, but rode
to the front and took command of one wing, the praetor leading the other, and both of them exhorted the
soldiers to make a furious charge on the enemy. When they failed to make any impression upon them,
Quintilius said to Cornelius, "As you see, the battle is progressing too slowly; the enemy finding themselves
offering an unhopedfor resistance have steeled themselves against fear, there is danger of this fear passing
into audacity. We must let loose a hurricane of cavalry against them if we want to shake them and make them
give ground. Either, then, you must keep up the fighting at the front and I will bring the cavalry into action,
or I will remain here and direct the operations of the first line while you launch the cavalry of the four legions
against the enemy." The proconsul left it to the praetor to decide what he would do. Quintilius, accordingly,
accompanied by his son Marcus, an enterprising and energetic youth, rode off to the cavalry, ordered them to
mount and sent them at once against the enemy. The effect of their charge was heightened by the battleshout
of the legions, and the hostile lines would not have stood their ground, had not Mago, at the first movement
of the cavalry, promptly brought his elephants into action. The appearance of these animals, their trumpeting
and smell so terrified the horses as to render the assistance of the cavalry futile. When engaged at close
quarters and able to use sword and lance the Roman cavalryman was the better fighter, but when carried away
by a frightened horse, he was a better target for the Numidian darts. As for the infantry, the twelfth legion had
lost a large proportion of their men and were holding their ground more to avoid the disgrace of retreat than
from any hope of offering effectual resistance. Nor would they have held it any longer if the thirteenth legion
which was in reserve had not been brought up and taken part in the doubtful conflict. To oppose this fresh
legion Mago brought up his reserves also. These were Gauls, and the hastati of the eleventh legion had not
much trouble in putting them to rout. They then closed up and attacked the elephants who were creating
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 127
Page No 130
confusion in the Roman infantry ranks. Showering their darts upon them as they crowded together, and
hardly ever failing to hit, they drove them all back upon the Carthaginian lines, after four had fallen, severely
wounded.
At last the enemy began to give ground, and the whole of the Roman infantry, when they saw the elephants
turning against their own side, rushed forward to increase the confusion and panic. As long as Mago kept his
station in front, his men retreated slowly and in good order, but when they saw him fall, seriously wounded
and carried almost fainting from the field, there was a general flight. The losses of the enemy amounted to
5000 men, and 22 standards were taken. The victory was a far from bloodless one for the Romans, they lost
2300 men in the praetor's army, mostly from the twelfth legion, and amongst them two military tribunes, M.
Cosconius and M. Maevius. The thirteenth legion, the last to take part in the action, also had its losses; C.
Helvius, a military tribune, fell whilst restoring the battle, and twentytwo members of the cavalry corps,
belonging to distinguished families, together with some of the centurions were trampled to death by the
elephants. The battle would have lasted longer had not Mago's wound given the Romans the victory.
Mago withdrew during the night and marching as rapidly as his wound would allow reached that part of the
Ligurian coast which is inhabited by the Ingauni. Here he was met by the deputation from Carthage which
had landed a few days previously at Genua. They informed him that he must sail for Africa at the earliest
possible moment; his brother Hannibal, to whom similar instructions had been given, was on the point of
doing so. Carthage was not in a position to retain her hold upon Gaul and Italy. The commands of the senate
and the dangers threatening his country decided Mago's course, and moreover there was the risk of an attack
from the victorious enemy if he delayed, and also of the desertion of the Ligurians who, seeing Italy
abandoned by the Carthaginians, would go over to those in whose power they would ultimately be. He hoped
too that a sea voyage would be less trying to his wound than the jolting of the march had been, and that
everything would contribute to his recovery. He embarked his men and set sail, but he had not cleared
Sardinia when he died of his wound. Some of his ships which had parted company with the rest when out at
sea were captured by the Roman fleet which was lying off Sardinia. Such was the course of events in the
Alpine districts of Italy. The consul C. Servilius had done nothing worth recording in Etruria, nor after his
departure for Gaul. In the latter country he had rescued his father C. Servilius and also C. Lutatius after
sixteen years of servitude, the result of their capture by the Boii at Tannetum. With his father on one side of
him and Lutatius on the other he returned to Rome honoured more on personal than public grounds. A
measure was proposed to the people relieving him from penalties for having illegally acted as tribune of the
plebs and plebeian aedile while his father who had filled a curule chair was, unknown to him, still alive.
When the bill of indemnity was passed he returned to his province. The consul Cnaeus Servilius in Bruttium
received the surrender of several places, now that they saw that the Punic War was drawing to a close.
Amongst these were Consentia, Aufugium, Bergae, Besidiae, Oriculum, Lymphaeum, Argentanum, and
Clampetia. He also fought a battle with Hannibal in the neighbourhood of Croto, of which no clear account
exists. According to Valerius Antias, 5000 of the enemy were killed, but either this is an unblushing fiction,
or its omission in the annalists shows great carelessness. At all events nothing further was done by Hannibal
in Italy, for the delegation summoning him to Africa happened to arrive from Carthage about the same time
as the one to Mago.
It is said that he gnashed his teeth, groaned, and almost shed tears when he heard what the delegates had to
say. After they had delivered their instructions, he exclaimed, "The men who tried to drag me back by cutting
off my supplies of men and money are now recalling me not by crooked means but plainly and openly. So
you see, it is not the Roman people who have been so often routed and cut to pieces that have vanquished
Hannibal, but the Carthaginian senate by their detraction and envy. It is not Scipio who will pride himself and
exult over the disgrace of my return so much as Hanno who has crushed my house, since he could do it in no
other way, beneath the ruins for Carthage." He had divined what would happen, and had got his ships ready
in anticipation. The unserviceable portion of his troops he got rid of by distributing them ostensibly as
garrisons amongst the few towns which, more out of fear than loyalty, still adhered to him. The main strength
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 128
Page No 131
of his army he transported to Africa. Many who were natives of Italy refused to follow him, and withdrew
into the temple of Juno Lacinia, a shrine which up to that day had remained inviolate. There, actually within
the sacred precinct, they were foully murdered. Seldom, according to the accounts, has any one left his native
country to go into exile in such gloomy sorrow as Hannibal manifested when quitting the country of his foes.
It is stated that he often looked back to the shores of Italy, accusing gods and men and even cursing himself
for not having led his soldiers reeking with blood from the victorious field of Cannae straight to Rome.
Scipio, he said, who whilst consul had never seen a Carthaginian in Italy, had dared to go to Africa, whereas
he who had slain 100,000 men at Thrasymenus and at Cannae had wasted his strength round Casilinum and
Cumae and Nola. Amid these accusations and regrets he was borne away from his long occupation of Italy.
The news of Mago's departure reached Rome at the same time as that of Hannibal. The joy with which the
intelligence of this twofold relief was received was, however, chastened by the fact that their generals had,
through lack of either courage or strength, failed to detain them, though they had received express
instructions from the senate to that effect. There was also a feeling of anxiety as to what the issue would be
now that the whole brunt of the war fell upon one army and one commander. Just at this time, a commission
arrived from Saguntum bringing some Carthaginians who had landed in Spain for the purpose of hiring
auxiliaries, and whom they had captured together with the money they had brought. 250 pounds of silver and
800 pounds of gold were deposited in the vestibule of the senatehouse. After the men had been handed over
and thrown into prison, the gold and silver was returned to the Saguntines. A vote of thanks was accorded to
them, they were presented with gifts and also provided with ships in which to return to Spain. Following
upon this incident some of the senior senators reminded the House of a great omission. "Men," they said, "are
much more alive to their misfortunes than to the good things that come to them. We remember what panic
and terror we felt when Hannibal descended upon Italy. What defeats and mourning followed! The enemy's
camp was visible from the Citywhat prayers we one and all put up! How often in our councils have we
heard the plaint of men lifting up their hands to heaven and asking whether the day would ever come when
they would see Italy freed from an enemy's presence and flourishing in peace and prosperity! At last, after
sixteen years of war, the gods have granted us this boon, and yet there are none who ask that thanks should be
offered to them. Men do not receive even a present blessing with grateful hearts, much less are they are likely
to remember past benefits." A general shout arose from all parts of the House calling upon the praetor P.
Aelius to submit a motion. It was decreed that a five days' thanksgiving should be offered at all the shrines
and a hundred and twenty fullgrown victims sacrificed. Laelius had by this time left Rome with Masinissa's
envoys. On tidings being received that the Carthaginian peace deputation had been seen at Puteoli and would
come on from there by land it was decided to recall Laelius in order that he might be present at the interview.
Q. Fulvius Gillo, one of Scipio's staffofficers, conducted the Carthaginians to Rome. As they were
forbidden to enter the City they were domiciled in a country house belonging to the State, and an audience of
the senate was granted them in the temple of Bellona.
Their speech to the senate was much the same as the one they had made to Scipio; they disclaimed any
responsibility for the war on the part of the government and threw the entire blame on Hannibal. "He had no
orders from their senate to cross the Ebro, much less the Alps. It was on his own authority that he had made
war not only on Rome but even on Saguntum; any one who took a just view would recognise that the treaty
with Rome remained unbroken to that day. Their instructions accordingly were simply that they should ask to
be allowed to continue on the same terms of peace as those which had been settled on the last occasion with
C. Lutatius." In accordance with the traditional usage the praetor gave any one who wished permission to
interrogate the envoys, and the senior members who had taken part in arranging the former treaties put
various questions. The envoys, who were almost all young men, said that they had no recollection of what
happened. Then loud protests broke out from all parts of the House; the senators declared that it was an
instance of Punic treachery, men were selected to ask for a renewal of the old treaty who did not even
remember its terms.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 129
Page No 132
The envoys were then ordered to withdraw and the senators were asked for their opinions. M. Livius advised
that as the consul C. Servilius was the nearest he should be summoned to Rome in order that he might be
present during the debate. No more important subject could be discussed than the one before them, and it did
not seem to him compatible with the dignity of the Roman people that the discussion should take place in the
absence of both the consuls. Q. Metellus, who had been consul three years previously and had also been
Dictator, gave it as his opinion that as P. Scipio, after destroying their armies and devastating their land, had
driven the enemy to the necessity of suing for peace, there was no one in the world who could form a truer
judgment as to their real intention in opening negotiations than the man who was at that moment carrying the
war up to the gates of Carthage. In his opinion they ought to take Scipio's advice and no other as to whether
the offer of peace ought to be accepted or rejected. M. Valerius Laevinus, who had filled two consulships,
declared that they had come as spies and not as envoys, and he urged that they should be ordered to leave
Italy and escorted by a guard to their ships, and that written instructions should be sent to Scipio not to relax
hostilities. Laelius and Fulvius supported this proposal and stated that Scipio thought that the only hope of
peace lay in Mago and Hannibal not being recalled, but the Carthaginians would adopt every subterfuge
whilst waiting for their generals and their armies, and would then continue the war, ignoring treaties however
recent, and in defiance of all the gods. These statements led the senate to adopt Laevinus' proposal. The
envoys were dismissed with no prospect of peace and the curtest of replies.
The consul Cnaeus Servilius, fully persuaded that the credit of restoring peace in Italy was due to him, and
that it was he who had driven Hannibal out of the country, followed the Carthaginian commander to Sicily,
intending to sail from there to Africa. When this became known in Rome the senate decided that the praetor
should write to him and inform him that the senate thought it right that he should remain in Italy. The praetor
said that Servilius would pay no attention to a letter from him, and on this it was resolved to appoint P.
Sulpicius Dictator, and he by virtue of his superior authority recalled the consul to Italy. The Dictator spent
the remainder of the year in visiting, accompanied by M. Servilius, his Master of the Horse, the different
cities of Italy which had fallen away from Rome during the war, and holding an enquiry in each case. During
the armistice a hundred transports carrying supplies and escorted by twenty warships were despatched from
Sardinia by Lentulus the praetor and reached Africa without any damage either from the enemy or from
storms. Cnaeus Octavius sailed from Sicily with two hundred transports and thirty warships, but was not
equally fortunate. He had a favourable voyage until he was almost within sight of Africa, when he was
becalmed; then a southwesterly wind sprang up which scattered his ships in all directions. Thanks to the
extraordinary efforts of the rowers against the adverse waves, Octavius succeeded in making the Promontory
of Apollo. The greater part of the transports were driven to Aegimurus, an island which forms a breakwater to
the bay on which Carthage is situated and about thirty miles distant from the city. Other were carried up to
the city itself as far as the Aquae Calidae ("hotsprings"). All this was visible from Carthage, and a crowd
gathered from all parts of the city in the forum. The magistrates convened the senate; the people who were in
the vestibule of the senatehouse protested against so much booty being allowed to slip out of their hands and
out of their sight. Some objected that this would be a breach of faith whilst peace negotiations were going on,
others were for respecting the truce which had not yet expired. The popular assembly was so mixed up with
the senate that they almost formed one body, and they unanimously decided that Hasdrubal should proceed to
Aegimurum with fifty ships of war and pick up the Roman ships which were scattered along the coast or in
the harbours. Those transports which had been abandoned by their crews at Aegimurum were towed to
Carthage, and subsequently others were brought in from Aquae Calidae.
The envoys had not yet come back from Rome, and it was not known whether the senate had decided for
peace or for war. What did most to arouse Scipio's indignation was the fact that all hopes of peace were
destroyed and all respect for the truce flouted by the very men who had asked for a truce and were suing for
peace. He at once sent L. Baebius, M. Servilius and L. Fabius to Carthage to protest. As they were in danger
of illtreatment from the mob and saw that they might be prevented from returning, they requested the
magistrates who had protected them from violence to send ships to escort them. Two triremes were supplied
to them, and when they reached the mouth of the Bagradas, from which the Roman camp was visible, the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 130
Page No 133
ships returned to Carthage. The Carthaginian fleet was lying off Utica, and whether it was in consequence of
a secret message from Carthage, or whether Hanno, who was in command, acted on his own responsibility
without the connivance of his government, in any case, three quadriremes from the fleet made a sudden attack
upon the Roman quinquereme as it was rounding the promontory. They were, however, unable to ram it
owing to its superior speed, and its greater height prevented any attempt to board it. As long as the missiles
lasted, the quinquereme made a brilliant defence, but when these failed nothing could have saved it but the
nearness of the land and the numbers of men who had come down from the camp to the shore to watch. The
rowers drove the ships on to the beach with their utmost strength; the vessel was wrecked, but the passengers
escaped uninjured. Thus, by one misdeed after another, all doubt was removed as to the truce having been
broken when Laelius and the Carthaginians arrived on their return from Rome. Scipio informed them that in
spite of the fact that the Carthaginians had broken not only the truce which they had pledged themselves to
observe, but even the law of nations in their treatment of the envoys, he should himself take no action in their
case which would be inconsistent with the traditional maxims of Rome or contrary to his own principles. He
then dismissed them and prepared to resume operations. Hannibal was now nearing the land and he ordered a
sailor to climb the mast and find out what part of the country they were making for. The man reported that
they were heading for a ruined sepulchre. Hannibal regarding it as an evil omen ordered the pilot to sail past
the place and brought up the fleet at Leptis, where he disembarked his force.
The abovedescribed events all happened during this year, the subsequent ones belong to the year following
when M. Servilius the Master of the Horse and Tiberius Claudius Nero were the consuls. Towards the close
of the year a deputation came from the Greek cities in alliance with us to complain that their country had
been devastated and the envoys who had been sent to demand redress were not allowed to approach Philip.
They also brought information that 4000 men under Sopater had sailed for Africa to assist the Carthaginians,
taking a considerable sum of money with them. The senate decided to send to Philip and inform him that they
regarded these proceedings as a violation of the treaty. C. Terentius Varro, C. Mamilius and M. Aurelius
were entrusted with this mission, and they were furnished with three quinqueremes. The year was rendered
memorable by an enormous fire, in which the houses on the Clivus Publicius were burnt to the ground, and
also by a great flood. Food, however, was extremely cheap, for not only was the whole of Italy open, now
that it was left in peace, but a great quantity of corn had been sent from Spain, which the curule aediles, M.
Valerius Falto and M. Fabius Buteo, distributed to the people, ward by ward, at four ases the peck. The death
occurred this year of Quintus Fabius Maximus at a very advanced age, if it be true, as some authorities assert,
that he had been augur for sixtytwo years. He was a man who deserved the great surname he bore, even if
he had been the first to bear it. He surpassed his father in his distinctions, and equalled his grandfather Rullus.
Rullus had won more victories and fought greater battles, but his grandson had Hannibal for an opponent and
that made up for everything. He was held to be cautious rather than energetic, and though it may be a
question whether he was naturally slow in action or whether he adopted these tactics as especially suitable to
the character of the war, nothing is more certain that that, as Ennius says, "one man by his slowness restored
the State." He had been both augur and pontifex; his son Q. Fabius Maximus succeeded him as augur, Ser.
Sulpicius Galba as pontifex. The Roman and the Plebeian Games were celebrated by the aediles M. Sextius
Sabinus and Cnaeus Tremellius Flaccus, the former for one day, the latter were repeated for three days. These
two aediles were elected praetors together with C. Livius Salinator and C. Aurelius Cotta. Authorities are
divided as to who presided over the elections, whether the consul C. Servilius did so or whether, owing to his
being detained in Etruria by the conspiracy trials which the senate had ordered him to conduct, he named a
Dictator to preside.
In the beginning of the following year the consuls M. Servilius and Tiberius Claudius convened the senate in
the Capitol to decide the allocation of the provinces. As they both wanted Africa they were anxious to ballot
for that province and for Italy. Mainly, however, owing to the efforts of Q. Metellus, nothing was decided
about Africa; the consuls were instructed to arrange with the tribunes of the plebs for a vote of the people to
be taken as to whom they wished to conduct the war in Africa. The tribes were unanimously in favour of P.
Scipio. In spite of this the senate decreed that the two consuls should ballot, and Africa was drawn by Ti.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 131
Page No 134
Claudius, who was to take across a fleet of fifty vesselsall quinqueremesand exercise the same powers as
Scipio. Etruria fell to M. Servilius. C. Servilius who had held that province had his command extended in
case the senate should require his presence in Rome. The praetors were distributed as follows: M. Sextius
received Gaul and P. Quintilius Varus was to hand over two legions which he had there; C. Livius was to
hold Bruttium with the two legions which P. Sempronius had commanded there the year before; Cnaeus
Tremellius was sent to Sicily and took over the two legions from P. Villius Tappulus, the praetor of the
previous year; Villius in the capacity of propraetor was furnished with twenty warships and 1000 men for the
protection of the Sicilian coast; M. Pomponius was to send 1500 men to Rome in the twenty remaining ships.
The City jurisdiction passed into the hands of C. Aurelius Cotta. The other commands were unchanged.
Sixteen legions were considered sufficient this year for the defence of the dominion of Rome. In order that all
things might be undertaken and carried out with the favour of the gods, it was decided that before the consuls
took the field they should celebrate the Games and offer the sacrifices which T. Manlius the Dictator had
vowed during the consulship of M. Claudius Marcellus and T. Quinctius, if the republic should maintain its
position unimpaired for five years. The Games were celebrated in the Circus, the celebration lasting four
days, and the victims vowed to the several deities were duly sacrificed.
All through this time there was a growing tension of feeling, hopes and fears alike were becoming stronger.
Men could not make up their minds whether they had more to rejoice over in the fact that at the end of
sixteen years Hannibal had finally evacuated Italy and left the unchallenged possession of it to Rome, or
more to fear from his having landed in Africa with his military strength unimpaired. "The seat of danger,"
they said, "is changed, but not the danger itself. Quintus Fabius, who has just died, foretold how great the
struggle would be when he declared in oracular tones that Hannibal would be a more formidable foe in his
own country than he had been on alien soil. Scipio has not to do with Syphax, whose subjects are
undisciplined barbarians and whose army was generally led by Statorius, who was little more than a camp
menial, nor with Syphax's elusive fatherinlaw, Hasdrubal nor with a halfarmed mob of peasants hastily
collected from the fields. It is Hannibal whom he has to meet, who was all but born in the headquarters of his
father, that bravest of generals; reared and brought up in the midst of arms, a soldier whilst still a boy, and
when hardly out of his teens in high command. He has passed the prime of his manhood in victory after
victory and has filled Spain and Gaul and Italy from the Alps to the southern sea with memorials of mighty
deeds. The men he is leading are his contemporaries in arms, steeled by innumerable hardships such as it is
hardly credible that men can have gone through, bespattered, times without number, with Roman blood, laden
with spoils stripped from the bodies, not of common soldiers only, but even of commandersinchief. Scipio
will meet many on the field of battle who with their own hands have slain the praetors, the commanders, the
consuls of Rome, and who are now decorated with mural and vallarian wreaths after roaming at will through
the camps and cities of Rome which they captured. All the fasces borne before Roman magistrates today are
not so many in number as those which Hannibal might have had borne before him, taken on the field of battle
when the commanderinchief was slain." By dwelling on such gloomy prognostications they increased their
fears and anxieties. And there was another ground for apprehension. They had been accustomed to seeing war
going on first in one part of Italy and then in another without much hope of its being soon brought to a close.
Now, however, all thoughts were turned on Scipio and Hannibal, they seemed as though purposely pitted
against each other for a final and decisive struggle. Even those who felt the greatest confidence in Scipio and
entertained the strongest hopes that he would be victorious became more nervous and anxious as they realised
that the fateful hour was approaching. The Carthaginians were in a very similar mood. When they thought of
Hannibal and the greatness of the deeds he had done they regretted that they had sued for peace, but when
they reflected that they had been twice worsted in the open field, that Syphax was a prisoner, that they had
been driven out of Spain and then out of Italy, and that all this was the result of one man's resolute courage,
and that man Scipio, they dreaded him as though he had been destined from his birth to be their ruin.
Hannibal had reached Hadrumetum where he remained a few days for his men to recover from the effects of
the voyage, when breathless couriers announced that all the country round Carthage was occupied by Roman
arms. He at once hurried by forced marches to Zama. Zama is a five days' march from Carthage. The scouts
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 132
Page No 135
whom he had sent forward to reconnoitre were captured by the Roman outposts and conducted to Scipio.
Scipio placed them in charge of the military tribunes and gave orders for them to be taken round the camp
where they were to look at everything they wished to see without fear. After asking them whether they had
examined all to their satisfaction, he sent them back with an escort to Hannibal. The report they gave was
anything but pleasant hearing for him, for as it happened Masinissa had on that very day come in with a force
of 6000 infantry and 4000 cavalry. What gave him most uneasiness was the confidence of the enemy which
he saw too clearly was not without good grounds. So, although he had been the cause of the war, though his
arrival had upset the truce and diminished the hope of any peace being arranged, he still thought that he
would be in a better position to obtain terms if he were to ask for peace while his strength was still unbroken
than after a defeat. Accordingly he sent a request to Scipio to grant him an interview. Whether he did this on
his own initiative or in obedience to the orders of his government I am unable to say definitely. Valerius
Antius says that he was defeated by Scipio in the first battle with a loss of 12,000 killed and 1700 taken
prisoners, and that after this he went in company with ten delegates to Scipio's camp. However this may be,
Scipio did not refuse the proposed interview, and by common agreement the two commanders advanced their
camps towards each other that they might meet more easily. Scipio took up his position not far from the city
of Naragarra on ground which, in addition to other advantages, afforded a supply of water within range of
missiles from the Roman lines. Hannibal selected some rising ground about four miles away, a safe and
advantageous position, except that water had to be obtained from a distance. A spot was selected midway
between the camps, which, to prevent any possibility of treachery, afforded a view on all sides.
When their respective escorts had withdrawn to an equal distance, the two leaders advanced to meet each
other, each accompanied by an interpreterthe greatest commanders not only of their own age but of all who
are recorded in history before their day, the peers of the most famous kings and commanders that the world
had seen. For a few moments they gazed upon one another in silent admiration. Hannibal was the first to
speak. "If," he said, "Destiny has so willed it that I, who was the first to make war on Rome and who have so
often had the final victory almost within my grasp, should now be the first to come to ask for peace, I
congratulate myself that Fate has appointed you, above all others, as the one from whom I am to ask it.
Amongst your many brilliant distinctions this will not be your smallest title to fame, that Hannibal, to whom
the gods have given the victory over so many Roman generals, has yielded to you, that it has fallen to your
lot to put an end to a war which has been more memorable for your defeats than for ours. This is indeed the
irony of fortune, that after taking up arms when your father was consul, and having him for my opponent in
my first battle, it should be his son to whom I come unarmed to ask for peace. It would have been far better
had the gods endowed our fathers with such a disposition that you would have been contented with the
sovereignty of Italy, whilst we were contented with Africa. As it is, even for you, Sicily and Sardinia are no
adequate compensation for the loss of so many fleets, so many armies, and so many splendid generals. But it
is easier to regret the past than to repair it. We coveted what belonged to others, consequently we had to fight
for our own possessions; not only has war assailed you in Italy and us in Africa, but you have seen the arms
and standards of an enemy almost within your gates and on your walls while we hear in Carthage the murmur
of the Roman camp. So the thing which we detest most of all, which you would have wished for before
everything, has actually come about, the question of peace is raised when your fortunes are in the ascendant.
We who are most concerned in securing peace are the ones to propose it, and we have full powers to treat,
whatever we do here our governments will ratify. All we need is a temper to discuss things calmly. As far as I
am concerned, coming back to a country which I left as a boy, years and a chequered experience of good and
evil fortune have so disillusioned me that I prefer to take reason rather than Fortune as my guide. As for you,
your youth and unbroken success will make you, I fear, impatient of peaceful counsels. It is not easy for the
man whom Fortune never deceives to reflect on the uncertainties and accidents of life. What I was at
Thrasymenus and at Cannae, that you are today. You were hardly old enough to bear arms when you were
placed in high command, and in all your enterprises, even the most daring, Fortune has never played you
false. You avenged the deaths of your father and your uncle, and that disaster to your house became the
occasion of your winning a glorious reputation for courage and filial piety. You recovered the lost provinces
of Spain after driving four Carthaginian armies out of the country. Then you were elected consul, and whilst
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 133
Page No 136
your predecessors had hardly spirit enough to protect Italy, you crossed over to Africa, and after destroying
two armies and capturing and burning two camps within an hour, taking the powerful monarch Syphax
prisoner, and robbing his dominions and ours of numerous cities you have at last dragged me away from Italy
after I had kept my hold upon it for sixteen years. It is quite possible that in your present mood you should
prefer victory to an equitable peace; I, too, know the ambition which aims at what is great rather than at what
is expedient; on me, too, a fortune such as yours once shone. But if in the midst of success the gods should
also give us wisdom, we ought to reflect not only on what has happened in the past but also upon what may
happen in the future. To take only one instance, I myself am a sufficient example of the fickleness of fortune.
Only the other day I had placed my camp between your city and the Anio and was advancing my standards
against the walls of Romehere you see me, bereaved of my two brothers, brave soldiers and brilliant
generals as they were, in front of the walls of my native place which is all but invested, and begging on behalf
of my city that it may be spared the fate with which I have threatened yours. The greater a man's good fortune
the less ought he to count upon it. Success attends you and has deserted us, and this will make peace all the
more splendid to you who grant it; to us who ask for it it is a stern necessity rather than an honourable
surrender. Peace once established is a better and safer thing than hoping for victory; that is in your hands, this
in the hands of the gods. Do not expose so many years' good fortune to the hazard of a single hour. You think
of your own strength, but think too of the part which fortune plays and the even chances of battle. On both
sides there will be swords and men to use them, nowhere does the event less answer expectation than in war.
Victory will not add so much to the glory which you can now win by granting peace, as defeat will take away
from it. The chances of a single hour can annihilate all the honours you have gained and all you can hope for.
If you cement a peace, P. Cornelius, you are master of all, otherwise you will have to accept whatever fortune
the gods send you. M. Atilius Regulus on this very soil would have afforded an almost unique instance of the
success which waits on merit, had he in the hour of victory granted peace to our fathers when they asked for
it. But as he would set no bounds to his prosperity, nor curb his elation at his good fortune, the height to
which he aspired only made his fall the more terrible.
"It is for him who grants peace, not for him who seeks it, to name the terms, but perhaps it may not be
presumptuous in us to assess our own penalty. We consent to everything remaining yours for which we went
to warSicily, Sardinia, Spain and all the islands that lie between Africa and Italy. We Carthaginians,
confined within the shores of Africa, are content, since such is the will of the gods, to see you ruling all
outside our frontiers by sea and land as your dominions. I am bound to admit that the lack of sincerity lately
shown in the request for peace and in the nonobservance of the truce justified your suspicions as to the good
faith of Carthage. But, Scipio, the loyal observance of peace depends largely upon the character of those
through whom it is sought. I hear that your senate have sometimes even refused to grant it because the
ambassadors were not of sufficient rank. Now it is Hannibal who seeks it, and I should not ask for it if I did
not believe it to be advantageous to us, and because I believe it to be so I shall keep it inviolate. As I was
responsible for beginning the war and as I conducted it in a way which no one found fault with until the gods
were jealous of my success, so I shall do my utmost to prevent any one from being discontented with the
peace which I shall have been the means of procuring."
To these arguments the Roman commander made the following reply: "I was quite aware, Hannibal, that it
was the hope of your arrival that led the Carthaginians to break the truce and cloud all prospect of peace. In
fact, you yourself admit as much, since you are eliminating from the terms formerly proposed all that has not
already been long in our power. However, as you are anxious that your countrymen should realise what a
great relief you are bringing them, I must make it my care that they shall not have the conditions they
formerly agreed to struck out today as a reward for their perfidy. You do not deserve to have the old
proposals still open and yet you are seeking to profit by dishonesty! Our fathers were not the aggressors in the
war for Sicily, nor were we the aggressors in Spain, but the dangers which threatened our Mamertine allies in
the one case and the destruction of Saguntum in the other made our case a righteous one and justified our
arms. That you provoked the war in each case you yourself admit, and the gods bear witness to the fact; they
guided the former war to a just and righteous issue, and they are doing and will do the same with this one. As
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 134
Page No 137
for myself, I do not forget what weak creatures we men are; I do not ignore the influence which Fortune
exercises and the countless accidents to which all our doings are liable. Had you of your own free will
evacuated Italy and embarked your army before I sailed for Africa and then come with proposals for peace, I
admit that I should have acted in a highhanded and arbitrary spirit if I had rejected them. But now that I
have dragged you to Africa like a reluctant and tricky defendant I am not bound to show you the slightest
consideration. So then, if in addition to the terms on which peace might have been concluded previously,
there is the further condition of an indemnity for the attack on our transports and the illtreatment of our
envoys during the armistice, I shall have something to lay before the councils. If you consider this
unacceptable. then prepare for war as you have been unable to endure peace." Thus, no understanding was
arrived at and the commanders rejoined their armies. They reported that the discussion had been fruitless, that
the matter must be decided by arms, and the result left to the gods.
On their return to their camps, the commandersinchief each issued an order of the day to their troops.
"They were to get their arms ready and brace up their courage for a final and decisive struggle; if success
attended them they would be victors not for a day only but for all time; they would know before the next day
closed whether Rome or Carthage was to give laws to the nations. For not Africa and Italy onlythe whole
world will be the prize of victory. Great as is the prize, the peril in case of defeat will be as great. "For no
escape lay open to the Romans in a strange and unknown land; and Carthage was making her last effort, if
that failed, her destruction was imminent. On the morrow they went out to battlethe two most brilliant
generals and the two strongest armies that the two most powerful nations possessedto crown on that day the
many honours they had won, or for ever lose them. The soldiers were filled with alternate hopes and fears as
they gazed at their own and then at the opposing lines and measured their comparative strength with the eye
rather than the mind, cheerful and despondent in turn. The encouragement which they could not give to
themselves their generals gave them in their exhortations. The Carthaginian reminded his men of their sixteen
years' successes on Italian soil, of all the Roman generals who had fallen and all the armies that had been
destroyed, and as he came to each soldier who had distinguished himself in any battle, he recounted his
gallant deeds. Scipio recalled the conquest of Spain and the recent battles in Africa and showed up the
enemies' confession of weakness, since their fears compelled them to sue for peace and their innate
faithlessness prevented them from abiding by it. He turned to his own purpose the conference with Hannibal,
which being private allowed free scope for invention. He drew an omen and declared that the gods had
vouchsafed the same auspices to them as those under which their fathers fought at the Aegates. The end of
the war and of their labours, he assured them, had come; the spoils of Carthage were in their hands, and the
return home to their wives and children and household gods. He spoke with uplifted head and a face so
radiant that you might suppose he had already won the victory.
Then he drew up his men, the hastati in front, behind them the principes, the triarii closing the rear. He did
not form the cohorts in line before their respective standards, but placed a considerable interval between the
maniples in order that there might be space for the enemy elephants to be driven through without breaking the
ranks. Laelius, who had been one of his staffofficers and was now by special appointment of the senate
acting as quaestor, was in command of the Italian cavalry on the left wing, Masinissa and his Numidians
being posted on the right. The velites, the light infantry of those days, were stationed at the head of the lanes
between the columns of maniples with instructions to retire when the elephants charged and shelter
themselves behind the lines of maniples, or else run to the right and left behind the standards and so allow the
monsters to rush on to meet the darts from both sides. To make his line look more menacing Hannibal posted
his elephants in front. He had eighty altogether, a larger number, than he had ever brought into action before.
Behind them were the auxiliaries, Ligurians and Gauls, with an admixture of Balearics and Moors. The
second line was made up of Carthaginians and Africans together with a legion of Macedonians. A short
distance behind these were posted his Italian troops in reserve. These were mainly Bruttians who had
followed him from Italy more from the compulsion of necessity than of their own free will. Like Scipio,
Hannibal covered his flanks with his cavalry, the Carthaginians on the right, the Numidians on the left.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 135
Page No 138
Different words of encouragement were required in an army composed of such diverse elements, where the
soldiers had nothing in common, neither language nor custom nor laws nor arms nor dress, nor even the
motive which brought them into the ranks. To the auxiliaries he held out the attraction of the pay which they
would receive, and the far greater inducement of the booty they would secure. In the case of the Gauls he
appealed to their instinctive and peculiar hatred of the Romans. The Ligurians, drawn from wild mountain
fastnesses, were told to look upon the fruitful plains of Italy as the rewards of victory. The Moors and
Numidians were threatened by the prospect of being under the unbridled tyranny of Masinissa. Each
nationality was swayed by its hopes or fears. The Carthaginians had placed before their eyes, their city walls,
their homes, their fathers' sepulchres, their wives and children, the alternative of either slavery and
destruction or the empire of the world. There was no middle course, they had either everything to hope for or
everything to fear. Whilst the commanderinchief was thus addressing the Carthaginians, and the officers of
the various nationalities were conveying his words to their own people and to the aliens mingled with them
mostly through interpreters, the trumpets and horns of the Romans were sounded and such a clangor arose
that the elephants, mostly those in front of the left wing, turned upon the Moors and Numidians behind them.
Masinissa had no difficulty in turning this disorder into flight and so clearing the Carthaginian left of its
cavalry. A few of the animals, however, showed no fear and were urged forward upon the ranks of velites,
amongst whom, in spite of the many wounds they received, they did considerable execution. The velites, to
avoid being trampled to death, sprang back to the maniples and thus allowed a path for the elephants, from
both sides of which they rained their darts on the beasts. The leading maniples also kept up a fusillade of
missiles until these animals too were driven out of the Roman lines on to their own side and put the
Carthaginian cavalry, who were covering the right flank, to flight. When Laelius saw the enemy's horse in
confusion he at once took advantage of it.
When the infantry lines closed, the Carthaginians were exposed on both flanks, owing to the flight of the
cavalry, and were losing both confidence and strength. Other circumstances, too, seemingly trivial in
themselves but of considerable importance in battle, gave the Romans an advantage. Their cheers formed one
united shout and were therefore fuller and more intimidating; those of the enemy, uttered in many languages,
were only dissonant cries. The Romans kept their foothold as they fought and pressed the enemy by the sheer
weight of their arms and bodies; on the other side there was much more agility and nimbleness of foot than
actual fighting strength. As a consequence, the Romans made the enemy give ground in their very first
charge, then pushing them back with their shields and elbows and moving forward on to the ground from
which they had dislodged them, they made a considerable advance as though meeting with no resistance.
When those in the rear became aware of the forward movement they too pressed on those in front thereby
considerably increasing the weight of the thrust. This retirement on the part of the enemy's auxiliaries was not
checked by the Africans and Carthaginians who formed the second line. In fact, so far were they from
supporting them that they too fell back, fearing lest the enemy, after overcoming the obstinate resistance of
the first line. should reach them. On this the auxiliaries suddenly broke and turned tail; some took refuge
within the second line, others, not allowed to do so, began to cut down those who refused to admit them after
refusing to support them. There were now two battles going on, the Carthaginians had to fight with the
enemy, and at the same time with their own troops. Still, they would not admit these maddened fugitives
within their ranks, they closed up and drove them to the wings and out beyond the fighting ground, fearing
lest their fresh and unweakened lines should be demoralised by the intrusion of panicstruck and wounded
men.
The ground where the auxiliaries had been stationed had become blocked with such heaps of bodies and arms
that it was almost more difficult to cross it than it had been to make way through the masses of the enemy.
The hastati who formed the first line followed up the enemy, each man advancing as best he could over the
heaps of bodies and arms and the slippery bloodstained ground until the standards and maniples were all in
confusion. Even the standards of the principes began to sway to and fro when they saw how irregular the line
in front had become. As soon as Scipio observed this he ordered the call to be sounded for the hastati to
retire, and after withdrawing the wounded to the rear he brought up the principes and triarii to the wings, in
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 136
Page No 139
order that the hastati in the centre might be supported and protected on both flanks. Thus the battle began
entirely afresh, as the Romans had at last got to their real enemies, who were a match for them in their arms,
their experience and their military reputation, and who had as much to hope for and to fear as themselves.
The Romans, however, had the superiority in numbers and in confidence, since their cavalry had already
routed the elephants and they were fighting with the enemy's second line after defeating his first.
Laelius and Masinissa, who had followed up the defeated cavalry a considerable distance, now returned from
the pursuit at the right moment and attacked the enemy in the rear. This at last decided the action. The enemy
were routed, many were surrounded and killed in action, those who dispersed in flight over the open country
were killed by the cavalry who were in possession of every part. Above 20,000 of the Carthaginians and their
allies perished on that day and almost as many were made prisoners. 132 standards were secured and 11
elephants. The victors lost 1500 men. Hannibal escaped in the melee with a few horsemen and fled to
Hadrumetum. Before quitting the field he had done everything possible in the battle itself and in the
preparation for it. Scipio himself acknowledged and all experienced soldiers agreed that Hannibal had shown
singular skill in the disposition of his troops. He placed his elephants in front so that their irregular charge
and irresistible force might make it impossible for the Romans to keep their ranks and maintain the order of
their formation, in which their strength and confidence mainly lay. Then he posted the mercenaries in front of
his Carthaginians, in order that this motley force drawn from all nations, held together not by a spirit of
loyalty but by their pay, might not find it easy to run away. Having to sustain the first onset they might wear
down the impetuosity of the enemy, and if they did nothing else they might blunt his sword by their wounds.
Then came the Carthaginian and African troops, the mainstay of his hopes. They were equal in all respects to
their adversaries and even had the advantage inasmuch as they would come fresh into action against a foe
weakened by wounds and fatigue. As to the Italian troops, he had his doubts as to whether they would turn
out friends or foes and withdrew them consequently into the rearmost line. After giving this final proof of his
great abilities, Hannibal fled, as has been stated, to Hadrumetum. From here he was summoned to Carthage,
to which city he returned thirtysix years after he had left it as a boy. He told the senate frankly that he had
lost not a battle merely but the whole war, and that their only chance of safety lay in obtaining peace.
From the battlefield Scipio proceeded at once to storm the enemies' camp, where an immense quantity of
plunder was secured. He then returned to his ships, having received intelligence that P. Lentulus had arrived
off Utica with 50 warships and 100 transports loaded with supplies of every kind. Laelius was sent to carry
the news of the victory to Scipio, who, thinking that the panic in Carthage ought to be increased by
threatening the city on all sides, ordered Octavius to march the legions thither overland while he himself
sailed from Utica with his old fleet strengthened by the division which Lentulus had brought, and steered for
the harbour of Carthage. As he was approaching it he was met by a vessel hung with bands of white wool and
branches of olive. In it there were the ten foremost men of the State, who, on Hannibal's advice, had been sent
as an embassy to sue for peace. As soon as they were near the stern of the general's vessel they held up the
suppliant emblems, and made imploring appeals to Scipio for his pity and protection. The only answer
vouchsafed them was that they were to go to Tunis, as Scipio was about to move his army to that place.
Keeping on his course he entered the harbour of Carthage in order to survey the situation of the city, not so
much for the purpose of acquiring information as of discouraging the enemy. He then sailed back to Utica
and recalled Octavius thither also. As the latter was on his way to Tunis he was informed that Vermina, the
son of Syphax, was coming to the aid of the Carthaginians with a force consisting mainly of cavalry.
Octavius attacked the Numidians whilst on the march with a portion of his infantry and the whole of his
cavalry. The action took place on December I7, and soon ended in the utter rout of the Numidians. As they
were completely surrounded by the Roman cavalry all avenues of escape were closed; 15,000 were killed and
1200 taken prisoners, 1500 horses were also secured and 72 standards. The prince himself escaped with a few
horsemen. The Romans then reoccupied their old position at Tunis, and here an embassy consisting of thirty
delegates had an interview with Scipio. Though they adopted a much humbler tone than on the previous
occasion, as indeed their desperate condition demanded, they were listened to with much less sympathy on
account of their recent breach of faith. At first the council of war, moved by a righteous indignation, were in
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 137
Page No 140
favour of the complete destruction of Carthage. When, however, they reflected on the greatness of the task
and the length of time which the investment of so strong and wellfortified a city would occupy, they felt
considerable hesitation. Scipio himself too was afraid that his successor might come and claim the glory of
terminating the war, after the way had been prepared for it by another man's toils and dangers. So there was a
unanimous verdict in favour of peace being made.
The next day the envoys were again summoned before the council and severely taken to task for their want of
truth and honesty, and they were admonished to lay to heart the lesson taught by their numerous defeats and
to believe in the power of the gods and the sanctity of oaths. The conditions of peace were then stated to
them. They were to be a free State, living under their own laws; all the cities, all the territory and all the
frontiers that they had held before the war they were to continue to hold, and the Romans would on that day
cease from all further depredations. They were to restore to the Romans all the deserters, refugees and
prisoners, to deliver up their warships, retaining only ten triremes and all their trained elephants, at the same
time undertaking not to train any more. They were not to make war either within or beyond the frontiers of
Africa without the permission of Rome. They were to restore all his possessions to Masinissa and make a
treaty with him. Pending the return of the envoys from Rome they were to supply corn and pay to the
auxiliaries in the Roman army. They were also to pay a war indemnity of 10,000 talents of silver, the
payment to be in equal annual instalments, extending over fifty years. One hundred hostages were to be
handed over, to be selected by Scipio between the ages of fourteen and thirty years. Finally, he undertook to
grant them an armistice if the transports which had been seized during the previous truce were restored with
all that they contained. Otherwise there would be no armistice, nor any hopes of peace.
When the envoys brought these terms back and laid them before the Assembly, Gisgo came forward and
protested against any proposals for peace. The populace, alike opposed to peace and incapable of war, were
giving him a favourable hearing when Hannibal, indignant at such arguments being urged at such a crisis,
seized him and dragged him by main force off the platform. This was an unusual sight in a free community,
and the people were loud in their disapproval. The soldier, taken aback by the free expression of opinion on
the part of his fellowcitizens, said, "I left you when I was nine years old, and now after thirtysix years'
absence I have returned. The art of war which I have been taught from my boyhood, first as a private soldier
and then in high command, I think I am fairly well acquainted with. The rules and laws and customs of civic
life and of the forum I must learn from you." After this apology for his inexperience, he discussed the terms
of peace and showed that they were not unreasonable and that their acceptance was a necessity. The greatest
difficulty of all concerned the transports seized during the armistice, for nothing was to be found but the ships
themselves, and any investigation would be difficult, as those who would be charged were the opponents of
peace. It was decided that the ships should be restored and that in any case search should be made for the
crews. It was left to Scipio to put a value on whatever else was missing and the Carthaginians were to pay the
amount in cash. According to some writers, Hannibal went down to the coast straight from the battlefield, and
going on board a ship which was in readiness, set sail immediately for the court of King Antiochus, and when
Scipio insisted before all else upon his surrender, he was told that Hannibal was not in Africa.
After the return of the envoys to Scipio the quaestors received instructions to make an inventory from the
public registers of all the government property in the transports, and all the private property was to be notified
by the owners. Twentyfive thousand pounds of silver were required to be paid down as an equivalent for the
pecuniary value, and a three months' armistice granted to the Carthaginians. A further stipulation was made
that as long as the armistice was in force, they should not send envoys to any place but Rome, and if any
envoys came to Carthage they were not to allow them to leave until the Roman commander had been
informed of the object of their visit. The Carthaginians envoys were accompanied to Rome by L. Veturius
Philo, M. Marcius Ralla and L. Scipio the commanderinchief's brother. During this time the supplies
which arrived from Sicily and Sardinia made provisions so cheap that the traders left the corn for the sailors
in return for its freight. The first news of the resumption of hostilities by Carthage created considerable
uneasiness in Rome. Tiberius Claudius was ordered to take a fleet without loss of time to Sicily and from
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 138
Page No 141
there to Africa; the other consul was ordered to remain in the City until the position of affairs in Africa was
definitely known. Tib. Claudius was extremely slow in getting his fleet ready and putting out to sea, for the
senate had decided that Scipio rather than he, though consul, should be empowered to fix the terms on which
peace should be granted. The general alarm at the tidings from Africa was increased by rumours of various
portents. At Cumae the sun's disk was seen to diminish in size and there was a shower of stones; in the
district of Veliternum the ground subsided and immense caverns were formed in which trees were swallowed
up; at Aricia the forum and the shops round it were struck by lightning, as were also portions of the walls of
Frusino and one of the gates; there was also a shower of stones on the Palatine. The latter portent was
expiated, according to the traditional usage, by continuous prayer and sacrifice for nine days, the others by
sacrifice of fullgrown victims. In the middle of all these troubles there was an extraordinarily heavy rainfall
which was also regarded as supernatural. The Tiber rose so high that the Circus was flooded and
arrangements were made to celebrate the Games of Apollo outside the Colline Gate at the temple of Venus
Erucina. On the actual day, however, the sky suddenly cleared and the procession which had started for the
Colline Gate was recalled and conducted to the Circus as it was announced that the water had subsided. The
return of the solemn spectacle to its proper place added to the public joy and also to the number of spectators.
At last the consul took his departure from the City. He was, however, caught in a violent storm between the
ports of Cosa and Loretum, and was in the greatest danger, but he succeeded in making the harbour of
Populonia, where he remained at anchor till the tempest wore itself out. From there he sailed to Elba, then on
to Corsica and from there to Sardinia. Here, whilst rounding the Montes Insani, he was caught in a much
more violent storm and off a much more dangerous coast. His fleet was scattered, many of his vessels were
dismantled and sprang leaks, some were totally wrecked. With his fleet thus tempesttossed and shattered he
found shelter at Caralis. Whilst he was repairing his ships here winter overtook him. His year of office
expired, and as he received no extension of command he brought his fleet back to Rome in a private capacity.
Before leaving for his province M. Servilius named C. Servilius Dictator in order to avoid being recalled to
conduct the elections. The Dictator appointed P. Aelius Paetus Master of the Horse. In spite of various dates
being fixed for the elections the weather prevented them from being held. Consequently, when the
magistrates went out of office on March 14 no new ones had been appointed and the republic was without
any curule magistrates. The pontifex T. Manlius Torquatus died this year and his place was filled by C.
Sulpicius Galba. The Roman Games were celebrated three times by the curule aediles L. Licinius Lucullus
and Q. Fulvius. Some of the secretaries and messengers of the aediles were found guilty on the evidence of
witnesses of abstracting money from the aediles' chest and Lucullus was seriously compromised in the
matter. The plebeian aediles, P. Aelius Tubero and L. Laetorius, were found to have been irregularly
appointed and resigned office. Before this happened, however, they had celebrated the Plebeian Games and
the festival of Jupiter and had also placed in the Capitol three statues made out of the silver paid in fines. The
Dictator and the Master of the Horse were authorised by the senate to celebrate the Games in honour of
Ceres.
On the arrival of the Roman commissioners from Africa, simultaneously with that of the Carthaginians, the
senate met at the temple of Bellona. L. Veturius Philo reported that Carthage had made her last effort, a battle
had been fought with Hannibal and an end had at last been put to this disastrous war. This announcement was
received by the senators with huge delight, and Veturius reported a further success though comparatively an
unimportant one, namely the defeat of Vermina, the son of Syphax. He was ordered to go to the Assembly
and make the people sharers in the good news. Amidst universal congratulations all the temples in the City
were thrown open and public thanksgivings were ordered for three days. The envoys from Carthage and those
from Philip who had also arrived, requested an audience of the senate. The Dictator, at the instance of the
senate, informed them that the new consuls would grant them one. The elections were then held and Cnaeus
Cornelius Lentulus and P. Aelius Paetus were made consuls. The praetors elected were M. Junius Pennus, to
whom the City jurisdiction was allotted; M. Valerius Falto, to whom Bruttium fell; M. Fabius Buteo, who
received Sardinia, and P. Aelius Tubero, to whom the ballot gave Sicily. As to the consuls' provinces it was
agreed that nothing should be done until Philip's envoys and those from Carthage had obtained an audience.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 139
Page No 142
No sooner was one war at an end than there was the prospect of another commencing. The consul Cnaeus
Lentulus was keenly desirous of obtaining Africa as his province; if the war should continue, he looked
forward to an easy victory; if it were coming to an end he was anxious to have the glory of terminating so
great a struggle. He gave out that he would not allow any business to be transacted until Africa had been
decreed to him as his province. His colleague being a moderate and sensible man gave way, he saw that to
attempt to wrest Scipio's glory from him would be not only unjust but hopeless. Two of the tribunes of the
plebsQ. Minucius Thermus and Manlius Acilius Glabriodeclared that Cnaeus Cornelius was attempting to
do what Tiberius Claudius had failed to do, and that after the senate had authorised the question of the
supreme command in Africa to be referred to the Assembly, the thirtyfive tribes had unanimously decreed it
to Scipio. After numerous debates both in the senate and in the assembly it was finally settled to leave the
matter to the senate. It was arranged that the senators should vote on oath, and their decision was that the
consuls should come to a mutual understanding, or failing that, should resort to the ballot, as to which of
them should have Italy and which should take command of the fleet of fifty vessels. The one to whom the
fleet was assigned was to sail to Sicily, and if it proved impossible to make peace with Carthage, he was to
proceed to Africa. The consul was to act by sea; Scipio, retaining his full powers, was to conduct the
campaign on land. If the terms of peace were agreed upon the tribunes of the plebs were to ask the people
whether it was their will that peace should be granted by the consul or by Scipio. And also if the victorious
army was to be brought away from Africa, they were to decide who should bring it. Should the people resolve
that peace was to be concluded through Scipio and that he was also to bring the army back, then the consul
was not to sail for Africa. The other consul, who had Italy for his province, was to take over two legions from
the praetor M. Sextius.
Scipio received an extension of his command and retained the armies he had in Africa. The two legions in
Bruttium which had been under C. Livius were transferred to the praetor M. Valerius Falto and the two
legions in Sicily under Cnaeus Tremellius were to be taken over by the praetor P. Aelius. The legion in
Sardinia, commanded by the propraetor P. Lentulus, was assigned to M. Fabius. M. Servilius, the consul of
the previous year, was continued in command of his two legions in Etruria. With regard to Spain, L.
Cornelius Lentulus and L. Manlius Acidinus had been there for some years and the consuls were to arrange
with the tribunes to ask the Assembly to decide who should command in Spain. The general appointed was to
form one legion of Romans out of the two armies and fifteen cohorts of Latin allies, with which to hold the
province, and L. Cornelius and L. Manlius were to bring the old soldiers home. Whichever consul received
Africa as his province was to select fifty ships out of the two fleets, i.e., the one which Cnaeus Octavius was
commanding in African waters and the one with which P. Villius was guarding the Sicilian seaboard. P.
Scipio was to keep the forty warships which he had. Should the consul wish Cn. Octavius to continue in
command of his fleet, he would take rank as propraetor; if he gave the command to Laelius, then Octavius
was to leave for Rome and bring back the ships which the consul did not want. Ten warships were also
assigned to M. Fabius for Sardinia. In addition to the abovementioned troops the consuls were ordered to
raise two City legions so that there might be fourteen legions and one hundred ships of war at the disposal of
the republic for the year.
Then the admission of the embassies from Philip and the Carthaginians was discussed. It was decided that the
Macedonians should be introduced first. Their address dealt with various points. They began by disclaiming
all responsibility for the depredations on the friendly countries of which the Roman envoys had complained
to the king. Then they themselves brought charges against the allies of Rome and a much more serious one
against M. Aurelius, one of the three envoys, who they said had stayed behind and after raising a body of
troops commenced hostilities against them in violation of treaty rights, and fought several engagements with
their commanders. They ended with a demand that the Macedonians with their general Sopater who had
served as mercenaries under Hannibal and were then prisoners in chains should be restored to them. In reply,
M. Furius, who had been sent from Macedonia by Aurelius to represent him, pointed out that Aurelius had
certainly been left behind, but it was for the purpose of preventing the allies of Rome from being driven to
secede to the king in consequence of the injuries and depredations from which they were suffering. He had
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 140
Page No 143
not overstepped their frontiers; he had made it his business to see that no hordes of plunderers crossed those
frontiers with impunity. Sopater, who was one of the purpleclad nobles who stood near the throne and was
related to the monarch, had recently been sent to Africa to assist Hannibal and Carthage with money and also
with a force of 4000 Macedonians.
On being questioned as to these matters the Macedonians gave unsatisfactory and evasive replies, and
consequently the answer they received from the senate was anything but favourable. They were told that their
king was looking for war, and if he went on as he was doing, he would very soon find it. He had been guilty
of a twofold breach of treaty, for he had committed wanton aggression on the allies of Rome by hostile arms
and he had also aided the enemies of Rome with men and money. Scipio was acting rightly and legitimately
in treating those taken in arms against Rome as enemies and keeping them in chains. M. Aurelius also was
acting in the interests of the Stateand the senate thanked him for itwhen he afforded armed protection to
the allies of Rome since treaty rights were powerless for their defence. With this stern reply the Macedonian
envoys were dismissed. Then the Carthaginians were called in. As soon as their age and rank were
recognised, for they were quite the foremost men in the State, the senators remarked that now it was really a
question of peace. Conspicuous amongst them all was Hasdrubal, on whom his countrymen had bestowed the
sobriquet of "Haedus." He had always been an advocate of peace and an opponent of the Barcine party. This
gave his words additional weight when he disavowed all responsibility for the war on behalf of his
government and fastened it on a few ambitious and grasping individuals.
His speech was discursive and eloquent. He repudiated some of the charges, others he admitted lest
unabashed denials of established facts might lead to less consideration being shown. He warned the senators
to use their good fortune in a spirit of moderation and selfrestraint. "If," he continued, "the Carthaginians
had listened to Hanno and myself and had been willing to take advantage of their opportunity, they would
have dictated the terms of peace which now they are seeking from you. Seldom are good fortune and good
sense granted to men at the same time. What makes Rome invincible is the fact that her people do not lose
their sound judgment in the hour of prosperity. And indeed it would be a matter for surprise were it
otherwise, for those to whom good fortune is a novelty go mad with unrestrained delight because they are
unused to it, but to you Romans the joy of victory is a usual, I might almost say a commonplace experience.
It is by clemency towards the conquered more than by conquest itself that you have extended your
dominion." The others spoke in language more calculated to evoke compassion. They reminded their
audience of the powerful and influential position from which Carthage had fallen. Those, they said, who
lately held almost the whole world subject to their arms had nothing now left to them but their city walls.
Confined within these they saw nothing on land or sea which owned their sway. Even their city and their
hearths and homes they would only keep if the Roman people were willing to spare them; if not, they lost
everything. As it became evident that the senators were moved with compassion, one of them, exasperated by
the perfidy of the Carthaginians, is said to have called out, "By what gods will you swear to observe the
treaty, since you have been false to those by whom you swore before?" "By the same as before," Hasdrubal
replied, "since they visit their wrath on those who violate treaties."
Whilst all were in favour of peace the consul Cnaeus Lentulus, who was in command of the fleet, prevented
the House from passing any resolution. Thereupon, two tribunes of the plebs, Manius Acilius and Q.
Minucius, at once brought the questions before the people: Was it their will and pleasure that the senate
should pass a decree for the conclusion of peace with Carthage? Who was to grant the peace? and Who was
to bring away the army from Africa? On the question of peace all the tribes voted in the affirmative; they also
made an order that Scipio should grant the peace and bring the army home. In pursuance of this decision the
senate decreed that P. Scipio should, in agreement with the ten commissioners, make peace with the people or
Carthage on such terms as he thought right. On this the Carthaginians expressed their thanks to the senators,
and begged that they might be allowed to enter the City and converse with their fellowcountrymen who
were detained as Stateprisoners. These were members of the nobility, some of them their own friends and
relations, and others there were for whom they had messages from their friends at home. When this was
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 141
Page No 144
arranged they made a further request that they might be allowed to ransom any of the prisoners whom they
wished. They were told to furnish the names, and they gave in about two hundred. The senate then passed a
resolution that a commission should be appointed to take back to P. Scipio in Africa two hundred of the
prisoners whom the Carthaginians had selected and to inform him that if peace were established he was to
restore them to the Carthaginians without ransom. When the fetials received orders to proceed to Africa for
the purpose of striking the treaty they requested the senate to define the procedure. The senate accordingly
decided upon this formula: "The fetials shall take with them their own flints and their own herbs; when a
Roman praetor orders them to strike the treaty they shall demand the sacred herbs from him." The herbs
given to the fetials are usually taken from the Citadel. The Carthaginian envoys were at length dismissed and
returned to Scipio. They concluded peace with him on the terms mentioned above, and delivered up their
warships, their elephants, the deserters and refugees and 4000 prisoners including Q. Terentius Calleo, a
senator. Scipio ordered the ships to be taken out to sea and burnt. Some authorities state that there were 500
vessels, comprising every class propelled by oars. The sight of all those vessels suddenly bursting into flames
caused as much grief to the people as if Carthage itself were burning. The deserters were dealt with much
more severely than the fugitives; those belonging to the Latin contingents were beheaded, the Romans were
crucified.
The last time peace was concluded with Carthage was in the consulship of Q. Lutatius and A. Manlius, forty
years previously. Twentythree years afterwards the war began in the consulship of P. Cornelius and Tiberius
Sempronius. It ended in the consulship of Cnaeus Cornelius and P. Aelius Paetus, seventeen years later.
Tradition tells of a remark which Scipio is said to have frequently made to the effect that it was owing to the
jealous ambition of Tiberius Claudius and afterwards to that of Cnaeus Cornelius that the war did not end
with the destruction of Carthage. Carthage found a difficulty in meeting the first instalment of the war
indemnity as her treasury was exhausted. There was lamentation and weeping in the senate and in the middle
of it all Hannibal is said to have been seen smiling. Hasdrubal Haedus rebuked him for his mirth amid the
nation's tears. "If," Hannibal replied, "you could discern my inmost thoughts as plainly as you can tell the
expression of my countenance you would easily discover that this laughter which you find fault with does not
proceed from a merry heart but from one almost demented with misery. All the same, it is very far from being
so illtimed as those foolish and misplaced tears of yours. The proper time to weep was when we were
deprived of our arms, when our ships were burnt, when we were interdicted from all war beyond our
frontiers. That is the wound that will prove fatal. There is not the slightest reason for supposing that the
Romans are consulting your peace and quietness. No great State can remain quiet; if it has no enemy abroad
it finds one at home, just as excessively strong men, whilst seemingly safe from outside mischief, fall victims
to the burden of their own strength. Of course we only feel public calamities so far as they affect us
personally, and nothing in them gives us a sharper pang than the loss of money. When the spoils of victory
were being dragged away from Carthage when you saw yourselves left naked and defenceless amidst an
Africa in arms, nobody uttered a groan; now because you have to contribute to the indemnity from your
private fortunes you lament as loudly as though you were present at your country's funeral. I greatly fear that
you will very soon find that it is the least of your misfortunes which you are shedding tears over today." Such
was the way in which Hannibal spoke to the Carthaginians. Scipio summoned his troops to assembly, and in
the presence of the whole army rewarded Masinissa by adding to his ancestral realm the town of Cirta and the
other cities and districts which had belonged to the dominion of Syphax and had passed under the rule of
Rome. Cnaeus Octavius received instructions to take the fleet to Sicily and hand it over to the consul Cnaeus
Cornelius. Scipio told the Carthaginian envoys to start for Rome in order that the arrangements he had made
in consultation with the ten commissioners might receive the sanction of the senate and the formal order of
the people.
As peace was now established on land and sea Scipio embarked his army and sailed to Lilybaeum. From
there he sent the greater part of his army on in the ships, whilst he himself travelled through Italy. The
country was rejoicing quite as much over the restoration of peace as over the victory he had won, and he
made his way to Rome through multitudes who poured out from the cities to do him honour, and crowds of
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War 142
Page No 145
peasants who blocked the roads in the country districts. The triumphal procession in which he rode into the
City was the most brilliant that had ever been seen. The weight of silver which he brought into the treasury
amounted to 123,000 pounds. Out of the booty he distributed forty ases to each soldier. Syphax had died
shortly before at Tibur whither he had been transferred from Alba, but his removal, if it detracted from the
interest of the spectacle, in no way dimmed the glory of the triumphing general. His death, however, provided
another spectacle, for he received a public funeral. Polybius, an authority of considerable weight, says that
this king was led in the procession. Q. Terentius Culleo marched behind Scipio wearing the cap of liberty,
and in all his afterlife honoured as was meet the author of his freedom. As to the sobriquet of Africanus,
whether it was conferred upon him by the devotion of his soldiers or by the popular breath, or whether as in
the recent instances of Sylla the Fortunate and Pompey the Great it originated in the flattery of his friends, I
cannot say for certain. At all events, he was the first commanderinchief who was ennobled by the name of
the people he had conquered. Since his time men who have won far smaller victories have in imitation of him
left splendid inscriptions on their busts and illustrious names to their families.
End of Book 30
Book 31. Rome and Macedon
I, too, feel as much relief in having reached the end of the Punic War as if I had taken a personal part in its
toils and dangers. It ill befits one who has had the courage to promise a complete history of Rome to find the
separate sections of such an extensive work fatiguing. But when I consider that the sixtythree years from the
beginning of the First Punic War to the end of the Second take up as many books as the four hundred and
eightyseven years from the foundation of the City to the consulship of Appius Claudius under whom the
First Punic War commenced, I see that I am like people who are tempted by the shallow water along the
beach to wade out to sea; the further I progress, the greater the depth, as though it were a bottomless sea, into
which I am carried. I imagined that as I completed one part after another the task before me would diminish;
as it is, it almost becomes greater. The peace with Carthage was very soon followed by war with Macedonia.
There is no comparison between them as regards the critical nature of the contest, or the personality of the
commander or the fighting quality of the troops. But the Macedonian war was, if anything, more noteworthy
owing to the brilliant reputation of the former kings, the ancient fame of the nation and the vast extent of its
dominion when it held sway over a large part of Europe and a still larger part of Asia. The war with Philip
which had commenced some ten years previously had been suspended for the last three years, and both the
war and its cessation were due to the action of the Aetolians. The peace with Carthage now left the Romans
free. They were angry with Philip for his attacking the Aetolians and the other friendly States in Greece while
he was nominally at peace with Rome, and also for his having given assistance in both men and money to
Hannibal and Carthage. He had ravaged the Athenian territory and driven the inhabitants into the city, and it
was their request for help which decided the Romans to recommence the war.
Just about the same time envoys arrived from King Attalus and also from Rhodes with the information that
Philip was trying to gain the States of Asia Minor. The reply made to both deputations was that the situation
in Asia was engaging the attention of the senate. The question of war with Macedonia was referred to the
consuls, who were at the time in their respective provinces. In the meanwhile, C. Claudius Nero, M. Aemilius
Lepidus and P. Sempronius Tuditanus were sent on a mission to Ptolemy, king of Egypt, to announce the
final defeat of Hannibal and the Carthaginians and to thank the king for having remained a staunch friend to
Rome at a critical time, when even her nearest allies deserted her. They were further to request him, in case
Philip's aggressions compelled them to declare war against him, that he would maintain his old friendly
attitude towards the Romans. During this period P. Aelius, the consul who was commanding in Gaul, learnt
that the Boii, prior to his arrival, had been raiding the territories of friendly tribes. He hastily raised a force of
two legions in view of this disturbance and strengthened it with four cohorts from his own army. This force,
thus hurriedly collected, he entrusted to C. Ampius, a prefect of allies, and ordered him to march through the
canton of Umbria called Sapinia and invade the country of the Boii. He himself marched over the mountains
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 143
Page No 146
by an open road. Ampius crossed the enemy's frontier, and after devastating his country without meeting any
resistance, he selected a position at the fortified post of Mutilum as a suitable place for cutting the corn which
was now ripe. He commenced the task without previously examining the neighbourhood or posting armed
parties in sufficient strength to protect the foragers, who had laid aside their weapons and were intent on their
work. Suddenly he and his foragers were surprised by the Gauls who appeared on all sides. The panic and
disorder extended to the men on guard; 7000 men who were dispersed through the cornfields were killed,
amongst them C. Ampius himself, the rest fled to the camp. The following night the soldiers, as they had no
regular commander, decided to act for themselves, and leaving most of their possessions behind made their
way through almost impassable forests to the consul. Beyond ravaging the Boian country and making a
league with the Ligurian Ingauni the consul did nothing worth mentioning in his province before his return to
Rome.
At the first meeting of the senate after his return there was a general demand that the action of Philip and the
grievances of the friendly States should take precedence of all other business. The question was at once put in
a crowded House and a decree was made that the consul P. Aelius should send the man whom he thought
best, with full command to take over the fleet which Cn. Octavius was bringing back from Africa and
proceed to Macedonia. He selected M. Valerius Laevinus, who was sent with the rank of propraetor.
Laevinus took thirtyeight of Octavius' ships which were lying at anchor off Vibo and with these he sailed
for Macedonia. He was met by M. Aurelius, who gave him details about the strength of the land and sea
forces which the king had got together and the extent to which he was securing armed assistance not only
from the cities on the mainland, but also from the islands in the Aegean, partly by his own personal influence,
partly through his agents. Aurelius pointed out that the Romans would have to display far greater energy in
the prosecution of this war, or else Philip, encouraged by their slackness, would venture on the same
enterprise which Pyrrhus, whose kingdom was considerably smaller, had ventured on before. It was decided
that Aurelius should send this information in a despatch to the consuls and the senate.
Towards the close of the year the question was brought up as to the holdings which were to be assigned to the
veteran soldiers who had served with Scipio in Africa. The senator decreed that M. Junius, the City praetor,
should at his discretion appoint ten commissioners for the purpose of measuring and allotting that portion of
the Samnite and Apulian territory which had become State domain. The commissioners were P. Servilius, Q.
Caecilius Marcellus, the two Servilii, Caius and Marcuswho were known as "The Twins"the two Hostilii
Catones, Lucius and Aulus, P. Villius Tappulus, M. Fulvius Flaccus, P. Aelius Paetus and T. Quinctius
Flamininus. The elections were conducted by the consul P. Aelius. The consulselect were P. Sulpicius
Galba and C. Aurelius Cotta. The new praetors were Q. Minucius Rufus, L. Furius Purpureo, Q. Fulvius Gillo
and C. Sergius Plancus. The Roman Scenic Games were celebrated this year with unusual splendour by the
curule aediles, L. Valerius Flaccus and T. Quinctius Flamininus, and were repeated for a second day. They
also distributed to the people with strict impartiality and to the general satisfaction a vast quantity of corn
which Scipio had sent from Africa. It was sold at four ases the modius. The Plebeian Games were also
exhibited on three separate occasions by the aediles L. Apustius Fullo and Q. Minucius Rufus; the latter after
serving his aedileship was one of the newlyelected praetors. The Festival of Jupiter was also celebrated.
In the 551st year from the foundation of the City, during the consulship of P. Sulpicius Galba and C. Aurelius
and within a few months of the conclusion of peace with Carthage, the war with King Philip began. On
March 15, the day on which the consuls entered office, P. Sulpicius made this the first business before the
senate. A decree was made that the consuls should sacrifice fullgrown victims to those deities whom they
might decide upon, and should offer up the following prayer: "May the will and purpose of the senate and
people of Rome as regards the commonwealth and the entrance upon a new war have a prosperous and happy
issue both for the Roman people and for the Latin allies!" After the sacrifice and prayer the consuls were to
consult the senate as to the policy to be pursued and the allocation of provinces. Just at this time the
warspirit was stimulated by the receipt of the despatches from M. Aurelius and M. Valerius Laevinus as
well as by a fresh embassy from Athens which announced that the king was nearing their frontiers and would
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 144
Page No 147
soon be master of their territory and of their city as well if Rome did not come to the rescue. The consuls
reported the due performance of the sacrifices and the declaration of the augurs that the gods had listened to
their prayer, for the victims had given favourable omens and portended victory, triumph, and an enlargement
of the dominion of Rome. Then the despatches from Valerius and Aurelius were read and an audience given
to the Athenian envoys. A resolution was passed by the senate that thanks be given to their allies for
remaining loyal in spite of continual attempts to seduce them and even when threatened with a siege. With
regard to giving active assistance the senate deferred a definite answer until the consuls had balloted for their
provinces, and the one to whom the Macedonian province fell had submitted to the people the question of
declaring war against Philip of Macedon.
This province fell to P. Sulpicius, and he gave notice that he should propose to the Assembly that "owing to
the lawless actions and armed attacks committed against the allies of Rome, it is the will and order of the
Roman people that war be proclaimed against Philip, King of Macedonia, and against his people, the
Macedonians." The other consul, Aurelius, received Italy for his province. Then the praetors balloted for their
respective commands. C. Sergius Plancus drew the City; Q. Fulvius Gillo, Sicily; Q. Minucius Rufus,
Bruttium, and L. Furius, Gaul. The proposed declaration of war against Macedonia was almost unanimously
rejected at the first meeting of the Assembly. The length and exhausting demands of the late war had made
men weary of fighting and they shrank from incurring further toils and dangers. One of the tribunes of the
plebs, Q. Baebius, too, had adopted the old plan of abusing the patricians for perpetually sowing the seeds of
fresh wars to prevent the plebeians from ever enjoying any rest. The patricians were extremely angry and the
tribune was bitterly attacked in the senate, each of the senators in turn urging the consul to call another
meeting of the Assembly to consider the proposal afresh and at the same time to rebuke the people for their
want of spirit and show them what loss and disgrace would be entailed by the postponement of that war.
The Assembly was duly convened in the Campus Martius, and before the question was put to the vote, the
consul addressed the centuries in the following terms: "You seem to be unaware, Quirites, that what you have
to decide is not whether you will have peace or war; Philip will not leave you any option as to that, he is
preparing war on an enormous scale both by land and sea. The only question is whether you will transport the
legions into Macedonia or wait for the enemy in Italy. You have learnt by experience, if not before, at all
events in the late Punic War, what a difference it makes which you decide upon. When Saguntum was
beseiged and our allies were imploring us for help, who doubts that if we had sent prompt assistance, as our
fathers did to the Mamertines, we should have confined within the borders of Spain that war which, most
disastrously for ourselves, we allowed through procrastination to enter Italy. Why, this very Philip had
entered into an agreement with Hannibal through his agents and in his despatches that he would invade Italy,
and there is not the smallest doubt that we kept him in Macedonia by sending Laevinus with a fleet to take
the offensive against him. Are we hesitating to do now what we did then, when we had Hannibal for our
enemy in Italynow that Hannibal has been driven out of Italy and out of Carthage, and Carthage itself is
completely vanquished? If we allow the king to make proof of our slackness by storming Athens as we
allowed Hannibal to do by storming Saguntum, it will not be in five monthsthe time Hannibal took from
Saguntumbut in five days after he sails from Corinth that he will set foot in Italy.
"Perhaps you do not put Philip on a par with Hannibal or consider the Macedonians equal to the
Carthaginians. At all events you will consider him the equal of Pyrrhus. Equal, do I say? How greatly the one
man surpasses the other, how superior is the one nation to the other! Epirus always has been and is today a
very small accession to the kingdom of Macedonia. The whole of the Peloponnese is under the sway of
Philip, not excepting even Argos, famous for the death of Pyrrhus, quite as much as for its ancient glory. Now
compare our position. Consider the flourishing state of Italy when all those generals and armies were safe and
sound which have been since swept away by the Punic War. And yet when Pyrrhus attacked it, he shook it to
its foundations and all but reached Rome itself in his victorious career! Not only did the Tarentines revolt
from us and the whole of that coastal district of Italy called Magna Graecia, which you would naturally
suppose would follow a leader of the same language and nationality as themselves, but the Lucanians, the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 145
Page No 148
Bruttians and the Samnites did the same. Do you suppose that if Philip landed in Italy, these nations would
remain quiet and true to us? They showed their loyalty, I suppose, in the Punic War. No, those nations will
never fall to revolt from us, unless there is no longer any one to whom they can revolt. If you had thought it
too much to go to Africa you would have had Hannibal and his Carthaginians in Italy today. Let Macedonia
rather than Italy be the seat of war, let it be the enemy's cities and fields that are devastated with fire and
sword. We have learnt by this time that our arms are more potent and more successful abroad than they are at
home. Go to the poll with the help of the gods, and confirm the decision of the senate. It is not your consul
only who urges you to take this course, the immortal gods also bid you do it, for when I was offering up the
sacrifices and praying that this war might end happily for the senate, for myself, for you, for our allies and
Latin confederates, for our fleets and armies, the gods vouchsafed every cheering and happy omen."
After this speech they separated for the voting. The result was in favour of the consul's proposal, they
resolved on war. Thereupon, the consuls, acting on a resolution of the senate, ordered special prayers and
supplications for three days, and at all the shrines intercessions were offered up that the war which the Roman
people had ordered against Philip might have a happy and prosperous issue. The fetials were consulted by the
consul as to whether it was necessary for the declaration of war to be conveyed personally to King Philip, or
whether it would be sufficient if it were published in one of his frontier garrison towns. They declared that
either mode of procedure would be correct. The senate left it to the consul to select at his discretion one of
them, not being a member of the senate, to make the declaration of war. The next business was the formation
of the armies for the consuls and praetors. The consuls were ordered to disband the old armies and, each of
them, to raise two fresh legions. As the conduct of the new war, which was felt to be a very serious one, was
entrusted to Sulpicius, he was allowed to reenlist as volunteers as many as he could out of the army which P.
Scipio had brought back from Africa, but on no account to compel any of the veterans to join against his will.
The consuls were to give to each of the praetors, L. Furius Purpurio and Q. Minucius Rufus, 5000 men from
the Latin contingents as an army of occupation for their provinces, the one in Gaul, the other in Bruttium. Q.
Fulvius Gallo also was ordered to select men belonging to the Latin and allied contingents from the army
which the consul P. Aelius had commanded, beginning with those who had seen the shortest service until he
had made up a force of 5000 men. This army was for the defence of Sicily. M. Valerius Falto, who had had
Campania for his province during the previous year, was to make a similar selection from the army in
Sardinia, which province he was to take charge of as propraetor. The consuls received instructions to raise
two legions in the City as a reserve to be sent wherever there was need for their services, as many of the
Italian nationalities had taken the side of Carthage in the late war, and were seething with anger.
In the midst of these preparations for war a deputation came from King Ptolemy to bring information that the
Athenians had sought his aid against Philip. Although both States were allies of Rome, the king would notso
the deputies statedsend either fleet or army to Greece to protect or attack any one without the consent of
Rome. If the Romans were at liberty to defend their allies he should remain quietly in his kingdom; if on the
other hand the Romans preferred to remain inactive he would himself send such assistance as would easily
protect the Athenians against Philip. The senate passed a vote of thanks to the king and assured the deputation
that it was the intention of the Roman people to protect their allies; if the need arose they would point it out to
the king, and they were fully aware that the resources of his kingdom would prove a steady and loyal support
for their commonwealth. To each of the deputies the senate presented 5000 ases. While the consuls were
raising troops and preparing for war, the citizens were occupied with religious observances, especially those
which were usual when a fresh war began. The special intercessions and prayers at all the shrines had been
duly offered, but that nothing might be omitted the consul to whom Macedonia was allotted was authorised to
vow Games in honour of Jupiter and an offering to his temple. This matter was delayed through the action of
the Pontifex Maximus, Licinius, who laid it down that no vow ought to be made unless the sum required to
discharge it was paid, because the money so appropriated could not be used in connection with the war, and
ought to be at once set apart and not mixed up with other money. Unless this were done, the vow could not be
duly discharged. Although the pontiff's authority and the reasons he gave had great weight, the consul was
instructed to refer the question to the whole pontifical college as to whether a vow could be properly
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 146
Page No 149
undertaken when the expense incurred was left uncertain. The pontiffs declared that it could, and would be
made with even greater propriety under these conditions. The consul recited the words of the vow after the
Pontifex Maximus in the same form in which vows to be discharged after an interval of five years were
usually recited, the exception being that the senate was to determine the cost of its fulfilment at the time when
it was discharged. Up to this time when the Games and offerings were vowed a definite sum had always been
named; this was the first instance where the cost was not fixed at the time.
Whilst all men's minds were turned to the Macedonian war, rumours suddenly arose of an outbreak of the
Gauls, the last thing that was apprehended. The Insubres and Cenomani in conjunction with the Boii, who
had induced the Celines and Ilvates and the other Ligurian tribes to join them, had taken up arms under
Hamilcar, a Carthaginian general, who had held a command in Hasdrubal's army and had remained in the
country. They had stormed and sacked Placentia and in their blind rage had destroyed most of the city by fire,
hardly 2000 men being left amid the smoking ruins. Thence, crossing the Po, they advanced with the
intention of sacking Cremona. Hearing of the disaster which had overtaken their neighbours the townsmen
had time to close their gates and man their walls so that they might, at all events, be able to stand a siege and
send a message to the Roman praetor before the final assault. I,. Furius Purpureo was in charge of that
province at the time, and acting under the resolution of the senate had disbanded his army, retaining only
5000 from the Latin and allied contingents. With this force he was encamped in the neighbourhood of
Ariminum. In a despatch to the senate he described the serious condition of his province; of the two military
colonies which had weathered the terrible storm of the Punic War one was taken and destroyed by the enemy
and the other was being attacked. His own army could not render assistance to the colonists in their distress
unless he was willing to expose his 5000 allied troops to be massacred by the 40,000 of the enemythat
number was under armsand by incurring such a fatal disaster himself raise the courage of the enemy who
were exulting over the destruction of a Roman colony.
After the despatch had been read the senate decreed that the consul C. Aurelius should order his army to
muster at Ariminum on the day which he had previously fixed for their muster in Etruria. If the state of public
affairs allowed, he was to go in person to suppress the disturbance, otherwise, he was to send instructions to
L. Furius requesting him, as soon as the legions reached him, to send his 5000 of the allied contingent to
replace them in Etruria, and then raise the siege of Cremona. The senate also decided to send a mission to
Carthage and to Masinissa in Numidia. Their instructions for Carthage were to inform the government that
Hamilcar, one of their citizens who had come with either Hasdrubal's or Mago's army, had been left behind
and in defiance of the treaty had persuaded the Gauls and Ligurians to take up arms against Rome. If they
wished to remain at peace they must recall him and surrender him to the Romans. The commissioners were
also to announce that the deserters had not all been given up, a great many of them were stated to be openly
walking about in Carthage; it was the duty of the authorities to find them out and arrest them in order that
they might be handed over in accordance with the treaty. These were their instructions for Carthage. To
Masinissa they were to convey the senate's congratulations on his having recovered his ancestral kingdom
and still more upon his having extended it by the annexation of the richest portion of Syphax's dominions.
They were also to inform him that a war had been undertaken against Philip in consequence of his having lent
the Carthaginians active assistance, and when Italy was wrapped in the flames of war he had inflicted injuries
on the allies of Rome. She was thus compelled to send ships and armies to Greece, and by thus dividing her
forces Philip was primarily the cause of the delay in sending an expedition to Africa. The commissioners
were further to request Masinissa to assist in that war by sending a contingent of Numidian horse. Some
splendid presents were placed in their charge for the kinggold and silver vases, a purple robe, a tunica
palmata together with an ivory sceptre, also a toga praetexta together with a curule chair. They were
instructed to assure him that if he required anything for the security and extension of his kingdom and would
intimate what he wanted, the Roman people would do their utmost to meet his wishes in return for the
services he had rendered.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 147
Page No 150
A deputation from Syphax's son, Vermina, also appeared before the senate. They made excuses for his
mistakes on the ground of his youth and threw all the blame on the faithlessness of the Carthaginians.
Masinissa had once been the enemy and had now become the friend of Rome; Vermina, too, they said, would
make every effort not to be outdone in friendly offices to Rome either by Masinissa or by any one else. They
ended by petitioning the senate to confer on him the title of "king, ally and friend." The reply which the
deputation received was to the effect that "Syphax, his father, had suddenly without any reason become an
enemy to the people of Rome after being their ally and friend, and that Vermina himself had commenced his
military education by an attack on the Romans. He must therefore sue for peace before he could have any title
to be styled 'king, ally and friend.' The Roman people were accustomed to confer that honourable distinction
in return for great services which kings have rendered to them. The Roman envoys would shortly be in Africa
and the senate would empower them to grant peace to Vermina on certain conditions, providing that he left
the fixing of those conditions absolutely to the Roman people. If he wanted anything added or cancelled or
altered in the terms he must make a fresh appeal to the senate." The men who were sent to conduct these
negotiations were C. Terentius Varro, Sp. Lucretius and Cn. Octavius; and they had each a quinquereme
placed at their disposal.
A despatch was read in the House from Q. Minucius, the praetor commanding in Bruttium, in which he stated
that money had been stolen by night from the treasury of Proserpine at Locri and there was no clue to the
perpetrators of the crime. The senate were extremely angry at finding that acts of sacrilege were still going on
and that not even the example of Pleminius, notorious alike for the guilt and the punishment which so swiftly
followed, acted in any way as a deterrent. C. Aurelius was instructed to write to the praetor and tell him that
the senate wished an enquiry to be made into the circumstances of the robbery on the same lines as the one
which the praetor M. Pomponius had conducted three years previously. Whatever money was discovered was
to be replaced, and the deficit made up; and should it be thought necessary expiatory sacrifices were to be
offered in accordance with the instructions of the pontiffs on the previous occasions. Their anxiety to atone
for the violation of the temple was made all the keener by the simultaneous announcements of portents from
numerous localities. In Lucania it was alleged that the heavens had been on fire; at Privernum the sun had
been glowing red through the whole of a cloudless day; at the temple of Juno Sospita in Lanuvium a terrible
noise was heard in the night. Numerous monstrous births were also reported amongst the Sabines a child was
born of doubtful sex; another similar case was discovered where the child was already sixteen years old; at
Frusino a lamb was yeaned with a head like a pig; at Sinuessa a pig was littered with a human head, and on
the public domainland in Lucania a foal appeared with five feet. These were all regarded as horrid and
monstrous products of a nature which had gone astray to produce strange and hybrid growths; the
hermaphrodites were looked upon as of especially evil omen and were ordered to be at once carried out to sea
just as quite recently in the consulships of C. Claudius and M. Nero similar illomened births had been
disposed of. At the same time the senate ordered the decemvirs to consult the Sacred Books about this
portent. Following the instructions found there, they ordered the same ceremonies to be observed as on the
occasion of its last appearance. A hymn was to be sung through the City by three choirs, each consisting of
nine maidens, and a gift was to be carried to Queen Juno. The consul C. Aurelius saw that the instructions of
the Keepers of the Sacred Books were carried out. The hymn in our fathers' days was composed by Livius, on
this occasion by P. Licinius Tegula.
When all the acts of expiation had been duly performed, and the sacrilege at Locri had been investigated by
Q. Minucius, and the money, recovered from the sale of the goods of the guilty persons, had been replaced in
the treasury, the consuls were now anxious to start for their provinces, but a delay arose. A number of persons
had lent money to the State during the consulship of M. Valerius and M. Claudius, and the repayment of the
third instalment was due this year. The consuls informed them that the money in the treasury would hardly
meet the cost of the new war, which would have to be carried on with a large fleet and large armies and that
there was no means of paying them for the present. They appealed to the senate and pleaded that if the State
chose to use the money which was lent for the Punic War to defray the cost of the Macedonian War also, and
one war arose out of another, it would simply mean that their money would be confiscated in return for the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 148
Page No 151
service they had rendered as though it had really been an injury. The senate acknowledged that they had a
grievance. The creditors' demands were just, but the State was unable to meet its liabilities and the senate
decided upon a course which was fair to both sides and of practical utility. Many of the applicants had stated
that there was land everywhere for sale and they wanted to become purchasers; the senate accordingly made a
decree that they should have the option of taking any part of the public domainland within fifty miles of the
City. The consuls would value the land and impose a nominal tax of one as per jugerum as acknowledgment
of its being public land, and when the State could pay its debts any of them who wished to have his money
rather than the land could have it and restore the land to the people. They gladly accepted these terms, and the
land thus occupied was called trientabulus because it was given in lieu of a third part of their loan.
After the recital of the customary prayers in the Capitol P. Sulpicius was invested by his lictors with the
paludamentum and left the City for Brundisium. Here he incorporated into his legions the veterans who had
volunteered out of the African army, and also selected the vessels out of the fleet under Cn. Cornelius. Then
he set sail, and the next day he landed in, Greece. Here he was met by an embassy from Athens who begged
him to raise the siege which that city was undergoing. C. Claudius Cento was at once despatched thither with
20 warships and 1000 men. The king was not personally directing the siege, he was just then attacking
Abydos, after trying his strength in naval encounters with the Rhodians and with Attalus, and in neither battle
had he been successful. But his was not a nature to accept defeat quietly, and now that he had leagued himself
with Antiochus, king of Syria, he was more determined on war than ever. They had agreed to divide the rich
kingdom of Egypt between them, and on hearing of the death of Ptolemy they both prepared to attack it. The
Athenians, who retain nothing of their ancient greatness but their pride, had become involved in hostilities
with Philip through a quite unimportant incident. During the celebration of the Eleusinian Mysteries two
young Acarnanians who had not been initiated entered the temple of Ceres with the rest of the crowd, quite
unaware of the sacrilegious nature of their action. They were betrayed by the silly questions which they
asked, and were brought before the temple authorities. Though it was quite evident that they had sinned in
ignorance, they were put to death as though guilty of a horrible crime. The Acarnanians reported this hostile
and barbarous act to Philip and obtained his consent to their making war on Athens supported by a
Macedonian contingent. Their army began by laying the land of Attica waste with fire and sword, after which
they returned to Acarnania with plunder of every description. So far there was only anger and exasperation on
both sides, subsequently, by a decree of the citizens, Athens made a formal declaration of war. For when
King Attalus and the Rhodians who were following up Philip in his retreat to Macedonia had reached Aegina,
the king sailed across to the Piraeus for the purpose of renewing and confirming his alliance with the
Athenians. The whole body of the citizens came out to meet him with their wives and children; the priests in
their sacred robes received him as he entered the city; even the gods themselves were almost summoned from
their shrines to welcome him.
The people were at once summoned to an assembly, in order that the king might lay his wishes before them.
It was, however, thought to be more in accordance with his dignity that he should put what he wanted into
writing, rather than let his blushes be called up by having to recount his services to the city or his modesty be
shocked by the fulsome flattery of the applauding crowd. Accordingly he drew up a written statement which
was read in the assembly, in which he enumerated the benefits he had conferred on their city and described
his contest with Philip, and urged them in conclusion to take their part in the war while they had him and the
Rhodians and, now especially, the Romans to support them. If they hung back now they would never have
such an opportunity again. Then the envoys from Rhodes were heard; they had quite lately done a good turn
for the Athenians, for they had recaptured and sent back to Athens four Athenian warships which the
Macedonians had taken. War against Philip was unanimously decided upon. Extraordinary honours were paid
to King Attalus and also to the Rhodians. A proposal was carried to add to the old ten tribes a new one to be
called the Attalis tribe. The people of Rhodes were presented with a golden crown in recognition of their
bravery, and the full citizenship was granted to them just they had previously granted it to the Athenians.
After this Attalus rejoined his fleet at Aegina and the Rhodians sailed to Cia, and from there made their way
home through the Cyclades. All the islands joined them with the exception of Andros, Paros and Cythnos
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 149
Page No 152
which were held by Macedonian garrisons. Attalus had sent messengers to Aetolia and was waiting for the
envoys who were coming from there; their nonarrival kept him inactive for some time. He could not induce
the Aetolians to take up arms, they were only too glad to remain at peace with Philip on any terms. But had
he in conjunction with the Rhodians vigorously opposed Philip, they might have won the glorious title of
Liberators of Greece. Instead of this, they allowed him to cross the Hellespont a second time and seize an
excellent position in Thrace where he could concentrate his forces, and thus they gave fresh life to the war
and surrendered the glory of bringing it to a close the Romans.
Philip showed a more kingly spirit. Though he had not held his own against Attalus and the Rhodians he was
not alarmed even at the prospect of a war with Rome. Philocles, one of his generals, was sent with a force of
2000 infantry and 200 cavalry to ravage the lands of the Athenians, and Heraclides was placed in charge of
the fleet with instructions to sail for Maronea. Philip himself marched thither overland with 2000 men in light
marching order, and took the place at the first assault. Aenos gave him a good deal of trouble, but he finally
effected its capture through the treachery of Callimedes, who was holding the place for Ptolemy. Cypsela,
Doriscos and Serrheum were taken in rapid succession and he then advanced to the Chersonese where Elaeus
and Alopeconnesus voluntarily surrendered. Callipolis and Madytos fell through treachery; together with
some other unimportant fortified places. The people of Abydos would not even admit his envoys and closed
their gates against the king. The siege of this place detained Philip for a considerable time, and if Attalus and
the Rhodians had shown the smallest energy they might have saved the place. Attalus sent only 300 men to
assist in the defence and the Rhodians despatched one quadrireme out of their fleet which was lying at anchor
off Tenedos. Later on, when they could hardly hold out any longer, Attalus himself sailed to Tenedos, and
after raising their hopes by his approach did not afford his allies any assistance either by land or sea.
The Abydenes in the first instance placed engines all along their walls and in this way not only prevented any
approach by land, but also made the anchorage of the hostile ships unsafe. When, however, a portion of the
wall was battered into ruins and the enemies' mines had been carried up to an inner wall which the defenders
had hastily constructed, they sent envoys to the king to arrange terms for the surrender of the city. They
proposed that the Rhodian quadrireme with its crew and the contingent which Attalus had sent should be
allowed to depart and that the inhabitants should be permitted to leave the city with simply the clothes they
were wearing. Philip replied that there was not the slightest hope of peace unless they surrendered
unconditionally. When this reply was brought back it created such an outburst of indignation and rage that the
citizens formed the same frenzied resolution as the Saguntines had done in former years. They gave orders
for all the matrons to be shut up in the temple of Diana, the freeborn boys and girls, even infants with their
nurses to be collected in the gymnasium, all gold and silver to be taken to the forum, all costly apparel to be
placed on board the vessels from Rhodes and Cyzicus which were lying in the harbour, and altars set up in
the middle of the city, round which the priests were to be assembled with victims for sacrifice. Here a body of
men, selected for the purpose, took an oath dictated to them by the priests, to carry out the desperate measure
which had been decided upon. As soon as they saw that their comrades who were fighting in front of the
levelled wall were all killed, they were to put the wives and children to death, throw the gold and silver and
the apparel on board the ships into the sea and set fire wherever they possibly could to all the public buildings
and private houses, and the most horrible curses were invoked on them if they broke their oath. Following
them, all the men of military age solemnly swore that none should leave the battle alive, except as victor. So
faithful were they to their oath and with such desperation did they fight, that before night could put an end to
the battle, Philip withdrew from the conflict appalled by their frenzied courage. The leading citizens, to
whom the more cruel part had been assigned, finding that there were only a few survivors, and they wounded
and exhausted, sent the priests, wearing supplicatory fillets, as soon as it was light to Philip to make a
surrender of the city.
Before the surrender actually took place, the Roman envoys who had been sent to Alexandria heard of the
siege of Abydos, and the youngest of the three, M. Aemilius, went at the suggestion of his colleagues to
Philip. He remonstrated against the war that had been made on Attalus and the Rhodians, and especially
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 150
Page No 153
against the attack on Abydos. On the king replying that Attalus and the Rhodians had been the aggressors he
asked, "Were the people of Abydos also the first to take up arms?" To one who seldom heard the truth this
language seemed too bold to address to a king. "Your youth, your good looks and, above all, the fact of your
being a Roman make you too venturesome. It is my wish that you should remember treaty obligations and
keep the peace with me, but if you begin the attack, I too am quite ready to fight, and you will find the
kingdom and name of Macedon no less renowned in war than those of Rome." After dismissing thus the
envoy Philip took possession of the gold and silver which had been collected, but he lost all chance of
making prisoners. For such a madness fell on the people that they believed that all who had met their death in
battle had been suddenly betrayed, and they accused one another of perjury, especially the priests, for they
were surrendering to the enemy those whom they had devoted to death. Seized by one sudden impulse they
all rushed off to kill their wives and children, and then they inflicted death upon themselves in every possible
form. The king was utterly astounded at this outburst of madness and called off his men from the assault,
telling them that he would allow the people of Abydos three days in which to die. During this interval the
vanquished wrought more horrors upon themselves than the victors would have done, however infuriated
they might have been. Not a single man fell into the hands of the enemy alive, save those for whom chains or
some other cause beyond their control made death impossible. After leaving a force in occupation of Abydos,
Philip returned to his kingdom. As the destruction of Saguntum strengthened Hannibal's resolve to war
against Rome, so the fall of Abydos encouraged Philip to do the same. On his way he was met by couriers
who announced that the consul was now in Epirus and was wintering his troops in Apollonia and his naval
force at Corcyra.
The envoys who had been sent to Africa to report the action of Hamilcar in assuming the leadership of the
Gauls were informed by the Carthaginian government that they could do nothing more than sentence him to
banishment and confiscate his property; all the refugees and deserters whom after careful search they had
been able to discover had been given up, and they intended to send envoys to Rome to give satisfactory
assurances on this point. They sent 200,000 modii of wheat to Rome and a similar amount to the army in
Macedonia. From Carthage the legates proceeded to Numidia to visit the two kings. The presents destined for
Masinissa were given to him and the message delivered from the senate. He offered to furnish 2000 horse,
but only 1000 were accepted, and he personally superintended their embarkation. With them he sent to
Macedonia 2,000,000 modii of wheat and the same quantity of barley. The third mission was to Vermina. He
came to meet them at the frontier of his kingdom and left it to them to put in writing what conditions of peace
they wanted, assuring them that any peace with Rome he should look upon as fair and advantageous. The
terms were handed to him, and he was instructed to send commissioners to Rome to obtain their ratification.
About this time L. Cornelius Lentulus returned from Spain where he had been acting as proconsul. After
giving a report of the successful operations which he had conducted there for several years, he asked to be
allowed to enter the City in triumph. The senate were of opinion that his services quite deserved a triumph,
but they reminded him that there was no precedent for a general who had not been Dictator or consul or
praetor enjoying a triumph, and he had held his command in Spain as proconsul, not as consul or praetor.
However, they went so far as to allow him to enter the City in ovation, in spite of the opposition of Tiberius
Sempronius Longus, one of the tribunes of the plebs, who said that there was no precedent or customary
authority for that any more than for the other. In the end he gave way before the unanimous feeling of the
senate, and after they had passed their resolution, Lentulus enjoyed his ovation. 43,000 pounds of silver and
2450 pounds of gold, captured from the enemy, were carried in the procession. Out of the spoil he distributed
120 ases to each of his men.
By this time the consular army in Gaul had been transferred from Arretium to Ariminum, and the 5000 men
of the Latin contingent had moved from Gaul into Etruria. L. Furius accordingly left Ariminum and hastened
by forced marches to Cremona which the Gauls were at the time besieging. He fixed his camp a mile and a
half distant from the enemy and would have had a chance of winning a brilliant victory if he had led his men
straight from their march against the Gaulish camp. The Gauls were scattered over the fields in all directions
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 151
Page No 154
and the camp had been left insufficiently guarded. But he was afraid that his men would be too much fatigued
after their rapid march, and the shouts of the Gauls recalled their comrades, who, leaving the plunder which
they had gathered behind, ran back to their camp. The next day they marched out to battle. The Romans were
not slow in accepting the challenge, but they had hardly time to complete their formation, so rapidly did the
enemy come on. Furius had formed the allied troops into two divisions, and the right division was stationed
in the first line, the two Roman legions forming the reserve. M. Furius was in command of this division, M.
Caecilius commanded the legions and L. Valerius Flaccus the cavalry. These were all staffofficers. The
praetor kept two of his staff with himC. Laetorius and P. Titiniusto assist him in surveying the field and
meeting any sudden attempt of the enemy.
At first the Gauls brought their whole strength to bear in one direction, hoping to be able to overwhelm the
right wing and smash it up. Failing in this, they endeavoured to work round the flanks and envelop the
enemy's line, which, considering their numbers and the fewness of their opponents, seemed an easy task.
When the praetor saw this maneuver he extended his front by bringing up the two legions in reserve to the
right and left of the allied troops, and he also vowed a temple to Diovis, in case he routed the enemy that day.
He then ordered L. Valerius to launch the Roman cavalry against one wing of the Gauls and the allied cavalry
against the other to check the enveloping movement. As soon as he saw that the Gauls had weakened their
centre by diverting troops to the wings, he ordered his infantry to advance in close order at the charge and
break through the opposing ranks. This was decisive; the wings were repulsed by the cavalry and the centre
by the infantry. As they were being cut down in all parts of the field, the Gauls turned, and in wild flight
sought shelter in their camp. The cavalry followed in hot pursuit and the infantry soon came up and attacked
the camp. Not 6000 men succeeded in making their escape; more than 35,000 were killed or made prisoners;
70 standards were taken together with 200 Gaulish carts loaded with spoil. The Carthaginian general
Hamilcar fell in that battle as well as three Gaulish nobles who were in command. 2000 men whom the Gauls
had taken at Placentia were set at liberty and restored to their homes.
It was a great victory and caused great joy in Rome. When the despatch arrived a three days' thanksgiving
was decreed. The Romans and allies lost 2000 men, mostly belonging to the right division against which the
enormous mass of the enemy made their first attack. Although the praetor had practically brought the war to a
close, the consul C. Aurelius after finishing the necessary business in Rome proceeded to Gaul and took over
the victorious army from the praetor. The other consul reached his province quite late in the autumn and
wintered in the neighbourhood of Apollonia. As stated above, C. Claudius was sent to Athens with twenty
triremes out of the fleet which was laid up at Corcyra. When they entered the Piraeus they brought great
comfort and hope to their allies who were now in a state of great despondency. The depredations committed
on their fields by the troops at Corinth, who came through Megara, now ceased, and the pirates from Chalcis
who had infested the sea and harried the maritime districts of Athens no longer ventured beyond Sunium and
in fact would not trust themselves outside the Euripus. In addition to the Roman ships there were three
quadriremes from Rhodes and three Athenian undecked vessels which had been fitted out to protect their
coast. As a chance of an important success offered itself to C. Claudius he thought that it would be sufficient
for the present if this fleet protected the city and territory of Athens.
Some refugees from Chalcis who had been expelled by the king's adherents reported that the place could be
seized without any serious resistance, for as there was no enemy to be feared in the neighbourhood the
Macedonians were strolling about everywhere, and the townsmen, trusting to the Macedonians for protection,
made no attempt to guard the city. On this information C. Claudius proceeded to Chalcis, and although he
reached Sunium early enough to allow of his entering the strait of Euboea the same day, he kept his fleet at
anchor till nightfall that his approach might not be observed. As soon as it was dark he sailed on over a calm
sea and reached Chalcis a little before dawn. He selected the least populous part of the city for his attempt,
and finding the guards at some points asleep and other places without any guard at all, he directed a small
body of soldiers to place their scalingladders against the nearest tower, which was taken with the wall on
either side of it. Then they advanced along the wall to where the buildings were numerous, killing the guards
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 152
Page No 155
on their way, till they reached the gate which they broke down and so admitted the main body of troops.
Dispersing in all directions they filled the city with tumult, and, to add to the confusion, the buildings round
the forum were set on fire. They burnt the king's granaries and the arsenal with an immense number of
military engines and artillery. This was followed by an indiscriminate slaughter of those who offered
resistance and those who tried to escape, and at last every man capable of bearing arms was either killed or
put to flight. Amongst the former was Sopater, an Acarnanian, the commandant of the garrison. All the
plunder was collected in the forum and then placed on board the ships. The gaol too was broken open by the
Rhodians, and the prisoners of war whom Philip had immured there as being the safest place of custody were
released. After the statues of the king had been thrown down and mutilated the signal for embarkation was
given, and they sailed back to the Piraeus. Had there been a sufficient force of Roman soldiery to allow of
Chalcis being occupied without interfering with the protection of Athens, Chalcis and the Euripus would have
been wrested from the king; a most important success at the very outset of the war. For the Euripus is the key
to Greece by sea as the pass of Thermopylae is by land.
Philip was in Demetrias at the time. When the disaster that had overtaken a friendly city was announced to
him, he determined, as he was too late to save it, to do the next best thing and avenge it. With a force of 5000
infantry in light marching order and 300 cavalry he went almost at a run to Chalcis, not for a moment
doubting that he would be able to take the Romans by surprise. Finding that there was nothing to see but the
uninviting spectacle of a smoking and ruined city in which hardly enough men were left to bury the victims
of the war, he hurried away at the same speed and crossing the Euripus by the bridge marched through
Boeotia to Athens, thinking that as he had shown as much enterprise as the Romans he would have the same
success. And he would have had, if a scout had not observed the king's army on the march from a
watchtower. This man was what the Greeks call a hemerodromos, because these men cover enormous
distances in a single day, and running on in advance he reached Athens at midnight. Here there was the same
somnolence and negligence which had brought about the loss of Chalcis a few days before. Roused by the
breathless messenger, the Athenian commanderinchief and Dioxippus the prefect of the cohort of
mercenaries mustered their soldiers in the forum and ordered the trumpets to sound the alarm from the citadel
so that all might know that the enemy was at hand. There was a general rush to the gates and the walls.
Some hours later, though considerably before daybreak. Philip approached the city. When he saw the
numerous lights and heard the noise of men hurrying to and fro in the inevitable confusion, he halted his
force and ordered them to lie down and rest. As his attempt at a surprise had failed he prepared for an open
assault and made his advance on the side of the Dipylon. This gate, placed as a mouth to the city, is
considerably larger and wider than the rest, and the road on both sides of it is broad, so that the townsmen
were able to form their line right up to it from the forum, whilst the road beyond it stretching for about a mile
as far as the Academy allowed plenty of room for the infantry and cavalry of the enemy. After forming their
line inside the gate, the Athenians, together with the detachment which Attalus had left and Dioxippus'
cohort, sallied forth. As soon as he saw them Philip thought he had them in his power and would be able to
satisfy his longcherished desire for their destruction, for there was not one of the Greek States that he was
more furious against than he was against Athens. After exhorting his men to keep their eyes on him as they
fought and to remember that where the king was, there the standards and the fighting line ought to be, he put
spurs to his horse, animated not only by raging anger but also by a love of ostentation. He thought it a
splendid thing to be seen fighting by the immense crowd who thronged the walls to view the spectacle.
Galloping forward in front of his lines with a few horsemen he charged into the middle of the enemy and
created as much alarm amongst them as he inspired his own men with enthusiasm. Many he wounded at close
quarters, others by the missiles he flung, and he drove them back to their gate where he inflicted greater
losses as they crowded through the confined space. Recklessly as he pursued them, he was still able to draw
off in safety because those who were on the turrets of the gate forbore to throw their javelins for fear of
hitting their own comrades who were mixed up with the enemy. After this the Athenians kept within their
walls, and Philip after giving the signal for retirement fixed his camp at Cynosarges where there was a temple
of Hercules and a gymnasium with a grove round it. But Cynosarges and the Lyceum and every sacred and
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 153
Page No 156
delightful place round the city was burnt. Not only were buildings destroyed but even the tombs, nothing
belonging to either gods or men was spared in his uncontrollable fury.
The following day the closed gates were suddenly thrown open to admit a body of troops sent by Attalus and
the Romans from the Piraeus. The king now removed his camp to a distance of about three miles from the
city. From there he marched to Eleusis in the hope of securing by a coupdemain the temple of the fort
which surrounded it and protected it on all sides. When, however, he found that the defenders were quite on
the alert, and that the fleet was on its way from the Piraeus to render assistance, he abandoned his project and
marched to Megara, and then straight to Corinth. On learning that the Council of the Achaeans was sitting at
Argos he made his appearance in the assembly quite unexpectedly. They were at the time discussing the
question of war with Nabis, tyrant of the Lacedaemonians. When the supreme command was transferred from
Philopoemen to Cycliades. who was by no means his equal as a general, Nabis, finding that the Achaeans had
dismissed their mercenaries, resumed hostilities, and after devastating his neighbours' fields was now
threatening their cities. To oppose this enemy the council were deliberating as to what proportion of troops
should be furnished by each State. Philip promised to relieve them from all anxiety so far as Nabis and the
Lacedaemonians were concerned; he would not only protect the soil of his allies from their ravages, but he
would at once roll back all the terror of war upon Laconia itself by marching his army thither. When these
words were greeted with loud applause he went on to say, "If, however, your interests are to be protected by
my arms it is only fair that my own should not be left undefended. Furnish me then, if you approve, with such
a force as shall suffice to garrison Oreus, Chalcis and Corinth, so that with all safe in my rear I may make war
upon Nabis and the Lacedaemonians free from misgivings." The Achaeans were not slow to detect his motive
in making such a generous promise and offering aid against the Lacedaemonians. They saw that his real aim
was to draw the fighting strength of the Achaeans out of the Peloponnese as hostages and so bind the nation
to a war with Rome. Cycliades, seeing that further argument would be irrelevant, simply observed that the
laws of the Achaeans did not allow discussion on any matters other than those which the council had been
convened to consider. After a decree had been passed for raising an army to act against Nabis, he dismissed
the council over which he had presided with courage and independence. Before that day he had been looked
upon as a strong supporter of the king. Philip, whose high hopes were thus suddenly dashed, succeeded in
enlisting a few volunteers, after which he returned to Corinth and from there to Attica.
During the time that Philip was in Achaia, Philocles, one of his generals, started from Euboea with 2000
Thracians and Macedonians for the purpose of ravaging the Athenian territory. He crossed the forest of
Cithaeron in the neighbourhood of Eleusis, and there he divided his forces. Half were sent forward to harry
and plunder the fields in all directions, the other half he concealed in a position suitable for an ambuscade so
that if an attack were made from the fort at Eleusis upon his plunderers he might take the assailants by
surprise. His ruse, however, was detected, so he recalled the scattered pillagers and made a regular attack
upon the fort. After a fruitless attempt in which many of his men were wounded he retired and joined forces
with Philip who was on his way from Achaea. The king himself made an attempt on the same fort but the
arrival of the Roman ships from the Piraeus and the presence of a reinforcement which had been thrown into
the place compelled him to abandon the undertaking. He then sent Philocles with a part of his army to
Athens, and with the rest he proceeded to the Piraeus in order that while Philocles kept the Athenians within
their city by approaching the walls and threatening an assault, he might seize the opportunity of storming the
Piraeus whilst it was left with a feeble guard. But the assault on the Piraeus proved to be quite as difficult as
the one on Eleusis, as practically the same troops defended both. Leaving the Piraeus he hurried up to Athens.
Here a force of infantry and cavalry from the city attacked him within the dilapidated Long Walls which
connect the Piraeus with Athens and he was repulsed. Seeing that any attempt on the city was hopeless he
divided his army with Philocles and set himself to complete the devastation of the country. His former work
of destruction had been confined mainly to the sepulchres round the city; now he determined to leave nothing
free from profanation and gave orders for the temples which the people had consecrated in every deme to be
destroyed and set on fire. The land of Attica was famous for that class of building as well as for the
abundance of native marble and the genius of its architects, and therefore it afforded abundant material for
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 154
Page No 157
this destructive fury. He was not satisfied with overthrowing the temples with their statues, he even ordered
the blocks of stone to be broken in pieces lest if they retained their shape they might form imposing ruins.
When there was nothing left on which his rage, still insatiate, could wreak itself he left the enemy's territories
for Boeotia and did nothing more worth mentioning in Greece.
The consul Sulpicius was at the time encamped by the river Apsus in a position lying between Apollonia and
Dyrrhachium. He recalled L. Apustius and sent him with a portion of his force to ravage the enemy's
frontiers. After devastating the borders of Macedon and capturing at the first assault the fortified posts of
Corrhagum, Gerrunium and Orgessus, Apustius came to Antipatrea, a place situated in a gorge between two
mountain ranges. He first invited the chief men of the city to a conference, and tried to persuade them to trust
themselves to the Romans. Confident in the size of their city, its fortifications, and its strong position, they
treated his overtures with contempt. He then resorted to force and carried the place by assault. After putting
the adult males to death and allowing the soldiers to appropriate all the plunder he levelled the walls and
burnt the city. Fear of similar treatment brought about the surrender of Codriona fairly strong and fortified
townwithout offering any resistance. A detachment was left there to garrison the place, and Cnidusa name
better known as that of a city in Asiawas taken by storm. As Apustius was on his way back to the consul
with a considerable amount of plunder he was attacked during his passage of the river by Athenagoras, one of
the king's prefects, and his rear was thrown into confusion. On hearing the shouting and tumult he galloped
back, made his men face about and throw their kits into the centre of the column, and formed his line. The
king's soldiers did not stand the charge of the Romans, many were killed and more taken prisoners. Apustius
brought back his army safely to the consul, and was at once sent off to rejoin the fleet.
As the commencement of the war was marked by this successful expedition, various princes and leading men
from the countries bordering on Macedonia visited the Roman camp; amongst them Pleuratus, the son of
Scerdilaedus, Amynander, king of the Athamanians, and Bato, the son of Longarus, who represented the
Dardanians. Longarus had been warring on his own account with Demetrius, Philip's father. In reply to their
offers of help the consul said that he would avail himself of the services of the Dardanians and of Pleuratus
when he led his army into Macedonia. With Amynander he arranged that he should induce the Aetolians to
take part in the war. Envoys from Attalus had also come, and he instructed them to ask the king to meet the
Roman fleet at Aegina where it was wintering and in conjunction with it to harass Philip, as he had
previously done, by naval operations. Emissaries were also sent to the Rhodians urging them to take their
share in the war. Philip, who had now arrived in Macedonia, showed no less energy in making preparations
for the war. His son Perseus, a mere boy, to whom he had assigned some members of his council to direct and
advise him, was sent to hold the pass which leads to Pelagonia. Sciathos and Peparethos, cities of some
importance, were destroyed that they might not enrich the hostile fleet with plunder. He sent envoys to the
Aetolians to prevent that people, excited at the arrival of the Romans, from breaking faith with him.
The meeting of the Aetolian League which they call the PanAetolium was to be held on a certain day. The
king's envoys hastened their journey in order to be in time for it and Lucius Furius Purpurio was also present
as representing the consul, as was also a deputation from Athens. The Macedonians were allowed to speak
first, as the treaty with them was the latest that had been made. They said that as no new circumstances had
arisen they had nothing new to urge in support of the existing treaty. The Aetolians, having learnt by
experience how little they had to gain by alliance with the Romans, had made peace with Philip, and they
were bound to keep it now that it was made. "Would you prefer," asked one of the envoys, "to copy the
unscrupulousnessor shall I call it the levity?of the Romans? When your ambassadors were in Rome, the
reply they received was 'Why do you come to us, Aetolians, after you have made peace with Philip without
our consent?' And now the very same men insist upon your joining them in war against Philip. Formerly they
pretended that they had taken up arms against him on your account and for your protection, now they forbid
you to be at peace with Philip. In the first Punic war they went to Sicily, ostensibly to help Messana; in the
second, to deliver Syracuse from Carthaginian tyranny and restore her freedom. Now Messana and Syracuse
and in fact the whole of Sicily are tributary to them: they have reduced the island to a province in which they
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 155
Page No 158
exercise absolute power of life and death. You imagine, I suppose, that the Sicilians enjoy the same rights as
you, and that as you hold your council at Naupactus under your own laws, presided over by magistrates of
your own choice, and with full power of forming alliances or declaring war as you please, so it is with the
councils which meet in the cities of Sicily, in Syracuse or Messana or Lilybaeum. No: a Roman governor
manages their meetings; it is at his summons that they have to assemble; they see him issuing his edicts from
his lofty tribunal like a despot, and surrounded by his lictors; their backs are threatened with the rod, their
necks with the axe, and every year they have a different master allotted them. Nor ought they, nor can they
wonder at this when they see the cities of Italy, such as Regium, Tarentum and Capua, lying prostrate beneath
the same tyranny, to say nothing of those close to Rome out of whose ruin she has grown to greatness.
Capua does indeed survive as the sepulchre and memorial of the Campanian nation, the people themselves
are either dead and buried, or else cast forth as exiles. It is a headless and limbless city without a senate,
without a plebs, without magistrates, an unnatural portent in the land. To leave it as a habitation for men was
an act of greater cruelty than its utter destruction would have been. If men of an alien race, separated from
you more widely by language, customs and laws than by intervening sea and land, obtain a hold here, it is
folly and madness to hope that anything will remain as it is now. You think that Philip's sovereignty is a
danger to your liberty. It was your own doing that he took up arms against you, and his sole aim was to have
a settled peace with you. All that he asks today is that you will keep that peace unbroken. Once make foreign
legions familiar with these shores and bow your necks to the yoke, then you will seek in vain and too late for
Philip's support as your ally; you will have the Romans for your masters. Aetolians, Acarnanians,
Macedonians are united and disunited by slight and purely temporary causes; with foreigners and barbarians,
all Greeks ever have been and ever will be at war. For they are our enemies by nature, and nature is
unchanging; their hostility is not due to causes which vary from day to day. But I will end where I began.
Three years ago you decided on this very spot to make peace with Philip. You are the same men that you
were then, he is the same that he was, the Romans who were opposed to it then are just those who want to
upset it now. Fortune has altered nothing, I do not see why you should alter your minds."
The Macedonians were followed, at the instance of the Romans, by the Athenians, who after the shocking
way they had been treated, had every justification for protesting against Philip's barbarous cruelty. They
mourned over the piteous devastation and pillaging of their fields, but it was not because they had suffered
hostile treatment from an enemy that they complained. There were certain rights of war which could be justly
exercised and therefore must be justly submitted to; the burning of crops, the destruction of dwellings, the
carrying off of men and cattle as plunder, cause suffering to those who endure them, but are not felt to be an
indignity. What they did complain of was that the man who called the Romans foreigners and barbarians had
so completely outraged all law, human and divine, that in his first ravages he made impious war upon the
infernal deities, and in his subsequent ones he defied the powers above. All the sepulchres and monuments
within their borders were destroyed, the dead in all their graves laid bare, their bones no longer covered by
the earth. There were shrines which their ancestors in the day when they dwelt in separate demes had
consecrated in their little fortified posts and villages, and which even when they had been enrolled as citizens
of one city they did not abandon or neglect. All these temples Philip had enveloped in sacrilegious flames, the
images of their gods, blackened, burnt, mutilated, were lying among the prostrate pillars of their temples.
What he had made the land of Attica, once so fair in its beauty and its wealth, such, if he were allowed,
would he make Aetolia and the whole of Greece. Even Athens itself would have been similarly disfigured if
the Romans had not come to the rescue, for the same impious rage was driving him to attack the gods who
dwell in the city, Minerva the protectress of the citadel, the Ceres of Eleusis and the Jupiter and Minerva of
the Piraeus. But he had been repulsed by force of arms, not only from their temples, but even from the walls
of the city, and had turned his savage fury against those shrines whose sanctity was their only protection.
They closed with an earnest appeal to the Aetolians that they would out of compassion to the Athenians take
part in the war, under the leadership of the immortal gods and of the Romans who next to the gods possessed
the greatest power and might.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 156
Page No 159
Then the Roman legate spoke as follows: "The Macedonians and then the Athenians have compelled me to
alter entirely the address I was going to make. I came to protest against Philip's wrongful action against all
those cities of our allies, but the Macedonians by the charges they have brought against Rome have made me
a defendant rather than an accuser. The Athenians, again, by their recital of his impious and inhuman crimes
against the gods above and those below, have left nothing more for me or for any one else to bring up against
him. Consider that the same things have been said by the inhabitants of Chios and Abydos, by the Aeneans,
the Maronites, the Thasians, by the natives of Paros and Samos, of Larissa and Messene, and by the people
over there in Achaia, and that those upon whom he was able to inflict most injury have made the gravest and
most serious charges. As to those actions which he has brought up against us as crimes, I frankly admit that if
they do not deserve praise they cannot be defended. He mentioned, as instances, Regium, Capua and
Syracuse. In the case of Regium, the inhabitants themselves begged us during the war with Pyrrhus to send a
legion for their protection, and the soldiers, forming a criminal conspiracy, took forcible possession of the
town which they were sent to defend. Did we therefore approve their action? Did we not on the contrary take
military measures against the criminals, and when we had them within our power did we not compel them to
make satisfaction to our allies by scourgings and executions, and then did we not restore to the Regians their
city, their lands and all their possessions, together with their liberty and their laws? As to Syracuse, when it
was oppressed by foreign tyrantsa still greater indignitywe came to its help and spent three weary years in
making attacks by sea and land upon its almost impregnable fortifications. And though the Syracusans
themselves would rather have remained under that servile tyranny than let their city be taken by us, we
captured it, and the same arms which effected its capture won and secured its freedom. At the same time we
do not deny that Sicily is one of our provinces, and the communities which took the side of the Carthaginians
and in full sympathy with them urged war against us are now tributary, and pay us the tenth of all their
produce. We do not deny this; on the contrary we with you and the whole world know that each has been
treated in accordance with its deserts. It was the same with Capua. Do you suppose that we regret the
punishment meted out to the Capuans, a punishment which they themselves cannot make a ground of
complaint? It was on their behalf that we remained at war with the Samnites for nearly seventy years, during
which time we suffered severe defeats; we were united with them by treaty, then by intermarriage, and at last
by common citizenship. And yet these men were the first of all the Italian nationalities to take advantage of
our difficulties and revolt to Hannibal after massacring our garrison, and then in revenge for our besieging
them sent him to attack Rome. If neither their city nor a single inhabitant had survived, who could feel any
indignation at their fate or charge us with having adopted harsher measures than they deserved? Those whom
a consciousness of guilt drove to suicide were more numerous than those who were punished by us, and
though we deprived the survivors of their city and territory we gave them land and a place to dwell in. The
city itself had not injured us, and we left it standing uninjured, so much so that any one who sees it today
would find no trace of its having been stormed and captured.
But why do I speak of Capua when even to conquered Carthage we have given peace and liberty? The danger
is rather that by showing too much leniency to the conquered we should incite them all the more to try the
fortune of war against us. So much in defence of our conduct. With respect to the charges against Philipthe
bloodshed in his own family, the murders of his kinsmen and friends, his lust almost more inhuman than his
crueltyyou who live nearest to Macedonia know most about them. As regards you Aetolians, it was on your
behalf that we undertook war against him; you made peace with him without any reference to us. Perhaps you
will say that as we were fully occupied with the Punic War, you were compelled to accept terms of peace
from the man whose power was at that time in the ascendant, to which we should reply that it was only after
you had laid aside hostilities that we too abandoned them, as greater matters claimed our attention. Now,
however, that through the favour of the gods the Punic War is over, we have thrown our whole strength on
Macedonia and the opportunity offers itself for you to regain our friendship and support, unless indeed you
prefer to perish with Philip rather than conquer with the Romans."
At the conclusion of this speech the unanimous feeling was in favour of the Romans. Damocritus, the chief
magistrate of the Aetolians, who was currently reported to have been bribed by the king, refused to support
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 157
Page No 160
either side. "In a matter of such serious consequence," he said, "nothing is so fatal to wise counsels as doing
things in a hurry. This is followed by quick repentance which, however, is too late, and quite unavailing;
decisions hastily and precipitately formed cannot be recalled, nor can the mischief be undone." He thought
that an interval ought to be allowed for mature deliberation, and the time could be fixed there and then. As
they were forbidden by law to discuss questions of peace and war anywhere but in the PanAetolian Council,
they ought at once to pass a decree exempting the chief magistrate from all penalties, if he summoned a
council when he thought the time had come to submit the question of peace and war, and the decrees of that
council should have the same force and validity as though they had been passed in a regular PanAetolian
Council. After the matter was adjourned the envoys were dismissed, and Damocritus said that the decision
come to was in the highest degree favourable to the nation, for whichever side had the better fortune in the
war, that side they would be able to join. Such were the proceedings in the PanAetolian Council.
Philip was making vigorous preparations both by land and sea. He concentrated his naval strength at
Demetrias in Thessaly, as he expected that Attalus and the Roman fleet would move from Aegina at the
beginning of the spring. Heraclides was continued in command of the fleet and coastline. The gathering of
his land forces he conducted in person, encouraged by the belief that he had deprived the Romans of two
important auxiliaries, the Aetolians on the one side and the Dardanians on the other, as the pass at Pelagonia
was closed by his son Perseus. By this time the consul was not preparing for war but actually engaged in it.
He led his army through the country of the Dessaretii, and the corn which they had brought from their winter
quarters they were carrying with them untouched, as the fields through which they marched supplied all that
they wanted. Some of the towns and villages on his route surrendered voluntarily, others through fear, some
were taken by storm, others were found to be abandoned, the inhabitants having fled to the neighbouring
mountains. He formed a standing camp at Lyncus near the river Bevus, and from there he sent parties to
collect corn from the granaries of the Dessaretii.
Philip saw that there was consternation everywhere and that the population were in a state of panic, but he did
not know what part the consul was making for, and accordingly he sent a cavalry detachment to reconnoitre
and find out in what direction the enemy were marching. The consul was equally in the dark, he knew that the
king had moved out of his winter quarters, but was ignorant of his whereabouts, so he too sent out cavalry to
reconnoitre. After each party had wandered for a considerable time along unknown roads amongst the
Dassaretii, they at last took the same road. When the noise of men and horses was heard in the distance, they
both became aware that an enemy was approaching. So before they came in sight of one another they put
their horses and weapons in readiness, and as soon as they saw their enemy they charged. They were not
unfairly matched in numbers and courage, for each corps consisted of picked men, and for some hours they
kept up an even fight, until the exhaustion of men and horses put a stop to the battle without either side
gaining the victory. Forty of the Macedonians fell and thirtyfive of the Romans. Neither side gained any
information as to the whereabouts of their opponents' camp, which they could carry back either to the consul
or to the king. This information was ultimately conveyed by deserters, a class of persons whom want of
principle renders useful in all wars for finding out things about the enemy.
With the view of doing more to win the affections of his men and make them more ready to meet danger on
his behalf, Philip paid special attention to the burial of the men who had fallen in the cavalry action and
ordered the bodies to be brought into camp that all might see the honour paid to the dead. But nothing is so
uncertain or so difficult to gauge as the temper of a mass of people. The very thing which was expected to
make them keener to face any conflict only inspired them with hesitancy and fear. Philip's men had been
accustomed to fighting with Greeks and Illyrians and had only seen wounds inflicted by javelins and arrows
and in rare instances by lances. But when they saw bodies dismembered with the Spanish sword, arms cut off
from the shoulder, heads struck off from the trunk, bowels exposed and other horrible wounds, they
recognised the style of weapon and the kind of man against whom they had to fight, and a shudder of horror
ran through the ranks. Even the king himself felt apprehensive, though he had not yet met the Romans in a
pitched battle, and in order to augment his forces he recalled his son and the troops who were stationed in the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 158
Page No 161
Pelagonian pass, thus leaving the road open to Pleuratus and the Dardanians for the invasion of Macedonia.
He now advanced against the enemy with an army of 20,000 infantry and 4000 cavalry, and came to a hill
near Athacus where he strongly intrenched himself about a mile from the Roman camp. It is said that as he
looked down on it and gazed with admiration on the appearance of the camp as a whole and its various
sections marked off by the rows of tents and the roads crossing each other, he exclaimed, "No one can
possibly take that for a camp of barbarians." For two whole days the king and the consul kept their respective
armies in camp, each waiting for the other to attack. On the third day the Roman general led out his whole
force to battle.
The king, however, was afraid of hazarding a general engagement so soon, and contented himself with
sending forward a detachment of 400 Tralliansan Illyrian tribe, as we have explained aboveand 300 Cretan
infantry with an equal number of cavalry under Athenagoras, one of the nobles of his court, to challenge the
enemies' cavalry. The Romans, whose main line was about half a mile distant, sent forward their velites and
about two squadrons of cavalry, so that the number of their mounted and unmounted men was equal to that of
the enemy. The king's troops expected the style of fighting to be that with which they were familiar; the
cavalry would make alternate charges and retirements, at one moment using their missiles, then galloping to
the rear; the swiftfooted Illyrians would be employed in sudden onsets and rushes; the Cretans would
discharge their arrows on the enemy as he dashed forward to attack. But this order of combat was completely
upset by the method of the Roman attack, which was as sustained as it was fierce. They fought as steadily as
though it had been a regular engagement; the velites after discharging their javelins came to close quarters
with their swords; the cavalry, when once they had reached the enemy, halted their horses and fought, some
on horseback whilst others dismounted and took their places amongst the infantry. Under these conditions
Philip's cavalry, unaccustomed to a stationary combat, were no match for the Roman horse, and his infantry,
trained to skirmish in loose order and unprotected by armour, were at the mercy of the velites who with their
swords and shields were equally prepared for defence and attack. Incapable of sustaining the conflict and
trusting solely to their mobility they fled hack to their camp.
After one day's interval the king decided to bring the whole of his cavalry and lightarmed troops into action.
During the night he concealed a body of caetrati, whom they call peltasts, in a position between the two
camps well adapted for an ambush, and instructed Athenagoras and his cavalry in case the main battle went
favourably to push their advantage, but if not, to give ground slowly and draw the enemy to the place where
the ambush was set. The cavalry did retire, but the officers of the corps of caetrati did not wait long enough
for the signal, and by sending their men forward before the right moment lost their chance of success. The
Romans, victorious in the open battle and safe from the danger of ambuscade, returned to camp. The next day
the consul went out to battle with his whole force. In front of his line were posted some elephants which the
Romans were using for the first time, having captured some in the Punic war. When he saw that the enemy
were keeping quiet within their lines, he mounted some rising ground close to their rampart and taunted them
with their timidity. Even then no chance of fighting was offered him, and as foraging was by no means safe
while the camps were in such close proximity since Philip's cavalry would attack his men when they were
dispersed amongst the fields, he shifted his camp to a place called Ottolobum, about eight miles off, to allow
of his foraging more safely owing to the greater distance. As long as the Romans were cutting corn in the
neighbourhood of their camp the king kept his men within their lines in order that the enemy might grow
more venturesome and careless. When he saw them scattered far afield he set off with the whole of his
cavalry and the Cretan auxiliaries at such a rapid pace that only the fleetest of the infantrymen could keep up
with the troopers. On reaching a position between the foragers and their camp he divided his force. One
division was sent in pursuit of the scattered foragers, with orders not to leave a single man alive; with the
other he beset the various roads by which the enemy would have to return to their camp. Now men were
fleeing and being cut down in all directions, and no one had yet reached the Roman camp with tidings of the
disaster because those who fled thither fell into the hands of the king's troops who were waiting for them;
more were killed by those who were blocking the roads than by those who had been sent in pursuit. At last
some who had managed to elude the enemy brought, in their excitement, more confusion into the camp than
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 159
Page No 162
definite information.
The consul ordered his cavalry to go wherever they could to the rescue of their comrades and at the same
time led the legions out of the camp and marched in close order against the enemy. Some of the cavalry lost
their way in the fields owing to the various cries that were raised in different places, others came face to face
with the enemy and fighting began at many points simultaneously. It was hottest where the king's stationary
troops were posted, for owing to their numbers, both horse and foot, they almost formed a regular army, and
as they held the road most of the Romans encountered them. The Macedonians, too, had the advantage of the
king's presence to encourage them, whilst the Cretan auxiliaries, in close order and prepared for fighting,
made sudden onsets and wounded many of their opponents, who were dispersed without any order or
formation. If they had kept their pursuit within bounds they would not only have come off with flying colours
in the actual contest, but they would have gone far to influence the course of the war. As it was, they were
carried away by thirst for blood and fell in with the advancing Roman cohorts and their military tribunes; the
cavalry, too, as soon as they saw the standards of their comrades, turned their horses against the foe who was
now in disorder, and in a moment the fortune of the day was reversed, those who had been the pursuers now
turned and fled. Many were killed in handtohand fighting, many whilst fleeing; they did not all perish by
the sword, some were driven into bogs and were sucked down together with their horses in the bottomless
mud. Even the king was in danger, for he was flung to earth by his wounded and maddened horse and all but
overpowered as he lay. He owed his safety to a trooper who instantly leaped down and put the king on his
own horse, but as he could not keep up on foot with the cavalry in their flight he was speared by the enemy,
who had ridden up to where the king fell. Philip galloped round the swamp and made his way in headlong
flight through paths and pathless places until he reached his camp in safety, where most of the men had given
him up for lost. Two hundred Macedonians perished in that battle, about a hundred prisoners were taken and
eighty wellequipped horses were secured together with the spoils of their fallen riders.
There have been some who blamed the king's rashness and the consul's want of energy on that day. They said
that Philip ought to have remained quiet, for he knew that the enemy would in a few days have cleared all the
country round of corn and would have come to the extremity of want. The consul, on the other hand, after
routing the enemy's cavalry and light infantry and almost capturing the king himself, ought to have marched
at once to the enemy's camp; the enemy were too much demoralised to make any stand and the war could
have been finished in a moment. As in most cases, this was easier to say than to do. Had the king engaged
with the whole of his infantry it is possible that he might have lost his camp after they had been completely
defeated and fled from the field to their camp, and then continued their flight as the enemy broke through
their intrenchments. But as the infantry force in camp remained intact and the outposts and guards were all at
their stations, what would the consul have gained beyond imitating the rashness of the king in his wild pursuit
of the routed horses? Nor could any fault be found with the king in his plan of attacking the foragers whilst
dispersed through the fields, had he been contented with that success. That he should have tempted fortune as
he did is the less surprising since a report was current that Pleuratus and the Dardanians had already invaded
Macedonia with an immense force. With this force assailing him in the rear he might well believe that the
Romans would finish the war without striking a blow. After the two unsuccessful cavalry actions Philip
thought that he would be running considerable risk in remaining any longer in his standing camp. As he
wanted to conceal his departure from the enemy he sent a flag of truce just after sunset to ask for an armistice
for the purpose of burying the dead. Having thus deceived the enemy he marched out at the second watch in
perfect silence, leaving numerous fires alight all through the camp.
The consul was resting when the news was brought to him of the arrival of the herald and the reason of his
coming. All his reply was that an interview would be granted on the following morning. This was just what
Philip wanted, as it gave him the night and a part of the following day in which to get the start of his
opponent. He took the road over the mountains, which he knew that the Roman general would not attempt
with his heavy column. At daybreak the consul granted the armistice and dismissed the herald and not long
afterwards became aware that the enemy had disappeared. Not knowing in what direction to follow him he
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 160
Page No 163
spent some days in camp, collecting corn. Then he marched to Stuberra and gathered out of Pelagonia the
corn which was in the fields. From there he advanced to Pluinna without, so far, discovering the route which
the enemy had taken. Philip at first fixed his camp at Bryanium and then advancing by crossroads created a
sudden alarm amongst the enemy. The Romans in consequence left Pluinna and encamped by the river
Osphagus. The king pitched his camp not far away by a river which the natives call Erigonus, and carried his
intrenchment along the bank. Then, having definitely ascertained that the Romans intended to march to
Eordaea, he determined to anticipate them and occupied a narrow pass with the object of making it
impossible for the enemy to pass through it. He barricaded it in various ways, in some parts with rampart, in
others with fosse, in other places with piledup stones to serve as a wall, and elsewhere with treetrunks as
the nature of the ground or the materials allowed, until, as he believed, he had made a road which was
naturally difficult, absolutely impassable by the obstacles which he had placed across every exit. The country
was mostly forest, difficult for troops to work in, especially for the Macedonian phalanx, for unless they can
make a kind of chevaux de frise with the extraordinarily long spears which they hold in front of their
shieldsand this requires a free and open spacethey are of no use whatever. The Thracians with their pikes,
which were also of an enormous length, were hampered and obstructed by the branches on all sides. The
Cretan cohort was the only one that was of any service, and this only to a very limited extent, for though
when attacked by an unprotected horse and rider they could discharge their arrows with effect, there was not
sufficient force in their missiles to penetrate the Roman shields nor was there any exposed part of the body at
which they could take aim. Finding therefore that mode of attack useless, they pelted the enemy with the
stones which were lying all over the ravine. This caused more noise than injury, but the drumming on their
shields checked the advance of the Romans for a few minutes. They soon ceased to pay any attention to them,
and some of them forming a shieldroof over their heads forced their way through the enemy in front, while
others by making a short circuit gained the crest of the hill and drove the Macedonians from their posts of
observation. Escape was almost impossible on such difficult ground, and the greater number were slain.
Thus the pass was surmounted with less trouble than they had anticipated, and they entered the district of
Eordaea. After ravaging the fields in all directions, the consul moved into Elimia. Here he made an attack on
Orestis and approached the town of Celetrum. This was situated on a peninsula, the walls were surrounded by
a lake and there was only one road to the adjacent country over a narrow neck of land. At first the townsmen,
relying upon their position, closed their gates and rejected the summons to surrender. When, however, they
saw the standards advancing and the legions marching under their shieldroof up to the gate and the narrow
neck of land covered by the hostile column, their hearts failed them and they surrendered without risking a
battle. From Celetrum he advanced into Dassaretia and took the city of Pelion by assault. The slaves and the
rest of the booty he carried off, but the free citizens he set at liberty without ransom, and he restored their
town to them after placing a strong garrison in it. It was well adapted from its position to serve as a base for
his operations against Macedonia. After thus scouring the enemy's country, the consul returned to friendly
territories and led his force back to Apollonia, which had been his startingpoint for the campaign. Philip had
been called away by the Aetolians, the Athamanians, the Dardanians and the numerous wars which had
broken out in various quarters. The Dardanians were already retiring from Macedonia when he sent
Athenagoras with the light infantry and the greater part of the cavalry to attack them from the rear as they
retreated, and by harassing their rear make them less eager to send their armies away from home. As to the
Aetolians, Damocritus their supreme magistrate, who had advised them at Naupactus to delay resolving upon
war, had at their next meeting urged them strongly to take up arms after all that had happenedthe cavalry
action at Ottolabrum, the invasion of Macedonia by the Dardanians and Pleuratus in conjunction with the
Illyrians, and especially the arrival of the Roman fleet at Oreum and the certainty of Macedonia, beset by all
those States, being blockaded at sea.
These considerations brought Damocritus and the Aetolians back to the side of the Romans, and in
conjunction with Amynander king of the Athamanians they proceeded to invest Cercinium. The townsmen
had closed their gates, whether spontaneously or under compulsion is not clear, as Philip's troops were
holding the place. However, in a few days Cercinium was taken and burnt, and those who survived the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 161
Page No 164
wholesale slaughter, slaves and citizens alike, were carried off with the rest of the booty. Dread of a similar
fate drove the inhabitants of all the cities round Lake Boebeis to abandon their homes and take to the
mountains. There being no further chance of plunder, the Aetolians left that part of the country and proceeded
to go into Perrhaebia. Here they took Cyretiae by storm and ruthlessly sacked it. The population of Maloea
surrendered voluntarily and were admitted into the Aetolian League. Leaving Perrhaebia, Amynander advised
them to attack Gomphi, as it was close to Athamania and there was every probability of its being carried
without much fighting. The Aetolians, however, wanted plunder and made for the fertile plains of Thessaly.
Amynander accompanied them, though he did not approve of the disorderly way in which they carried on
their depredations nor of their careless method of pitching their camp on any chance ground without taking
the trouble to select a good position or throw up proper intrenchments. He was afraid that their recklessness
and carelessness might bring disaster to him and his men, and when he saw them fixing their camp on flat
open ground below the hill on which the city of Phaeca stood, he took possession of some rising ground little
more than a mile away which needed very slight fortifying to make it safe. Except that they continued their
depredations the Aetolians seemed to have almost forgotten that they were in an enemy's country; some were
roaming about unarmed, others were turning day into night with wine and sleep, leaving the camp altogether
unguarded.
Suddenly, when no one expected him, Philip came on the scene. Some who rushed back from the fields
announced his appearance, and Damocritus and the other generals were in dire consternation. It happened to
be midday, when most of the soldiers were asleep after their heavy meal. Their officers roused them, ordered
some to arm themselves and sent off others to recall the plundering parties dispersed over the fields. So great
was the hurry and confusion that some of the cavalry went off without their swords and most of them had not
put on their bodyarmour. Sent out thus hurriedly, barely amounting to 600 horse and foot they met the king's
cavalry, who were superior to them in numbers, equipment and moral. They were naturally routed at the first
shock, and after showing hardly any fight, broke into a cowardly flight and made for their camp. Many whom
the cavalry cut off from the main body of the fugitives were either killed or captured.
His men were already coming up to the enemy's rampart when Philip ordered the retreat to be sounded, for
horses and men alike were tired, not so much by fighting as by the length and extraordinary celerity of their
march. Orders were given to the cavalry to get water and take their dinner a troop at a time, and the light
infantry to do the same, a maniple at a time; the others he kept in position under arms waiting for the main
body of infantry, who owing to the weight of their armour had marched more slowly. When these arrived
they were ordered to plant their standards and put their arms down in front of them and then take a hasty
meal, while two or three at the most were sent from each company to fetch water. The cavalry and light
infantry were in the meantime standing ready for instant action in case of any movement on the part of the
enemy. By this time the crowds of Aetolians who had been dispersed in the fields had regained their camp,
and troops were posted about the gates and rampart as though they were prepared to defend their lines. As
long as they saw that the enemy were quiet and they felt safe, they were quite courageous, but as soon as the
Macedonians got into motion and began to advance towards their camp fully prepared for battle, they all
promptly deserted their posts and made their escape through the gate in the rear of the camp to the eminence
on which the Athamanian camp stood. Philip felt quite certain that he could have deprived the Athamanians
also of their camp, had sufficient light remained, but the day had been consumed, first in the battle and then
in plundering the Aetolian camp. So he took up his position on the level ground near the hill, prepared to
attack at dawn. But the Aetolians, who had not recovered from the panic in which they had abandoned their
camp, fled in various directions during the night. Amynander proved of the greatest assistance to them; under
his leading the Athamanians who were familiar with the paths over the mountain summits conducted them
into Aetolia by ways unknown to the enemy who was following in pursuit. A few who had lost their way in
the scattered flight fell into the hands of the cavalry whom Philip on finding that the camp was abandoned
had sent to harass their retreat.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 162
Page No 165
Athenagoras, Philip's lieutenant, in the meanwhile caught up the Dardanians as they were retiring within their
frontiers and created considerable confusion in the rear of their column. They faced about and formed in line
of battle, and a regular engagement ensued in which neither side gained the advantage. When the Dardanians
began again to go forward the king's cavalry continued to harass them, as they had no troops of the same kind
to protect them, and their equipment rendered them immobile. The ground, too, was in favour of the
assailants. Very few were actually killed, but there were many wounded; no prisoners were taken because
they were cautious about leaving their ranks and kept up the retreating fight in close order. Thus Philip
through his bold initiative as much as by its successful results kept the two nations in check by his
welltimed movements and so made good the losses he had sustained in the war with Rome. An incident
which occurred subsequently gave him a further advantage by diminishing the number of his Aetolian
enemies. Scopas, one of their principal men, who had been sent by King Ptolemy from Alexandria with a
considerable amount of gold, conveyed to Egypt a mercenary army consisting of 6000 infantry and 500
cavalry. He would not have left a single man of military age in Aetolia if Damocritus had not kept some of
them at home by sternly reminding them of the war which was imminent and the defenceless condition of a
country deprived of its manhood. It is uncertain whether his action was dictated by patriotism or by personal
enmity to Scopas who had not bribed him. Such were the various undertakings in which the Romans and
Philip were engaged during this summer.
It was in the early part of this summer that the fleet under L. Apustius left Corcyra and after rounding the
Cape of Malea was joined by Attalus off Scyllaeum, a place situated in the district of Hermione. On this the
Athenians, who had for a long time been afraid to show their hostility to Philip too openly, now at the
prospect of immediate assistance gave full vent to their rage against him. There is never any lack of tongues
there to stir up the populace. People of this sort thrive on the applause of the mob, and are found in all free
States, particularly in Athens where oratory had so much influence. A proposal was introduced and at once
adopted by the people that all the statues and busts of Philip and of all his ancestors, male and female alike,
with the inscriptions on them should be removed and destroyed; the festivals, sacrifices and priests which had
been instituted in honour of him or of his predecessors should be abolished; even the localities in which
anything had been set up, or where there was any inscription to perpetuate his name, were to be placed under
a curse, and nothing which it was right to erect or consecrate on undesecrated ground could be erected or
consecrated in these places. On every occasion on which the official priests offered up prayers for the people
of Athens and the armies and fleets of their allies, they were always to invoke solemn curses on Philip, his
children and his realm, al1 his forces, military and naval, and on the whole nation of the Macedonians. It was
further decreed that if any one should in future introduce any measure calculated to brand Philip with
ignominy the Athenians should at once adopt it, and if any one by word or deed tried to vindicate him or do
him honour the man who slew him would be justified in doing so. Finally it was enacted that all the decrees
which had been formerly made against Pisistratus should be in force against Philip. As far as words went the
Athenians made war on Philip, but it was only in these that their strength lay.
When Attalus and the Romans arrived at the Piraeus they stayed there a few days and then left for Andros
with a heavy cargo of decrees quite as extravagant in their praises of their friends as in their expressions of
wrath against their enemy. They brought up in the harbour of Gaurelum, and a party was sent ashore to test
the feelings of the citizens and find out whether they preferred to surrender voluntarily or to await an assault.
They replied that they were not their own masters, as the place was held by Philip's troops. Thereupon the
forces were landed and all the usual preparations for an assault were made, Attalus approached the city on
one side and the Roman commander on the other. The novel sight of the Roman arms and standards and the
spirit with which the soldiers without the slightest hesitation mounted the walls utterly appalled the Greeks,
who promptly fled to the citadel, leaving the enemy in possession of the city. There they held out for two
days, trusting more to the strength of the place than to their own arms; on the third they, together with the
garrison, surrendered the town and citadel on condition of being allowed to retire with one garment apiece to
Delium in Boeotia. The city itself was made over by the Romans to Attalus; they themselves carried off the
plunder and all that adorned the city. Anxious not to have the island a solitude, Attalus persuaded nearly all
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 163
Page No 166
the Macedonians, as well as some of the Andrians, to remain there. Subsequently those who had, in
accordance with the terms of surrender, migrated to Delium were induced by the king's promises to return,
for the love of country made them more ready to trust his word.
From Andros the fleets sailed to Cythnos. Here they spent some days in a fruitless attack on the city, and as it
seemed hardly worth while to continue their efforts, they sailed away. At Prasiae, a place on the mainland of
Attica, the Issaeans joined the Roman fleet with twenty fast sailingvessels. They were sent off to ravage the
Carystian country; pending their return the rest of the fleet lay at Geraestus, a wellknown port in Euboea.
Then they all set sail for the open sea, and leaving Scyros on their right, reached Icus. Here a violent gale
from the north detained them for a few days, and as soon as the weather moderated they sailed across to
Sciathos, a city which had been devastated and plundered by Philip. The soldiers dispersed through the fields
and brought back to the ships a supply of corn and whatever other food they could find. There was no
plunder, nor had the Greeks done anything to deserve being plundered. From there they directed their course
to Cassandrea, and touched at Mendae, a village on the coast. Rounding the cape they were purposing to
bring their ships right up to the walls when they were caught and scattered by a violent storm in which the
vessels almost foundered. It was with difficulty that they gained the land after losing most of their tackle.
This storm was also a presage of their land operations, for after they had collected their vessels and landed
their troops they were repulsed in their attack on the city with heavy loss, owing to the strength of the
garrison which held the place for Philip. After this failure they withdrew to Canaestrum in Pallene, and from
there sailing round the promontory of Torone they headed for Acanthus. After ravaging the territory they took
the city by assault and sacked it. As their ships were by this time heavily laden with booty they did not go any
further, and retracing their course they reached Sciathus, and from Sciathus they sailed to Euboea.
Leaving the rest of the fleet there they entered the Maliac Gulf with ten swift vessels to discuss the conduct of
the war with the Aetolians. Pyrrhias the Aetolian was the head of the deputation which came to Heraclea to
share their views with Attalus and the Roman commander. Attalus was requested to furnish a thousand
soldiers, as under the terms of the treaty he was bound to supply that number if they made war on Philip. The
demand was refused on the ground that the Aetolians had declined to march out and ravage the Macedonian
country at the time that Philip was burning everything round Pergamum, sacred and profane, and so draw him
off to look after his own interests. So the Aetolians were dismissed with expectations rather than with actual
assistance, as the Romans confined themselves to promises. Apustius returned with Attalus to the fleet. Plans
were now discussed for attacking Oreus. This was a strongly fortified city and, after the former attempt upon
it, had been held by a strong garrison. After the capture of Andros twenty Rhodian vessels commanded by
Agesimbrotus, all decked ships, joined the Roman fleet. This squadron was sent to take its station off
Zelasium, a promontory in Phthinia beyond Demetrias, where it would be admirably placed for meeting any
movement on the part of the Macedonian ships. Heraclides, the king's admiral, was anchored at Demetrias,
waiting for any chance which the enemy's negligence might offer him rather than venturing on open battle.
The Romans and Attalus attacked Oreus on different sides; the former directed their assault against the
citadel which faced the sea, whilst Attalus directed his towards the hollow between the two citadels where a
wall separates one portion of the city from the other. And as they attacked at different points, so they
employed different methods. The Romans brought their vineae and battering rams close up to the wall,
protecting themselves with their shieldroof; the king's troops poured in a hail of missiles from their ballistae
and catapults of every description. They hurled huge pieces of rock, and constructed mines and made use of
every expedient which they had found useful in the former siege. The Macedonians, however, who were
defending city and citadel were not only in greater force but they not forgotten Philip's censures for their
former misconduct nor his threatenings and promises in the respect of the future, and so they exhibited more
courage and resolution. The Roman general found that more time was being spent there than he expected and
that there was a better prospect of success in a regular investment than in a sudden assault. Other operations
might be conducted during the siege, so, leaving a sufficient force to complete the investment, he sailed to the
nearest point on the mainland, and suddenly appearing before Larissanot the wellknown city in Thessaly,
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 164
Page No 167
but another, called Cremastehe captured all the city but the citadel. Attalus, too, surprised Aegeleon, where
the inhabitants were not in the least apprehending an attack from an enemy who was engaged in the siege of
another city. By this time the siegeworks round Oreus had begun to tell upon the place and the garrison
were weakened by their losses and exhausted by the incessant labour of watches and guards by night and day
alike. A part of the wall had been loosened by the blows of the batteringrams and had fallen down in several
places. The Romans broke through the breach during the night and forced their way into the citadel
commanding the harbour. On receiving a signal from the Romans in the citadel Attalus entered the city at
daybreak where a large portion of the wall lay in ruins. The garrison and townsmen fled to the other citadel
and in two days' time surrendered. The city fell to Attalus, the prisoners to the Romans.
The autumnal equinox was now at hand, and the straits of Euboea, which are called Coela, are considered
dangerous to navigation. As they were anxious to get away before the winter storms began, the fleets sailed
back to the Piraeus, their startingpoint for the war. Leaving thirty ships there Apustius sailed with the
remainder past Malea to Corcyra. Atticus was detained by the celebration of the Eleusinian Mysteries at
which he wished to be present, and when they were over he withdrew into Asia after sending Agesimbrotus
and the Rhodians home. Such were the operations against Philip and his allies conducted by the Roman
consul and his lieutenant with the assistance of King Attalus and the Rhodians. When the other consul, C.
Aurelius, came into his province he found the war brought to a close, and he did not conceal his chagrin at the
praetor's activity in his absence. He sent him into Etruria and then took his legions into the enemy's country
to plunder it: an expedition from which he returned with more booty than glory. L. Furius, finding no scope
for his activity in Etruria, and bent upon obtaining a triumph for his victories in Gaul, which he thought he
might more easily do while the angry and jealous consul was out of the way, suddenly returned to Rome and
convened a meeting of the senate in the temple of Bellona. After giving a report of what he had done, he
asked to be allowed to enter the City in triumph.
A considerable number of the senators supported him in view of the great services he had rendered, and also
on personal grounds. The older members were for refusing him a triumph, partly because the army which he
had employed had been assigned to another commander, and partly because in his eagerness to snatch the
chance of a triumph he had quitted his province, an act contrary to all precedent. The consulars, in particular,
insisted that he ought to have waited for the consul, for he could then have fixed his camp near the city and so
have afforded sufficient protection to the colony to hold the enemy in hand without fighting until the consul
came. What he failed to do, the senate ought to do, namely, wait for the consul; after hearing what the consul
and the praetor had to say, they would form a truer judgment about the case. Many of those present urged that
the senate ought not to consider anything beyond the praetor's success and the question whether he had
achieved it as a magistrate with full powers and under his own auspices. "Two colonies," it was argued, "had
been planted as barriers to check risings amongst the Gauls. One had been plundered and burnt, and the
conflagration was threatening the other colony which was so near it, like a fire running from house to house.
What was the praetor to do? If no action ought to have been taken in the consul's absence, either the senate
was at fault in furnishing the praetor with an armyfor as it had decided that the campaign should be fought
by the consul's army and not by the praetor's which was far away, so it could have passed a special resolution
to the effect that it should be fought under the consul and not under the praetoror else the consul was in the
wrong in not joining his army at Ariminum, after he had ordered it to move from Etruria into Gaul, so that he
might take his part in the war, which you say ought not to have been undertaken without him. The critical
moments in war do not wait upon the procrastination and delays of commanders, and you sometimes have to
fight, not because you wish to do so, but because the enemy compels you. We ought to keep in view the
battle itself and its consequences. The enemy were routed and cut to pieces; their camp taken and plundered;
one colony relieved from siege; those of the other colony who had been made prisoners recovered and
restored to their homes and friends; the war was finished in a single battle. Not to men only was that victory a
cause of rejoicing; thanksgivings for three days ought to be offered to the immortal gods because L. Furius
had upheld the cause of the republic well and happily, not because he had acted ill and rashly. War with the
Gauls was the destined prerogative of the house of the Furii."
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 165
Page No 168
Through speeches of this kind delivered by him and his friends, the personal influence of the praetor, who
was on the spot, outweighed the dignity and authority of the absent consul, and by an overwhelming majority
a triumph was decreed to L. Furius. So L. Furius as praetor celebrated a triumph over the Gauls during his
magistracy. He brought into the treasury 320,000 ases and 100,500 pounds of silver. No prisoners were led in
procession before his chariot, nor were any spoils exhibited, nor was he followed by his soldiers. It was
obvious that everything except the actual victory was at the disposal of the consul. The Games which Scipio
had vowed when he was proconsul in Africa were celebrated with great splendour. A decree was made for the
allotment of land to his soldiers; each man was to receive two jugera for every year he had served in Spain or
in Africa, and the decemviri managed the allotment. Commissioners were also appointed to fill up the
number of colonists at Venusia, as the strength of that colony had been diminished in the war with Hannibal.
C. Terentius Varro, T. Quinctius Flamininus and P. Cornelius, the son of Cnaeus Scipio, were the
commissioners who undertook the task. During this year C. Cornelius Cethegus who was holding Spain as
propraetor routed a large army of the enemy in the Sedetan district. 15,000 Spaniards are said to have been
killed in that battle and seventyeight standards taken. On his return to Rome to conduct the elections, C.
Aurelius did not, as was anticipated, make it a ground of complaint that the senate had not awaited his return
or given him the opportunity of discussing the matter with the praetor. What he did complain of was the way
in which the senate had passed the decree granting the triumph without hearing any of those who had taken
part in the war or indeed any one at all except the man who was to enjoy the triumph. "Our ancestors," he
said, "laid it down that the lieutenantsgeneral, the military tribunes, the centurions and the soldiers should be
present in order that the people of Rome might have visible proof of the victory won by the man for whom
such an honour was decreed. Was there a single soldier out of the army which fought with the Gauls, or even
a single campfollower from whom the senate might have enquired as to the truth or falsehood of the
praetor's report?" After making this protest he fixed the day for the elections. The new consuls were L.
Cornelius Lentulus and P. Villius Tappulus. Then followed the election of praetors. Those returned were L.
Quinctius Flamininus, L. Valerius Flaccus, L. Villius Tappulus and Cn. Baebius Tamphilus.
Provisions were remarkably cheap that year. A great quantity of corn had been brought from Africa and the
curule aediles, M. Claudius Marcellus and Sex. Aelius Paetus, distributed it to the people at two ases the
modius. They also celebrated the Roman Games on a splendid scale and repeated them a second day. Five
bronze statues from the proceeds of fines were placed by them in the treasury. The Plebeian Games were
celebrated three times by the aediles, L. Terentius Massiliota and Cn. Baebius Tamphilus, the latter being
praetordesignate. Funeral Games were also exhibited in the Forum for four days on the occasion of the
death of M. Valerius Laevinus by his sons, Publius and Marcus; they also gave a gladiatorial spectacle in
which fiveandtwenty pairs fought together. One of the Keepers of the Sacred Books, M. Aurelius Cotta,
died and Manlius Acilius Glabrio was appointed to succeed him. It so happened that the curule aediles who
were elected were both unable to take up their duties at once; Gaius Cornelius Cethegus was elected while
absent in Spain where he held command; C. Valerius Flaccus was in Rome when he was elected, but as he
was a Flamen of Jupiter he could not take the oaths, and it was not permitted to hold any magistracy for more
than five days without doing so. Flaccus asked that this condition might be waived in his case and the senate
decreed that if an aedile should provide some one, with the approval of the consuls, to take the oaths for him,
the consuls might if they thought good arrange with the tribunes for the matter to be referred to the plebs. L.
Valerius Flaccus, praetordesignate, was brought forward to take the oaths for his brother. The tribunes
brought the matter before the plebs, and the plebs decided that it should be just as though the aedile himself
had taken them. In the case of the other aedile, the tribunes requested the plebs to appoint two men to
command the armies in Spain, and the plebs resolved that the curule aedile C. Cornelius should come home
to take up his duties and that L. Manlius Acidinus should retire from his province after having held it for
many years. They then made an order that Cn. Cornelius Lentulus and T, Stertinius should have the full
powers of proconsuls in Spain.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 31. Rome and Macedon 166
Page No 169
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War
The consuls and praetors went into office on March 15 and at once balloted for their commands. Italy fell to
L. Lentulus and Macedonia to P. Villius. The praetors were distributed as follows: L. Quinctius received the
City jurisdiction; Cn. Baebius, Ariminum; L. Valerius, Sicily; L. Villius, Sardinia. The consul Lentulus
received instructions to raise fresh legions; Villius took over the army from P. Sulpicius and it was left to him
to bring it up to whatever strength he thought necessary. The legions which C. Aurelius had commanded as
consul were assigned to Baebius on the understanding that he was to retain them until the consul relieved him
with his new army, and on his arrival all the timeexpired soldiers were to be sent home. Out of the allied
contingent only 5000 men were kept on active service, a sufficient number, it was thought, to hold the
country round Ariminum. Two of the former praetors had their commands extendedC. Sergius, for the
purpose of allotting the land to the soldiers who had been serving for many years in Spain, and Q. Minucius
in order that he might complete the investigation of the conspiracies in Bruttium which he had been hitherto
conducting so carefully and impartially. Those who had been convicted of the sacrilege and sent in chains to
Rome he was to send to Locri for execution, and he was also to see that what had been abstracted from
Proserpine's shrine was replaced with the due expiatory rites. In consequence of complaints made by
representatives from Ardea that the customary portions of the victims sacrificed on the Alban Mount had not
been given to that city, the pontiffs decreed that the Latin Festival should be held afresh. Reports came from
Suessa that two of the city gates and the wall between them had been struck by lightning. Messengers from
Formiae announced that the same thing had happened to the temple of Jupiter there, others from Ostia
reported that the temple of Jupiter there also had been struck, others again from Velitrae brought word that
the temples of Apollo and Sancus had been struck, and that hair had appeared on the statue in the temple of
Hercules. Q. Minucius, the propraetor in Bruttium, wrote to say that a foal had been born with five feet, and
three chickens with three feet each. A despatch was received from P. Sulpicius, the proconsul in Macedonia,
in which among other things he stated that laurel leaves had shot forth on the stern of a warship. In the case of
the other portents the senate decided that the consuls should sacrifice fullgrown victims to those deities who
they thought ought to receive them, but with regard to the lastmentioned portent the haruspices were called
into the senate to advise. In accordance with their directions a day of special intercessions was ordered and
prayers and sacrifices were offered at all the shrines.
This year the Carthaginians conveyed to Rome the first instalment of the war indemnity. It was paid in silver
and the quaestors reported that it was not up to standard value, and on assaying it found that onefourth was
alloy. The Carthaginians made up the deficiency by borrowing money in Rome. They petitioned the senate to
allow their hostages to be restored, and a hundred were given back to them. Hopes were held out of the
restoration of the remainder if Carthage was true to her obligations. A further request which they put forward
was that the hostages who were still detained might be moved from Norba where they were very
uncomfortable, and placed elsewhere. It was agreed that they should be removed to Signia and Ferentinum. A
deputation from Gades came with a request that no prefect might be sent there, as this would be in
contravention of the agreement made with L. Marcius Septimus when they placed themselves under the
protection of Rome. Their request was granted. Delegates also came from Narnia who stated that their colony
was short of its proper number and that some of inferior status had found their way amongst them, and were
giving themselves out to be colonists. The consul L. Cornelius was instructed to appoint three commissioners
to deal with the case. Those appointed were the two AeliiPublius and Sextus, both of whom had the
cognomen of Paetusand Cn. Cornelius Lentulus. The colonists at Cosa also requested an augmentation of
their number, but their request was refused.
After despatching the necessary business in Rome the consuls left for their respective provinces. On his
arrival in Macedonia, P. Villius was confronted by a serious mutiny amongst the troops, which had not been
checked at the beginning, though they had for some time been seething with irritation. These were the 2000
who, after Hannibal's final defeat had been transferred from Africa to Sicily and then in less than a year to
Macedonia. They were regarded as volunteers but they maintained that they had been taken there without
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 167
Page No 170
their consent, they had been placed on board by the tribunes in spite of their protests. But in any case,
whether their service was compulsory or voluntary they claimed that they had served their time and that it
was only right that they should be discharged. They had not seen Italy for many years, they had spent the best
years of their life under arms in Sicily and Africa and Macedonia, and now they were worn out with their
toils and hardships, their many wounds had drained their blood. The consul told them that if they asked for
their release in a proper way there was reasonable ground for granting it, but that did not justify them nor
would anything else justify them in breaking out into mutiny. If therefore they were willing to remain with
the standards and obey orders he would write to the senate about disbanding them. They would be much more
likely to attain their object by moderation than by contumacy.
At this time Philip was pressing the siege of Thaumaci with the utmost energy. His mounds were completed
and his vineae in full working order and he was on the point of bringing his batteringrams up to the walls
when the sudden arrival of a body of Aetolians compelled him to desist. Under the leadership of Archidamus
they made their way through the Macedonian guard and entered the town. Day and night they made constant
sorties, at one time attacking the outposts, at another, the siegeworks of the Macedonians. The nature of the
country helped them. To one approaching Thaumaci from the south by Thermopylae and round the Malian
Gulf and through the country of Lamia, the place stands out on a height overlooking what they call Thessalia
Coele. When you have made your way by winding paths over the broken ground and come up to the city
itself, the whole plain of Thessaly suddenly stretches out before you like a vast sea beyond the limits of
vision. From the wonderful view which it affords comes its name of Thaumaci. The city was protected not
only by its elevated position but also by the precipitous sides of the height on which it stood. In the face of
these difficulties Philip did not think its capture worth all the toil and danger involved and accordingly gave
up the task. The winter had already begun when he withdrew from the place and returned to his winter
quarters.
Everybody else made the most of the short rest allowed in seeking relaxation for mind and body, but the
respite which Philip gained from the ceaseless strain of marches and battles only left him the more free for
anxious thought as he contemplated the issues of the war as a whole. He viewed with alarm the enemy who
was pressing on him by land and sea, and he felt grave misgivings as to the intentions of his allies and even
of his own subjects, lest the former should prove false to him in the hope of gaining the friendship of Rome
and the latter break out in insurrection against his rule. To make sure of the Achaeans he sent envoys to
require them to renew the oath of fidelity which they had undertaken to renew annually, and also to announce
his intention of restoring to the Achaeans the cities of Orchomenos and Heraea and the district of Triphylia
and to the Megalopolitans the city of Aliphera, as they maintained that it had never belonged to Triphylia, but
was one of the places from which by direction of the council of the Arcadians the population had been drawn
to found Megalopolis, and therefore it ought to be restored to them. By adopting this course he sought to
consolidate his alliance with the Achaeans. His hold upon his own subjects was strengthened by the action he
took in the case of Heraclides. He had made a friend of this man, but when he saw that he was making
himself intensely disliked, and that many charges had been brought against him, he threw him into prison to
the great joy of the Macedonians. His preparations for war were as carefully and thoroughly made as any he
had ever made before. He constantly exercised the Macedonians and mercenary troops and at the
commencement of the spring he sent Athenagoras with all the foreign auxiliaries and light infantry through
Epirus into Chaonia to seize the pass at Antigonea, which the Greeks call Stena. A few days later he followed
with the heavy troops, and after surveying all the positions in the country he considered that the most suitable
place for an entrenched camp was one before the river Aous. This runs through a narrow ravine between two
mountains which bear the local names of Meropus and Asnaus, and affords a very narrow path along its bank.
He gave orders to Athenagoras to occupy Asnaus with his light infantry and intrench himself; and he himself
fixed his camp on Meropus. Where there were precipitous cliffs, small outposts mounted guard, the more
accessible parts he fortified with fosse or rampart or towers. A large quantity of artillery was disposed in
suitable places to keep the enemy at a distance by missiles. The king's tent was pitched on a most
conspicuous height in front of the lines to overawe the enemy and to give his own men confidence.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 168
Page No 171
The consul had wintered in Corcyra, and on receiving intelligence through Charops, an Epirote, as to the pass
which the king and his army had occupied, he sailed across to the mainland at the opening of the spring and
at once marched towards the enemy. When he was about five miles from the king's camp he left the legions
in an entrenched position and went forward with some light troops to reconnoitre. The following day he held
a council of war to decide whether he should attempt to force the pass in spite of the immense difficulty and
danger to be faced, or whether he should lead his force round by the same route which Sulpicius had taken
the year before, when he invaded Macedonia. This question had been debated for several days when a
messenger came to report the election of T. Quinctius to the consulship and the assignment to him of
Macedonia as his province, and the fact that he was hastening to take possession of his province and had
already reached Corcyra. According to Valerius Antias, Villius, finding a frontal attack impossible as every
approach was blocked by the king's troops, entered the ravine and marched along the river. Hastily throwing
a bridge across to the other side where the king's troops lay, he crossed over and attacked; the king's army
were routed and put to flight and despoiled of their camp. 12,000 of the enemy were killed in the battle, 2200
prisoners taken, 132 standards and 230 horses captured. All the Greek and Latin writers, so far as I have
consulted them, say that nothing noteworthy was done by Villius and that the consul who succeeded him took
over the whole war from the outset.
During these occurrences in Macedonia the other consul, L. Lentulus, who had remained in Rome, conducted
the election of censors. Amidst several candidates of distinction the choice of the electors fell upon P.
Cornelius Scipio Africanus and P. Aelius Paetus. They worked together in perfect harmony, and revised the
roll of the senate without disqualifying a single member. They also leased out to contractors the customs dues
at Capua and Puteoli and the harbour dues at the Castra Hannibalis, where a town now stands. Here they sent
300 coloniststhe number fixed by the senateand also sold the land belonging to Capua which lay at the foot
of Mount Tifata. L. Manlius Acidinus, who left Spain about this time, was prevented by P. Porcius, a tribune
of the plebs, from enjoying an ovation on his return, though the senate had granted it to him. He entered the
City in an unofficial capacity, and brought into the treasury 1200 pounds' weight of silver and 30 pounds of
gold. During the year Cn. Baebius Tamphilus, who had succeeded C. Aurelius in the command in Gaul,
invaded the country of the Insubrian Gauls, but owing to his want of caution he was surprised, and very
nearly lost the whole of his army. His actual losses amounted to 6700 men, and this great defeat occurred in a
quarter which was no longer a cause of apprehension. This incident called L. Lentulus out of the City. As
soon as he reached the province, which was filled with disturbance, he took over the command of the
demoralised army and after severely censuring the praetor ordered him to quit the province and go back to
Rome. The consul himself, however, did nothing of any importance, as he was recalled to Rome to conduct
the elections. These were delayed by two of the tribunes of the plebs, M. Fulvius and Manius Curius, who
would not allow T. Quinctius Flamininus to be a candidate for the consulship as he was only quaestor at the
time. They alleged that the offices of aedile and praetor were now looked down upon, the nobility did not rise
through the successive posts of honour before trying for the consulship and so give proof of their efficiency,
but passing over the intermediate steps made the highest immediately follow the lowest. The question passed
from the Campus Martius to the senate, who passed a resolution to the effect that when any one was a
candidate for an office of dignity which he might lawfully hold, it was right in such a case that the people
should have the power to elect whom they would. The tribunes deferred to the authority of the senate. The
consuls elected were Sex. Aelius Paetus and T. Quinctius Flamininus. At the subsequent election of praetors
the following were returned: L. Cornelius Merula, M. Claudius Marcellus, M. Porcius Cato and C. Helvius.
These had been plebeian aediles, and exhibited the Plebeian Games and celebrated the festival of Jupiter. The
curule aedilesC. Valerius Flaccus, one of the Flamens of Jupiter, and C. Cornelius Cetheguscelebrated the
Roman Games with great splendour. Two pontiffsboth members of the house of the Sulpicii, Servius and
Caiusdied this year. Their places were filled up by M. Aemilius Lepidus and Cnaeus Cornelius Scipio.
On assuming office the new consuls convened the senate in the Capitol, and it was decreed that the consuls
might either arrange between themselves about the two provinces of Macedonia and Italy, or they might
ballot for them. The one to whom Macedonia fell was to raise 3000 Roman infantry and 300 cavalry in order
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 169
Page No 172
to bring the legions up to their proper strength, and also 5000 men from the Latins and the allies and 500
cavalry. The army for the other consul was to be an entirely new one. L. Lentulus, the consul of the previous
year, had his command extended and he received orders not to leave his province or bring away his veteran
army until the consul arrived with the new legions. The result of the balloting was that Italy fell to Aelius and
Macedonia to Quinctius. Amongst the praetors, L. Cornelius Merula received the jurisdiction in the City; M.
Claudius, Sicily; M. Porcius, Sardinia, and C. Helvius, Gaul. The enrolment of troops followed, for in
addition to the consular armies the praetors were required to levy forces. Marcellus enlisted 4000 Latin and
allied infantry and 300 cavalry for service in Sicily, Cato raised 2000 foot and 200 horse of the same class for
Sardinia, so that both these praetors on reaching their provinces might disband the old cavalry and infantry.
When these dispositions were completed, the consuls introduced a mission from Attalus to the senate. They
announced that the king was assisting Rome with the whole of his military and naval strength and had up to
that day done his utmost to carry out faithfully the behests of the Roman consuls, but he feared that he would
not be at liberty to do this any longer; Antiochus had invaded his kingdom while it was left defenceless both
by sea and land. He therefore requested the senate, if they wished to avail themselves of his fleet and his
services in the Macedonian war, that either they themselves would send a force to protect his kingdom, or if
they did not wish to do so, that they would allow him to return home and defend his dominions with his fleet
and the rest of his forces. The senate instructed the consuls to convey the following reply to the delegates:
"The assistance which King Attalus has given the Roman commanders with his fleet and other forces has
been very gratifying to the senate. They will not themselves send assistance to Attalus against Antiochus
since he is on terms of alliance and friendship with Rome, nor will they detain the auxiliaries which Attalus is
furnishing longer than suits the king's convenience. When the Romans have made use of the resources of
others they have always left liberty of action to others. If any wish to render active assistance to the Romans,
it rests with them to take the first step as it does to take the last. The senate will send envoys to Antiochus to
inform him that the Roman people are making use of Attalus' ships and men against their common enemy,
Philip, and Antiochus will give gratification to the senate if he desists from hostilities and leaves Attalus'
dominions alone. It is only just and right that monarchs who are allies and friends of Rome should also keep
the peace towards each other."
The consul T. Quinctius, in raising troops, took care to choose mainly those who had done good service in
Spain or in Africa and who were men of tried courage. Anxious as he was to go to his province, he was
delayed in Rome by the announcement of portents and the necessity of expiating them. Several places had
been struck by lightningthe high road at Veii, the forum and the temple of Jupiter at Lanuvium, the temple
of Hercules at Ardea, and at Capua walls and towers and the temple called Alba. At Arretium the sky
appeared to be on fire. At Velitrae the earth subsided over a space of three jugera, leaving a huge chasm. At
Suessa it was reported that a lamb had been born with two heads, and at Sinuessa a pig with a human head. In
consequence of these portents a day of special intercessions was proclaimed and the consuls arranged for the
prayers and sacrifices. After thus placating the gods the consuls left for their respective provinces. Aelius
took the praetor Helvius with him into Gaul and handed over to him the army which he had received from L.
Lentulus, to be disbanded, whilst he himself prepared to continue the war with the legions he brought with
him. He did not however do anything worth recording. The other consul, T. Quinctius, left Brundisium earlier
than his predecessors had been in the habit of doing and sailed for Corcyra with an army of 8000 infantry and
800 cavalry. From there he crossed over in a quinquereme to the nearest part of the coast of Epirus, and
proceeded by forced marches to the Roman camp. He sent Villius home and then waited a few days until his
troops which were following him from Corcyra joined him. Meanwhile he held a council of war on the
question whether he should march straight to the enemy's lines and force them, or whether, without
attempting a task of such difficulty and danger, it would not be better to make a safe circuit through the
Dessaretii and the country of Lyncus and enter Macedonia from that side. The latter proposal would have
been adopted had not Quinctius feared that if he moved further from the sea his enemy might slip out of his
hands, and seek safety as he had done before in forests and deserts, in which case the summer would be gone
without any decisive result being arrived at. It was decided, therefore, in any case to attack the enemy where
he was, in spite of the unfavourable ground over which the attack had to be made. But it was easier to decide
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 170
Page No 173
that an attack should be made than to form a clear idea of how it should be made. For forty days they
remained inactive in full view of the enemy.
This led Philip to hope that he might arrange a peace through the mediation of the Epirotes. A national
council was held at which Pausanias, their captaingeneral, and Alexander, the commander of their cavalry,
were chosen to undertake the task, and they arranged a conference between the king and the consul at a point
where the Aous contracts to its narrowest width. The sum and substance of the consul's demands were that
the king should withdraw his garrisons from the various States, that he should restore to those of them whose
cities and fields he had plundered all that they could recover, and make compensation for the rest upon a fair
valuation. In reply Philip asserted that the cities were differently circumstanced. Those which he had himself
taken he would liberate, but as to those which had been bequeathed to him by his predecessors he would not
give up what he had inherited as his lawful possession. If any of the States with whom he had been at war
made complaint of the losses they had sustained he would submit the question to arbitration before any
neutral nation whom they chose. To this the consul replied that in this matter at all events there was no need
whatever for any arbitration, for who could fail to see that the responsibility for all wrongs lay with the
aggressor, and in every case Philip had been the aggressor without having received any provocation? The
discussion then turned upon the question, which communities were to be liberated. The consul mentioned the
Thessalians to begin with. Philip was so furious at this suggestion that he exclaimed, "What heavier
condition, T. Quinctius, could you impose upon a defeated foe?" and with these words hastily left the
conference. It was with difficulty that the two armies were prevented from fighting with missiles, separated
as they were by the breadth of the river. The next day the patrols on either side engaged in numerous
skirmishes over the broad plain between the camps. Then the king's troops retired and the Romans in their
eagerness for battle followed them on to confined and broken ground. They had the advantage in their order
and discipline and in the nature of their armour which afforded protection to the whole person; the
Macedonians were helped by the strength of their position, which enabled catapults and ballistae to be posted
on almost every rock as though on a city wall. After many on both sides had been wounded and some had
even fallen as in a regular battle, night put an end to the fighting.
At this juncture a shepherd was brought to the consul who had been sent by Charopus, the leading man in
Epirus. He said that he had been in the habit of pasturing his flock in the defile which was then occupied by
the king's camp, and knew every track and turn on the mountains. If the consul cared to send a party with him
he would lead them by a route which was not difficult or dangerous to a place where they would be over the
enemy's head. On hearing this the consul sent to Charopus to find out whether he thought that the rustic was
to be trusted in a matter of such importance. Charopus sent back word that he might trust him so far as to
keep everything in his own hands, and not be at the mercy of his guide. Whilst wishing rather than daring to
trust the man, and with mingled feelings of joy and fear, he was so far swayed by the authority of Charopus
as to try the chance which offered. In order to dispel all suspicion of his intended movement, he kept up
continuously, for two days, attacks upon every part of the enemy's position, bringing up fresh forces to
relieve those who were worn out with fighting. In the meantime he selected 4000 infantry and 300 cavalry
and placed this picked force in charge of a military tribune with orders to take the cavalry as far as the ground
allowed, and when it became impassable for mounted men he was to post them somewhere on level ground;
the infantry were to follow the path indicated by the guide. When, as he promised, they reached a position
above the enemy they were to give a signal by smoke and not raise the battleshout until the consul had
received the signal and could judge that the battle had begun. The consul ordered them to march by nightit
happened to be moonlight all nightand to take their food and rest in the daytime. The guide was promised a
very large reward if he proved faithful, he was, however, bound before being handed over to the tribune.
After despatching this force the Roman commander subjected the Macedonian outposts to more vigorous
pressure on all sides.
The detached force reached the height which was their objective on the third day, and signalled by a column
of smoke that they had seized and were holding it. Thereupon the consul, having formed his army into three
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 171
Page No 174
divisions, advanced up the bottom of the ravine with his main strength and sent his right and left wings
against the camp. The enemy showed no less alertness in meeting the attack. Eager to come to blows they
moved out of their lines, and as long as they fought in the open, the Romans were vastly superior in courage
and training and arms. But after losing many men in killed and wounded the king's troops retired upon
positions strongly fortified or naturally secure, and then it was the turn of the Romans to be in difficulties, as
they were advancing over dangerous ground where the narrow space made retreat almost impossible. Nor
would they have been able to retire without paying heavily for their rashness had not the Macedonians heard
shouts and found that a battle had begun in their rear. This unforeseen danger drove them frantic with terror,
some fled in disorder, others who stood their ground, not so much because they had the courage to fight, as
because there was no place for escape, were surrounded by the enemy who were pressing on in front and rear.
The whole army might have been annihilated had the victors been able to keep up the pursuit, but the cavalry
were hampered by the rough and confined ground and the infantry by the weight of their armour. The king
galloped off the field without looking behind him. After he had ridden some five miles, and rightly suspected
from the nature of the country that the enemy would find it impossible to follow him, he came to a halt on
some rising ground and sent his escort in all directions over hill and dale to rally his scattered troops. Out of
the whole force his losses did not amount to more than 2000, and all the rest, as if in obedience to a signal,
collected together and marched off in a strong column for Thessaly. After continuing the pursuit as far as they
could with safety, cutting down the fugitives and despoiling the dead, they plundered the king's camp which
even in the absence of defenders was difficult to approach. During the night they remained in camp, and the
next day the consul followed the enemy through the gorge at the bottom of which the river wound its way.
On the first day of his retreat the king reached a place called Pyrrhus' Camp in Molossian Triphylia. The next
day he gained the Lycnon range, a tremendous march for his army, but their fears urged them on. This range
is in Epirus and divides it from Macedonia on the north and Thessaly on the east. The mountain sides are
clothed with dense forests and the summits form a wide tableland with perennial streams. Here the king
remained encamped for several days, unable to make up his mind whether to go straight back to his kingdom
or whether it would be possible for him first to make an incursion into Thessaly. He decided to march his
army down into Thessaly and proceeded by the nearest route to Tricca, from which place he visited the
surrounding cities in rapid succession. The men who were able to follow him were compelled to quit their
homes and the towns were burnt. All the property they could carry with them they were allowed to take away,
the rest became the booty of the soldiers. There was no cruelty that they could have suffered from an enemy
greater than that which they experienced from their allies. These measures were extremely distasteful to
Philip, but as the country would soon be in possession of the enemy he was determined to keep the persons,
at all events, of his allies out of their hands. The towns which were thus devastated were Phacium, Iresiae,
Euhydrium, Eretria and Palaepharsalus. At Pherae the gates were closed against him, and as a siege would
have caused considerable delay and he had no time to lose, he gave up the attempt and marched into
Macedonia.
His retreat was hastened by the news of the approach of the Aetolians. When they heard of the battle which
had taken place near the Aous, the Aetolians ravaged the country nearest to them round Sperchiae, and Macra
Come, as it is called, and then crossing the frontiers of Thessaly they gained possession of Cymene and
Angea at the first assault. Whilst they were devastating the fields round Metropolis the townsmen who had
mustered in force to defend their walls inflicted a repulse upon them. In an attack upon Callithera they met
with similar resistance, but after an obstinate struggle they drove the defenders back within their walls. As
there was no hope whatever of their effecting the capture of the place, they had to content themselves with
this success. They next attacked the villages of Theuma and Celathara, which they plundered. Acharrae they
gained by surrender; at Xyniae the terrified peasants fled and after thus abandoning their homes fell in with a
detachment of Aetolians who were marching to Thaumaci to protect their foragers. The unarmed and helpless
crowd were slaughtered by the armed soldiery and the abandoned Xyniae was sacked. Then the Aetolians
took Cyphaera, a stronghold commanding Dolopia. These successful operations were rapidly carried out in a
few days.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 172
Page No 175
Amynander and the Athamanians, on hearing of the Roman victory, did not remain inactive. As he felt little
confidence in his soldiers Amynander begged the consul to lend him a small detachment with which to attack
Gomphi. He began by seizing Phaeca, a place lying between Gomphi and the pass over Pindus which divides
Athamania from Thessaly. Then he marched to the attack on Gomphi. For several days the inhabitants
defended their city most vigorously, but when the scalingladders were at last placed against the walls their
fears drove them to surrender. The fall of Gomphi created the liveliest alarm throughout Thessaly. The
garrisons of Argenta, Pherinium, Timarum, Ligynae, Stimo and Lampsus surrendered in rapid succession
together with other unimportant fortified posts in the neighbourhood. Whilst the Athamanians and the
Aetolians, delivered from the Macedonian peril, were thus making their gain out of the victory which others
had won, and Thessaly, doubtful whom to count as friend or foe, was being devastated by three armies at
once, the consul marched through the defile which the flight of the enemy had left open to him and entered
the country of Epirus. He knew perfectly well which side the Epirotes, with the exception of Charopas, had
favoured, but as he saw that they were anxious to repair their past mistakes by doing their utmost to carry out
his commands, he measured them by their present rather than their former attitude, and through his clemency
and readiness to forgive he secured their attachment for the future. After despatching instructions to Corcyra
for the transports to come into the Ambracian Gulf he advanced by easy stages for four days and fixed his
camp at the foot of the Cercetian range of mountains. Amynander was requested to bring up his troops to the
same place, not so much because his assistance was required as because the consul wished to have them as
his guides into Thessaly. Most of the Epirotes were allowed to volunteer for service also.
The first Thessalian city to be attacked was Phalorium. It was garrisoned by 2000 Macedonians, and as far as
arms and fortifications could protect them they offered a most determined resistance. The consul believed
that failure to withstand the Roman arms in this first instance would decide the attitude of the Thessalians
generally, and he pressed the attack day and night without intermission. At last the resolution of the
Macedonians was overcome and Phalorium was taken. On this envoys came from Metropolis and Cierium to
surrender their cities and to ask that their offence might be condoned. Their request was granted, but
Phalorium was sacked and burnt. He then advanced against Aeginium, but when he saw that the place was
practically impregnable even with a small force to defend it, he contented himself with discharging a few
missiles on the nearest outpost and diverted his march toward, Gomphi. As he had spared the fields of the
Epirotes his army was now without the necessaries of life, and on his descent into the plain of Thessaly he
sent to find out whether the transports had reached Leucas or the Ambracian Gulf, and then despatched
bodies of troops one after another in turn to Ambracia to procure corn. Though the route from Gomphi to
Ambracia is a difficult and awkward one, it is very short, and in a few days the camp was replenished with
stores of all kinds which had been brought up from the coast. His next objective was Atrax. This city lies on
the Peneus about ten miles from Larissa and was founded by emigrants from Perrhaebia. The Thessalians felt
no alarm at the appearance of the Romans, and Philip himself did not venture to advance into Thessaly but
remained encamped in Tempe, so that he could send help as occasion required to any place attempted by the
Romans.
Just about the time when the consul began his campaign against Philip by fixing his camp in the pass leading
from Epirus, his brother L. Quinctius, to whom the senate had entrusted the charge of the fleet and the
command of the coastline, sailed to Corcyra with two quinqueremes. When he heard that the fleet had left,
he decided to lose no time and followed it up to the island of Zama. Here he sent back Lucius Apustius,
whom he had succeeded, and went on to Malea. The voyage was a slow one, the vessels which were
accompanying him, laden with provisions, having mostly to be taken in tow. From Malea he proceeded with
three swift quinqueremes to the Piraeus, leaving orders for the rest of the fleet to follow him as quickly as
they could, and here he took over the ships which had been left by L. Apustius for the protection of Athens.
At the same time two fleets sailed from Asia, one of twentythree quinqueremes with Attalus, the other a
Rhodian fleet of twenty decked ships, under Agesimbrotus. These fleets united off Andros and from there
sailed to Euboea, which is only separated by a narrow strait. They began by laving waste the fields of the
Carystians, but when Carystus was strengthened by reinforcements which were hurried up they sailed away
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 173
Page No 176
to Eretria. On hearing that Attalus had arrived there, L. Quinctius proceeded thither with the squadron in the
Piraeus after leaving orders for the rest of his fleet as they arrived to sail for Euboea.
A very fierce attack on Eretria now commenced. The vessels in the three fleets carried all kinds of siege
engines and artillery, and the country around afforded an abundant supply of timber for the construction of
fresh works. At first the townsmen defended themselves with considerable energy, but they gradually became
worn out and many were wounded, and when they saw a portion of the walls levelled by the enemy's
machines, they began to think about surrendering. But the garrison consisted of Macedonians and the
townsmen were as much afraid of these as they were of the Romans. Philocles, Philip's lieutenant, also sent
word that he would come to their assistance in time if they would hold out. Thus their hopes and fears
constrained them to lengthen out the time beyond either their wishes or their strength. At last they heard that
Philocles had been defeated and was in hasty flight to Chalcis, and they at once sent spokesmen to Attalus to
ask for mercy and protection. Hoping for peace they slackened their defence and contented themselves with
guarding that part where the wall had been levelled. Quinctius, however, delivered an assault by night in the
quarter where they least expected it and captured the city. The whole of the townsmen with their wives and
children took refuge in the citadel and finally surrendered. There was not much gold and silver, but the
statues and pictures by oldtime artists and similar objects were discovered in greater quantities than might
have been expected from the size and wealth of the city.
Carystus was the next place to be attacked. Here before the troops were landed the entire population
abandoned the city and took refuge in the citadel. Then they sent envoys to make terms with the Roman
general. The townsmen were at once granted life and liberty; the Macedonians were allowed to depart after
giving up their arms and paying a sum equivalent to 300 drachmae per man. After ransoming themselves at
this sum they departed for Boeotia. After thus, within a few days, capturing two important cities in Euboea,
the fleets rounded Sunium, a promontory in Attica, and brought up at Cenchreae, the commercial port of
Corinth. Meanwhile the consul had on his hands a siege which proved to be more tedious and costly than any
one anticipated, and the defence was conducted in a way he was quite unprepared for. He took it for granted
that all his efforts would be devoted to the demolition of the walls and when once he had opened the way into
the city the flight and slaughter of the enemy would follow as they usually do when cities are taken by
assault. But after a portion of the wall had been battered down by the rams and the soldiers began to march
over the debris into the city they found themselves at the beginning of a fresh task. The Macedonian garrison,
a large body of picked men, considered it a special distinction to defend the city by their arms and courage
rather than by walls, and they formed in close order, their front resting on a column of unusual depth. As soon
as they saw the Romans clambering over the ruins of the wall they drove them back over ground covered
with obstacles and illadapted for retirement.
The consul was intensely mortified, for he looked upon this humiliating repulse as not only helping to
prolong the siege of one solitary city, but also as likely to influence the future course of the war which, in his
opinion, depended to a great extent upon unimportant incidents. After clearing the ground where the shattered
wall lay in heaps he brought up a movable tower of immense height carrying a large number of men on its
numerous stages, and sent on cohort after cohort to break through, if possible, the massed body of
Macedonians, which they call the phalanx. But in the narrow spacefor the breach in the wall was by no
means a wide onethe kind of weapon he used and his style of fighting gave the enemy an advantage. When
the serried Macedonian ranks presented their enormously long spears it was like a shieldwall, and when the
Romans after fruitlessly hurling their javelins, drew their swords they could not get to close quarters, nor
could they hack off the spearheads; if they did succeed in cutting or breaking any off, the splintered shafts
kept their places amongst the points of the uninjured ones and the palisade remained unbroken. Another thing
which helped the enemy was the protection of their flanks by that part of the wall which was sound; they had
not to attack or retire over a wide stretch of ground, which generally disorders the ranks. An accident which
happened to the tower gave them still greater confidence. As it was being moved over ground not thoroughly
beaten down, one of the wheels sank in and gave the tower such a list that it seemed to the enemy to be
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 174
Page No 177
falling over.
Though he was making no progress, what vexed the consul most was that he was allowing a comparison to be
made between the tactics and weapons of the contending armies; he recognised that there was no near
prospect of a successful assault, and no means of wintering so far from the sea in a country utterly wasted by
the ravages of war, and under these circumstances he raised the siege. There was no harbour on the whole of
the Acarnanian and Aetolian coastline which would admit all the transports employed in provisioning the
troops and at the same time furnish covered winterquarters for the legionaries. Anticyra in Phocis, facing the
Corinthian Gulf, seemed the most suitable place, as it was not far from Thessaly and the positions held by the
enemy, and only separated from the Peloponnese by a narrow strip of sea. There he would have Aetolia and
Acarnania behind him, and Locris and Boeotia on either side of him. Phanotea in Phocis was taken without
any fighting; Anticyra only made a brief resistance; the captures of Ambrysus and Hyampolis speedily
followed. Owing to the position of Daulis on a lofty hill, its capture could not be effected by escalade or
direct assault. By harassing the defending garrison with missiles and, when they made sorties, skirmishing
against them, alternately advancing and retiring without attempting anything decisive, he brought them to
such a pitch of carelessness and contempt for their opponents that when they retired within their gates the
Romans rushed in with them and took the place by storm. Other unimportant strongholds fell into Roman
hands more through fear than through force of arms. Elatea closed its gates against him and there seemed
little probability of its admitting either a Roman general or a Roman army unless it were compelled to do so
by force.
While the consul was engaged in the siege of Elatea, the hope of achieving a greater success brightened
before him, namely, of inducing the Achaeans to abandon their alliance with Philip and enter into friendly
relations with Rome. Cycliadas, the leader of the Macedonian party, had been expelled, and Aristaenus, a
favourer of the Roman alliance, was chief magistrate. The Roman fleet in conjunction with those of Attalus
and Rhodes were anchored at Cenchreae, preparing to make a joint attack on Corinth. The consul thought
that, before commencing operations, it would be better to send an embassy to the Achaeans and give an
undertaking that if they would abandon the king and go over to the Romans, Corinth should be incorporated
in the Achaean league. At the consul's suggestion, envoys were accordingly sent by his brother Lucius, and
by Attalus, the Rhodians and the Athenians. A meeting of the council was convened at Sicyon. The
Achaeans, however, were far from clear as to what course they ought to pursue. They were in fear of Nabis
the Lacedaemonian, their dangerous and relentless enemy, they dreaded the arms of Rome, and they were
under many obligations to the Macedonians for their kind services both in bygone years and recently. But the
king himself they viewed with suspicion on account of his faithlessness and cruelty; his action at the time
they attached no importance to, and saw clearly that after the war he would be more of a tyrant than ever.
They were quite at a loss what view to express, either in the senates of their respective States or in the general
council of the League; even when thinking the matter over by themselves, they could not make up their minds
as to what it was they really wanted or what was best for them. Whilst the councillors were in this state of
indecision the envoys were introduced and requested to state their case. The Roman envoy, L. Calpurnius,
was the first to speak. He was followed by the representatives of King Attalus, and then came the delegates
from Rhodes. The emissaries of Philip were the next to speak, and the Athenians came last of all, that they
might reply to the Macedonians. These last attacked the king with almost greater bitterness than any of the
others, for none had suffered more or undergone such harsh treatment. The whole day was taken up with the
continuous speeches of all these deputations, and at sunset the council broke up.
The next day they were called together again. When, in accordance with Greek usage, the usher announced
that the magistrates gave permission to speak to any one who wished to lay his views before the council,
there was a long silence, each looking for some one else to speak. Nor was this surprising, when men who
had been turning over in their minds proposals flatly opposed to each other until their brains had come to a
standstill, were still further bewildered by speeches lasting the whole day through, in which the difficulties on
both sides were set forth in tones of warning. At last, Aristaenus, the president, determined not to adjourn the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 175
Page No 178
council without discussion, said: "Where, Achaeans, are those lively disputes which go on at your
dinnertables and at the street corners, in which whenever Philip or the Romans are mentioned you can
scarcely keep your hands off each other? Now, in a council convened for this special purpose, when you have
heard the representatives of both sides, when the magistrates submit the question to discussion, when the
usher invites you to express your views, you have become dumb. If care for the common safety fails to do so,
cannot the party spirit which makes you take one side or the other, extort a word from any one? especially as
no one is so dense as not to see that this is the moment, before any decree is passed, for speaking and
advocating the course which commends itself to any one as the best. When a decree has once been made,
every one will have to uphold it as a good and salutary measure, even those who previously opposed it." This
appeal from the president not only failed to induce a single speaker to come forward, it did not even call forth
a single cheer or murmur in that great assembly, where so many States were represented.
Then Aristaenus resumed: "Leaders of the Achaeans, you are not lacking in counsel any more than you are in
the power of speech, but each of you is unwilling to endanger his own safety in consulting for the safety of
all. Possibly I, too, should keep silence, were I only a private citizen, but as it is, I see that either the president
ought not to have introduced the envoys into the council, or after he had introduced them they ought not to be
dismissed without some reply being made to them. But how can I give them any reply except in accordance
with the decree which you make? And since none of you who have been summoned to this council is willing
or has the courage to express his opinion, let us examine the speeches which the envoys delivered yesterday
as though they were made by members of this council, let us regard them not as making selfish demands in
their own interest, but as recommending a policy which they believe to be advantageous to us. The Romans,
the Rhodians and Attalus all ask for our alliance and friendship and consider that it is only just and right that
we should give them assistance in the war they are waging against Philip. Philip, on the other hand, reminds
us of the fact that we are his allies and have pledged our oath to him. At one time he demands our active
support, at another he assures us that he is content for us to remain neutral. Has it not occurred to any one
why those who are not yet our allies ask more from us than those who are our allies? This is not due to excess
of modesty in Philip or to the lack of it in the Romans. It is the fortune of war which imparts confidence to
the demands of one side and takes it away from those of the other. As far as Philip is concerned we see
nothing belonging to him except his envoy. As for the Romans, their fleet lies at Cenchreae, laden with the
spoils of the cities of Euboea, and we see the consul with his legions overrunning Phocis and Locris which
are only separated from us by a narrow strip of sea. Do you wonder why Philip's envoy, Cleomedon, spoke in
so diffident a tone when he urged us to take up arms against the Romans on behalf of his king? He impressed
upon us the sanctity of the same treaty and oath, but if we were to ask of him, by virtue of the same treaty and
oath, that Philip should defend us from Nabis and the Lacedaemonians, he would not be able to find a force
adequate for our protection or even an answer to our request, any more than Philip himself could have done
last year. For when he attempted to draw our fightingmen away into Euboea by promising that he would
make war on Nabis, and saw that we would not sanction such an employment of our soldiers or allow
ourselves to be involved in a war with Rome, he forgot all about the treaty which he is now making so much
of, and left us to be despoiled and wasted by Nabis and the Lacedaemonians.
To me, indeed, the arguments that Cleomedon used appeared inconsistent with each other. He made light of a
war with Rome and said that the issue would be the same as that of the former war. If so, then why does
Philip keep away and ask for our assistance instead of coming in person and protecting us from Nabis and the
Romans? 'Us,' do I say? Why, if this be so, did he allow Eretria and Carystus to be taken? why, all those cities
in Thessaly? why, Locris and Phocis? Why is he allowing Elatea to be attacked now? Why did he evacuate
the passes leading into Epirus and the unsurmountable barriers commanding the river Aous? And when he
had abandoned them, why did he march off into the heart of his kingdom? If he deliberately left his allies to
the mercies of their enemies how can he object to these allies taking measures for their own safety? If his
action was dictated by fear he must pardon us for our fears. If he retreated because he was worsted shall we
Achaeans, Cleomedon, withstand the arms of Rome when you Macedonians could not withstand them? You
tell us that the Romans are not in greater strength or employing greater forces in this war than in the last one;
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 176
Page No 179
are we to take your word for it, rather than look at the actual facts? On that occasion they only sent their fleet
to help the Aetolians; they did not put a consul in command nor did they employ a consular army. The
maritime cities belonging to Philip's allies were in a state of consternation and alarm, but the inland districts
were so safe from the arms of Rome that Philip laid waste the land of the Aetolians while they were vainly
imploring the Romans for help. Now, however, the Romans have brought the war with Carthage to a close,
that war which for sixteen years they have had to endure, whilst it preyed, so to speak, on the vitals of Italy,
and they have not simply sent a detachment to aid the Aetolians, they have themselves assumed command of
the war and are attacking Macedonia by land and sea. Their third consul is now conducting operations with
the utmost energy. Sulpicius met the king in Macedonia itself, routed him, put him to flight, and ravaged the
richest part of his realm, and now, when he was holding the passes which form the key of Epirus, secured as
he thought by his positions, his fortified lines and his army, Quinctius has deprived him of his camp, pursued
him as he fled into Thessaly, stormed the cities of his allies and driven out his garrisons almost within sight
of Philip himself.
Suppose there is no truth in what the Athenian delegate has said about the king's brutality and greed and lust,
suppose that the crimes committed in Attica against all the gods, supernal and infernal, do not concern us,
still less the sufferings of Chios and Abydos, which are a long way off; let us forget our own wounds, the
robberies and murders at Messene in the heart of the Peloponnesus, the king's assassination of his host almost
at the banquettable, the deaths of the two Arati of Sicyon, father and sonthe king was in the habit of
speaking of the hapless old man as though he were his fatherthe abduction of the son's wife into Macedonia
as a victim to Philip's lusts, and all the other outrages on matrons and maidslet all these be consigned to
oblivion. Let us even imagine that we have not to do with Philip whose cruelty has struck you dumb (for
what other reason can there be for you who have been summoned to the council keeping silence?), but with
Antigonus, a gentle and justminded monarch who has been the greatest benefactor to us all. Do you suppose
that he would demand of us that we should do what cannot possibly be done? The Peloponnesus, remember,
is a peninsula connected with the mainland by the narrow strip of land called the Isthmus, open and exposed
above all to a naval attack. If a fleet of 100 decked ships and 50 undecked ships with lighter draught, and 30
Isaean cutters should begin to ravage our coast and attack the cities which stand exposed almost on the shore,
we should, I suppose, withdraw into the inland cities just as if we were not caught by the flames of a war
within our frontiers which is fastening upon our vitals. When Nabis and the Lacedaemonians are pressing us
by land and the Roman fleet by sea, from what quarter am I to appeal to our alliance with the king and
implore the Macedonians to help us? Shall we protect with our own arms the threatened cities against the
Romans? How splendidly we protected Dymae in the last war! The disasters of others afford ample warning
to us, let us not seek how we may become a warning to others.
Because the Romans are asking for your friendship voluntarily, take care that you do not disdain what you
ought to have desired and done your best to obtain. Do you imagine that they are entrapped in a strange land
and driven by their fears into wishing to lurk under the shadow of your assistance and seek the refuge of an
alliance with you in order that they may have the entry of your harbours and make use of your supplies? The
sea is under their control, whatever shores they visit they at once bring under their dominion, what they deign
to ask for they can obtain by force. It is because they wish to spare you that they do not allow you to take a
step which would destroy you. As to the middle course which Cleomedon pointed out as the safest, namely,
that you should keep quiet and abstain from hostilities, that is not a middle course, it is no course at all. We
have either to accept or reject the proferred alliance with Rome; otherwise we shall win the gratitude of
neither side, but like men who wait upon the event, leave our policy at the mercy of Fortune, and what is this
but to become a prey of the conqueror? What you ought to have sought with the utmost solicitude is now
spontaneously offered; beware lest you scorn the offer. Either alternative is open to you today, it will not be
open always. The opportunity will not long remain, nor will it often recur. For a long time you have wished
rather than ventured to free yourselves from Philip. The men who would win your liberty for you without any
risk or effort on your part have crossed the seas with mighty fleets and armies. If you reject their alliance you
are hardly in your right senses, but you will be compelled to have them as either friends or enemies."
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 177
Page No 180
At the close of the president's speech a hum of voices ran through the assembly, some approving, others
fiercely attacking those who approved. Soon not only individual members but the collective representatives
of each State were engaged in mutual altercations, and at last the chief magistrates of the League, the
damiurgi as they are called, ten in number, were disputing with quite as much heat as the rest of the assembly.
Five of them declared that they would submit a proposal for alliance with Rome and take the votes on it; the
other five protested that it was forbidden by law for the magistrates to propose or for the council to adopt any
resolution adverse to the existing alliance with Philip. So the second day was wasted in wrangling. Only one
day now remained for the legal session of the council, for the law required its decree to be made on the third
day. As the time approached, party feeling ran so high that fathers could hardly keep their hands off their
children. Risias, a delegate from Pallene, had a son called Memnon who was one of the damiurgi who were
opposed to the resolution being moved and voted upon. For a long time he appealed to his son to permit the
Achaeans to take measures for their common safety and not by his obstinacy bring ruin on the whole nation.
When he found that his appeal had no effect he swore that he would count him not as a son but as an enemy
and would put him to death with his own hand. The threat proved effectual and the next day Memnon joined
those who were in favour of the resolution. As they were now in a majority they put the resolution amidst the
unmistakable approval of almost all the States, a clear indication of what the final decision would be. Before
it was actually carried, the representatives of Dymae and Megalopolis and some of those from Argos rose and
left the council. This did not occasion surprise or disapproval considering the position in which they were
placed. The Megalopolitans after being expelled by the Lacedaemonians in the days of their grandfathers had
been reinstated by Antigonus. Dymae had been taken and sacked by the Romans and the inhabitants sold into
slavery, and Philip had issued orders for them to be ransomed wherever they could be found, and had restored
them to liberty and to their city. The Argives, who believed that the kings of Macedonia had sprung from
them, had, most of them, been long attached to Philip by ties of personal friendship. For these reasons they
withdrew from the council when it showed itself in favour of making an alliance with Rome, and their
secession was considered excusable in view of the great obligations they were under for the kindness recently
shown to them.
On being called upon to vote, the remaining Achaean States desired the immediate conclusion of an alliance
with Attalus and the Rhodians. As an alliance with Rome could not be made without a resolution of the
Roman people the question was adjourned until envoys could be sent there. Meantime it was decided that
three representatives should be sent to L. Quinctius and that the whole of the Achaean army should be
brought up to Corinth as Quinctius had already begun to attack the city, now that he had taken Cenchreae.
The Achaeans fixed their camp in the direction of the gate which leads to Sicyon, the Romans on the other
side of the city which looks towards Cenetreae, Attalus brought his army through the Isthmus and attacked
the city on the side of Lechaeum, the port on the Gulf of Corinth. At first the attack did not show much spirit,
as hopes were entertained of internal discord between the townsmen and Philip's garrison. When however it
was seen that all were at one in meeting the assault, the Macedonians as energetic as though they were
defending their native soil, the Corinthians obeying the orders of Androsthenes, the commandant, as loyally
as though he were a fellowcitizen, placed in command by themselves, then the assailants placed all their
hopes in their arms and their siegeworks. In spite of the difficulties of approach, mounds were built up
against the walls on all side. On the side where the Romans were working, the batteringrams had destroyed
some part of the wall and the Macedonians came up in force to defend the breach. A furious conflict began
and the Romans were easily driven out by the overwhelming numbers of the defenders. Then the Achaeans
and Attalus came up in support and made the contest a more equal one. and it seemed pretty certain that they
would not have much difficulty in forcing the Macedonians and the Greeks to give way. There was a large
body of Italian deserters, consisting partly of those from Hannibal's army who had entered Philip's service to
escape punishment at the hands of the Romans and partly of seamen who had left the fleet for the prospect of
the more respectable military life. These men, despairing of their lives in case the Romans conquered, were
inflamed with madness more than with courage. Opposite Sicyon lies the promontory of Acraean Juno, as she
is called, which juts out into the sea; the distance across from Corinth is about seven miles. To this point
Philocles, one of the king's generals, brought a force of 1500 men through Boeotia. Vessels from Corinth
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 178
Page No 181
were in readiness to carry this detachment to Lechaeum. Attalus advised that the siege should be raised at
once and the siegeworks burnt, but the Roman commander showed great resolution and was for persisting in
the attempt. When however he saw Philip's troops strongly posted in front of all the gates and realised that it
would be difficult to withstand their attacks in case they made sorties, he fell in with Attalus' view. The
operation was accordingly abandoned and the Achaeans were sent home. The rest of the troops reembarked,
Attalus sailed for the Piraeus and the Romans for Corcyra.
While the naval forces were thus engaged, the consul encamped before Elatea in Phocis. He began by inviting
the leading citizens to a conference and tried to induce them to surrender, but they told him that matters were
not in their hands, the king's troops were stronger and more numerous than the townsmen. On this he
proceeded to attack the city on all sides with arms and siege artillery. After the batteringrams had been
brought up, a length of wall between two towers was thrown down with a terrific crash and roar, leaving the
city exposed. A Roman cohort at once advanced through the opening thus made, and the defenders leaving
their different posts rushed from all parts of the city to the threatened spot. Whilst the Romans were
clambering over the ruins of the wall others were fixing their scalingladders against the walls which were
still standing, and the attention of the enemy being diverted in one direction, walls in other parts were
successfully scaled and the assailants descended into the city. The noise of the tumult so terrified the enemy
that they left the place which they had been so vigorously defending and fled every one to the citadel,
followed by crowds of noncombatants. Having thus gained possession of the city, the consul gave it up to
plunder. He then sent a message to those in the citadel promising to spare the lives of Philip's troops if they
gave up their arms, and also to restore to the Elateans their freedom. When the necessary guarantees had been
given, he secured the citadel after a few days.
The appearance of Philocles in Achaia not only raised the siege of Corinth but brought about the loss of
Argos, which was betrayed by the leaders of the city acting with the full concurrence of the population. It was
customary with them on the day of the elections for the presiding magistrates, as an omen of good fortunes, to
commence the proceedings by uttering the names of Jupiter, Apollo and Hercules, and a law had been made
ordering Philip's name to be added. After the alliance with Rome had been made the usher did not add his
name and the people broke out into angry murmurs, and soon shouts were heard demanding the restoration of
Philip's name and the honours which were his by law, till at last the name was uttered amidst tremendous
cheers. Replying upon this proof of his popularity, Philip's partisans invited Philocles, and during the night he
seized a hill which commanded the city; the stronghold was called Larissa.. Posting a detachment there, he
marched down in order of battle to the forum which lay at the foot of the hill. Here he found a body of troops
drawn up to dispute his progress. It was an Achaean force which had recently been thrown into the city,
consisting of 500 men selected from all the cities under the command of Aenesidemus of Dymae. Philocles
sent a spokesman to them, bidding them evacuate the place, since they were no match even for the
Macedonian supporters in the town, still less so now that they had the Macedonians with them, those
Macedonians against whom even the Romans could not make a stand at Corinth. At first his warning made
no impression on either the commander or his men, but soon afterwards when they saw a large body of
Argives in arms marching against them from another side, they saw that their fate was sealed, though had
their commander persisted in his defence of the place they were evidently prepared to fight to the death.
Aenesidemus, however, was unwilling that the flower of the Achaean soldiery should be lost together with
the city, and he came to an understanding with Philocles that they should be allowed to depart. He himself,
however, remained standing under arms together with a few of his personal followers. Philocles sent to ask
him what his intention was, and without moving a step and holding his shield in front of him he replied that
he would die fighting in defence of the city entrusted to him. The general then ordered the Thracians to
shower their darts upon them, and the whole party were killed. Thus, even after the alliance between the
Achaeans and the Romans had been cemented two of the most important cities, Argos and Corinth, were in
the king's hands. Such were the operations of the naval and military forces of Rome, during this summer, in
Greece.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 179
Page No 182
In Gaul nothing of any importance was accomplished by the consul Sex. Aelius, though he had two armies in
the province. He retained the one which L. Cornelius had commanded and which ought to have been
disbanded, and placed C. Helvius in command of it, the other army he brought with him into the province.
Almost the whole of his year of office was spent in compelling the former inhabitants of Cremona and
Placentia to return to the homes from which they had been dispersed by the accidents of war. While things
were unexpectedly quiet in Gaul this year, the districts round the City very nearly became the scene of a
rising among the slaves. The Carthaginian hostages were under guard at Setia. As children of the nobility
they were attended by a large body of slaves whose numbers had been swelled by many whom the Setians
themselves had purchased from among the prisoners taken in the recent war in Africa. When they had set
their conspiracy on foot they sent some of their number to gain over the slaves in the country round Setia and
then in the districts of Norba and Cerceii. Their preparations being now sufficiently advanced they arranged
to seize the opportunity of the Games which were shortly to take place at Setia and attack the people while
their attention was absorbed in the spectacle. Then in the midst of the excitement and bloodshed the slaves
were to seize Setia and then secure Norba and Cerceii.
Information of this monstrous affair was brought to Rome and laid before L. Cornelius, the City praetor. Two
slaves came to him before daybreak and gave him a full account of what had been done and what was
contemplated. After issuing instructions for them to be detained in his house he convened the senate and
communicated the intelligence which the informers had brought. He received instructions to start off at once
to investigate and crush the conspiracy. Accompanied by five assessors he compelled all whom he found in
the fields to take the military oath, arm themselves and follow him. In this informal levy he collected an
armed force of about 2000 men with which he reached Setia, all of them being perfectly ignorant of his
destination. Here he promptly seized the ringleaders, and this led to a general flight of slaves from the town.
Parties were sent through the fields to hunt them down. . . . . The service rendered by the two slaves who gave
the information and by one who was a freeman was of the utmost value. To the latter the senate ordered a
gratuity of 100,000 ases, to each of the slaves 5000 ases and their liberty, the owners being compensated out
of the public treasury. Not long afterwards news arrived that some slaves, the remains of that conspiracy,
were intending to seize Praeneste. L. Cornelius proceeded thither and inflicted punishment on nearly 2000
who had been involved in the plot. Fears were entertained by the citizens lest the Carthaginian hostages and
prisoners of war should have been prime movers in the affair. Strict watch was accordingly kept in Rome in
all the different wards, the subordinate magistrates were required to visit the posts and the superintendents of
gaols were to see that the public prison at the quarries was more strictly guarded. Instructions were also sent
by the praetor to the Latin communities for the hostages to be kept in privacy and not allowed to appear in
public; the prisoners were to be manacled with fetters not less than ten pounds in weight, and not to be
confined in custody anywhere but in the State prisons.
During the year a delegation from King Attalus deposited in the Capitol a golden crown weighing 246
pounds. They also tendered his thanks to the senate for the intervention of the Roman envoys, as owing to
their representations Antiochus had withdrawn his army from Attalus' territories. In the course of the summer
200 mounted men, 10 elephants and 200,000 modii of wheat were sent by Masinissa to the army in Greece.
From Sicily and Sardinia also a large quantity of provisions and clothing were despatched for the army. M.
Marcellus was administering Sicily; M. Porcius Cato, Sardinia. The latter was a man of integrity and
blameless life, but was considered somewhat too severe in his repression of usury. The moneylenders were
banished from the island, and the sums which the inhabitants had contributed towards keeping up the state
and dignity of the praetors were either cut down or totally abolished. The consul Sex. Aelius came back from
Gaul to conduct the elections; C. Cornelius Cethegus and Q. Minucius Rufus were the new consuls. Two
days later followed the election of praetors. In consequence of the increase in the provinces and the extension
of the dominion of Rome, six praetors were elected this year for the first time, viz., L. Manlius Volso, C.
Sempronius Tuditanus, M. Sergius Silus, M. Helvius, M. Minucius Rufus and L. Atilius. Amongst these
Sempronius and Helvius were the plebeian aediles; the curule aediles were Q. Minucius Thermus and
Tiberius Sempronius Longus. The Roman Games were celebrated four times during the year.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 180
Page No 183
The first business before the new consuls was the settlement of the provinces both praetorian and consular.
As the praetors' spheres of administration could be determined by ballot they were the first to be dealt with.
The City jurisdiction fell to Sergius, the alien jurisdiction to Minucius; Atilius drew Sardinia; Manlius, Sicily;
Sempronius, Hither Spain; and Helvius, Further Spain. Whilst the consuls were arranging to ballot for Italy
and Macedonia, two of the tribunes of the plebs, L. Oppius and Q. Fulvius, objected to their doing so.
Macedonia, they alleged, was a distant province, and nothing up to that time had stood in the way of a
successful war more than the fact that when operations had hardly commenced the former consul was always
recalled just as he was opening his campaign. This was the fourth year since war had been declared against
Macedonia. Sempronius had spent most of the year in trying to find the king and his army. Villius had
actually come into touch with the enemy but was recalled before any decisive action had been fought.
Quinctius had been detained in Rome for the greater part of the year by matters connected with religion, but
had he reached his province earlier or had the winter begun later his conduct of affairs showed that he could
have brought the war to a close. He had now almost gone into winter quarters, but it was asserted that he had
given such a complexion to the war that if his successor did not interfere with him he would finish it in the
summer. By using language of this kind they so far succeeded that the consuls promised to accept the
decision of the senate if the tribunes would do the same. As both parties left the senate free to act, a decree
was made that Italy should be administered by both consuls and T. Quinctius confirmed in his command until
such time as the senate should appoint his successor. Each of the consuls had two legions assigned to him,
and with these they were to carry on the war against the CisAlpine Gauls who had revolted from Rome.
Reinforcements were also voted for Quinctius to be employed against Macedonia, comprising 6000 foot and
300 horse and also 3000 seamen. L. Q. Flamininus retained his place as commander of the fleet. Each of the
praetors who were to act in Spain received 8000 infantry furnished by the Latins and allies and 400 cavalry;
these were to take the place of the old army which was to be sent home. They were also to determine the
boundaries of the two provinces of Hither and Further Spain. P. Sulpicius and P. Villius who had formerly
been in Macedonia as consuls were appointed to Quinctius' staff.
Before the consuls and praetors left for their respective provinces steps were taken to expiate various portents
which had been announced. The temples of Vulcan and Summanus in Rome and one of the gates with a
portion of the wall at Fregellae were struck by lightning; at Frusino the sky became lit up during the night; at
Aesula a twoheaded lamb with five feet was born; at Formiae two wolves entered the town and mauled
several people who fell in their way; at Rome a wolf entered the City and even made his way into the Capitol.
C. Atinius, one of the tribunes of the plebs, carried a proposal for founding five colonies on the coast, two at
the mouths of the Volturnus and Liternus, one at Puteoli, one at the Castrum Salerni, and finally Buxentum. It
was decided that each colony should consist of 300 households, and three commissioners were appointed to
supervise the settlement. They were to hold office for three years. The commissioners were M. Servilius
Geminus, Q. Minucius Thermus and Tiberius Sempronius Longus. When they had raised the required force
and completed all the necessary business, both sacred and secular, both the consuls left for Gaul. Cornelius
took the direct road to the Insubres, who in conjunction with the Cenomani were in arms; Q. Minucius bent
his course to the left side of Italy towards the Adriatic, and marching his army to Genua began operations in
the direction of Liguria. Two fortified towns, Clastidium and Litubium, both belonging to the Ligurians, and
two of their communities, the Celeiates and the Cerdiciates, surrendered. All the tribes on this side the Po
were now reduced except the Boii in Gaul and the Ilvates in Liguria. It was stated that 15 fortified towns and
20,000 men surrendered.
From there he led his legions into the country of the Boii, whose army had not long before crossed the Po.
They had heard that the consuls intended to attack with their united legions, and in order that they too might
consolidate their strength by union they had formed a junction with the Insubres and Cenomani. When a
report reached them that one of the consuls was firing the fields of the Boii, a sharp difference of opinion
arose; the Boii demanded that all should render assistance to those who were hard pressed, the Insubres
declared that they would not leave their own country defenceless. Their forces were accordingly divided; the
Boii went off to protect their country, the Insubres and Cenomani took up a position on the bank of the
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 181
Page No 184
Mincius. On the same river, two miles lower down, Cornelius fixed his camp. From there he sent to make
enquiries in Brixia, their capital. and in their villages, and from what he learnt he was quite satisfied that it
was not with the sanction of their elders that the younger men had taken up arms, nor had the national council
authorised any assistance being given to the revolted Insubrians. On learning this he invited their chiefs to a
conference and tried to induce them to break with the Insubres and either return home or go over to the
Romans. He was unable to gain their consent to the latter proposal, but they gave him assurances that they
would take no part in the fighting, unless occasion should arise, in which case they would assist the Romans.
The Insubres were kept in ignorance of this compact, but they felt somewhat suspicious as to the intentions of
their allies, and in forming their line they did not venture to entrust them with a position on either wing lest
they should abandon their ground through treachery and involve the whole army in disaster. They were
accordingly stationed in the rear as a reserve. At the outset of the battle the consul vowed a temple to Juno
Sospita in case the enemy were routed that day, and the shouts of the soldiers assured their commander that
they would enable him to fulfil his vow. Then they charged, and the Insubres did not stand against the first
shock. Some authors say that the Cenomani attacked them from behind while the battle was going on and that
the twofold attack threw them into complete disorder, 35,000 men being killed and 5200 made prisoners,
including the Carthaginian general Hamilcar, the prime instigator of the war. 130 standards were taken and
numerous wagons. Those of the Gauls who had followed the Insubres in their revolt surrendered to the
Romans.
The consul Minucius had carried his plundering expeditions throughout the country of the Boii, but when he
heard that they had deserted the Insubres and returned to defend their country, he kept within his camp,
intending to meet them in a general engagement. The Boii would not have declined battle if the news of the
defeat of the Insubrians had not broken their spirit. They abandoned their leader and their camp and dispersed
to their villages, each man prepared to defend his own property. This made their antagonist change his plans,
for as there was no longer any hope of forcing decision in a single action he resumed the plundering of their
fields, and burnt their villages and farms. It was at this time that Clastidium was burnt. The Ilvates were now
the only Ligurian tribe which had not submitted, and he led the legion against them. They too, however,
surrendered when the had learnt the defeat of the Insubrians and also that the Boii were so discouraged that
they would not venture to hazard an engagement. The despatches from the two consuls announcing their
successes reached Rome about the same time. The City praetor, M. Sergius, read them in the senate and was
authorised by that body to read them in the Assembly. A four days' thanksgiving was ordered.
Winter had now set in and T. Quinctius, after the capture of Elatea, had quartered his troops in Phocis and
Locris. Political dissensions broke out in Opus, the one party summoned the Aetolians, who were the nearer,
to their aid, the other party called in the Romans. The Aetolians were the first to arrive on the scene, but the
other party, the wealthier and more influential one, refused them admittance and after despatching a message
to the Roman general held the city pending his arrival. The citadel was garrisoned by Philip's troops and
neither the threats of the Opuntians nor the authoritative tone of the Roman commander availed to turn them
out. The place would have been attacked at once had not a herald arrived from the king asking for a place and
time to be appointed for an interview. After considerable hesitation the request was granted. Quinctius'
reluctance was not due to his not wishing to have the credit of bringing the war to a close by arms and by
negotiations, for he did not yet know whether one of the new consuls might not be sent out as his successor or
whether he would be continued in his command, a decision which he had charged his friends and relations to
do their utmost to secure. He thought, however, that a conference would suit his purpose and leave him at
liberty to turn it in favour of war if he remained in command, or of peace if he had to leave.
They selected a spot on the shore of the Maliac Gulf near Nicaea. The king proceeded thither from Demetrias
in a warvessel escorted by five swift barques. He was accompanied by some of the Macedonian magnates
and also by a distinguished Aetolian refugee, named Cycliadas. With the Roman commander were King
Amynander. Dionysodorus, one of Attalus' staff, Agesimbrotus, commandant of the Rhodian fleet, Phaeneas,
the chief magistrate of the Aetolians, and two Achaeans, Aristaenus and Xenophon. Surrounded by this group
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 182
Page No 185
of notables the Roman general advanced to the edge of the beach, and on the king coming forward to the head
of his ship, which was lying at anchor, he called out to him, "If you would step ashore we should both address
and hear one another more comfortably." The king refused to do this, on which Quinctius asked, "What on
earth are you afraid of ? "In a proud and kingly tone Philip replied, "I fear no one but the immortal gods; but I
do not trust all those I see about, and least of all the Aetolians." "That," answered Quinctius, "is a danger to
which all who go into conference with an enemy are equally exposed, if, that is, no faith is kept." "Yes, T.
Quinctius," was Philip's rejoinder "but the rewards of treachery, should any be meditated, are not the same for
both sides; Philip and Phaeneas are not equal in value. The Aetolians would not find it so difficult to
substitute another magistrate, as the Macedonians would to replace their king." After this no more was said.
The Roman commander thought it only right that the one who had asked for the conference should begin the
conversation, the king considered that the discussion should be opened by the men who proposed terms of
peace, not by the one who was to accept them. Thereupon the Roman observed that what he had to say would
be quite simple and straightforward; he should merely state those conditions without which peace would be
impossible. "The king must withdraw his garrisons from all the cities in Greece; the prisoners and deserters
must be handed back to the allies of Rome; those places in Illyria which he had seized after the conclusion of
peace in Epirus must be restored to Rome; the cities which he had taken forcible possession of after the death
of Ptolemy Philopator must be given back to Ptolemy, the king of Egypt. These," he said, "are my conditions
and those of the people of Rome, but it is right and proper that the demands of our allies should also be
heard." The representative of King Attalus demanded the restoration of the ships and prisoners that had been
taken in the seafight off Chius, and also that the Nicephorium and the temple of Venus which the king had
plundered and desolated should be restored to their former condition. The Rhodians demanded the cession of
Peraea, a district on the mainland opposite their island and formerly under their sway, and insisted upon the
withdrawal of Philip's garrisons from Iasos, Bargyliae and Euromus, as well as from Sestos and Abydos on
the Hellespont, the restoration of Perinthus to the Byzantines with the reestablishment of their old political
relations and the freedom of all the markets and ports in Asia. Phaeneas, as representing the Aetolians,
demanded, almost in the same terms as the Romans, the evacuation of Greece and the restoration of the cities
which had formerly been under the rule of the Aetolians.
He was followed by a leading Aetolian, named Alexander, who was, for an Aetolian, an eloquent speaker. He
had long remained silent, he said, not because he thought that the conference would lead to any result, but
simply because he did not want to interrupt any of the speakers who represented his allies. "Philip," he
continued, "is not straightforward in discussing terms of peace nor has he shown true courage in the way he
has conducted war. In negotiation he is deceitful and tricky, in war he does not encounter his enemy on fair
ground or fight a set battle. He keeps out of his adversary's way, plunders and burns his cities, and when
vanquished destroys what should be the prizes of the victors. The former kings of Macedonia did not behave
in this way; they trusted to their battleline, and spared the cities as far as possible that their dominions might
be all the richer. What sort of policy is that of destroying the very things which a man is fighting to secure,
and leaving nothing for himself but the mere war? Last year Philip laid waste more cities in Thessaly, though
they belonged to his allies, than any enemy that Thessaly ever had. Even from us Aetolians he has taken more
cities since he became our ally than he did while he was our enemy. He seized Lysimachia after expelling the
Aetolian garrison and its commandant; in the same way he completely destroyed Cius, a member of our
league. By similar treachery he is now master of Thebes, Phthiae, Echinus. Larisa and Pharsalus."
Stung by Alexander's speech, Philip moved his ship nearer to the land in order that he might be better heard,
and commenced a speech mainly directed against the Aetolians. He was, however, hotly interrupted at the
outset by Phaeneas, who exclaimed: "Matters are not to be settled by words. Either you must conquer in war
or you must obey those who are better than you." "That," replied Philip, "is obvious, even to a blind man"a
mocking allusion to Phaeneas' defective vision. He was by nature more given to jesting than a king ought to
be, and even in the midst of serious business did not sufficiently restrain his laughter. He went on to express
his indignation at the Aetolians ordering him, just as if they were Romans, to evacuate Greece, when they
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 183
Page No 186
could not tell within what boundaries Greece lies. Even in Aetolia itself the Agraei, the Apodoti and the
Amphilochi, who form a considerable part of its population, are not included in Greece. "Have they," he
continued, "any right to complain of my not leaving their allies alone, when they themselves keep up the
ancient custom, as though it were a legal obligation, of allowing their younger men to bear arms against their
own allies, the sanction of their government alone wanting? Thus it very frequently happens that opposing
armies have contingents drawn from Aetolia on both sides. As to Cius, I did not actually storm it, but I lent
assistance to Prusias, my ally and friend, in his attack on the place. Lysimachia I claimed from the Thracians,
but as I had to give my whole attention to this war and was unable to guard it, the Thracians still hold it.
So much for the Aetolians. With regard to Attalus and the Rhodians, in strict justice I owe them nothing, for
the war was started not by me but by them. Still, to show my esteem for the Romans, I will restore Peraea to
the Rhodians and the. ships to Attalus with all the prisoners that can be found. Touching the restoration of the
Nicephorium and the temple of Venus, what reply can I give to this demand further than to say that I will
undertake the care and expense of replantingthe only way in which woods and groves that have been cut
down can be restoredsince such demands it is the pleasure of kings to make and grant to each other?" The
close of his speech was a reply to the Achaeans. After enumerating the services rendered to that nation, first
by Antigonus and then by himself, he ordered the decrees to be read, which they had passed in his favour,
showering upon him all honours human and divine, and then confronted them with the one they had lately
passed in which they resolved to break with him. Whilst bitterly reproaching them for their faithlessness, he
nevertheless promised to restore Argos to them. The position of Corinth he should discuss with the Roman
general, and he should at the same time ask him whether he thought it fair that he should renounce all claim
to the cities which he had himself captured and held by the rights of war, and even to those which he had
inherited from his ancestors.
The Achaeans and the Aetolians were preparing to reply, but as it was almost sunset the conference was
adjourned to the morrow. Philip returned to his anchorage and the Romans and allies to their camps. Nicaea
had been fixed upon for the next meeting and Quinctius arrived there punctually on the following day, but
there was no Philip anywhere, nor did any message arrive from him for several hours. At last, when they had
given up all hope of his coming, his ships suddenly appeared. He explained that as such heavy and
humiliating demands were made upon him and he was at a loss how to act, he had spent the day in
deliberation. It was generally believed that he had purposely delayed the proceedings till late in the day in
order that no time might be left for the Achaeans and Aetolians to make their reply. This suspicion was
confirmed when he requested that, in order to avoid waste of time in recriminations and bring the matter to a
final issue, the others might be allowed to withdraw, and he and the Roman general left to confer together. At
first this was demurred to, as it would look as if the allies were shut out from the conference, but as he
persisted in his demand, it was agreed to by all that the others should withdraw and the Roman commander
accompanied by a military tribune, Appius Claudius, should go forward to the edge of the beach whilst the
king attended by two of his suite came ashore. There they conversed for some time in private. It is not known
what report of the interview Philip gave to his people, but the statement which Quinctius made to the allies
was to the effect that Philip was prepared to cede to the Romans the whole of the Illyrian coast and deliver up
the refugees and any prisoners there might be; to return to Attalus his ships and their captured crews; to
restore to the Rhodians the district they call Peraea, but he would not evacuate Iasos and Bargyliae; to the
Aetolians he would restore Pharsalus and Larisa but not Thebes; to the Achaeans he would cede not only
Argos but Corinth as well. Not one of the parties concerned was satisfied with these proposals, for they said
that they were losing more than they were gaining, and unless Philip withdrew his garrisons from the whole
of Greece, grounds of quarrel would never be wanting.
All the members of the council were loud in their protests and remonstrances, and the noise reached Philip
who was standing at some distance. He asked Quinctius to postpone the whole business till the next day; he
was quite certain that either he would bring them over to his view, or fall in with theirs. The seashore at
Thronium was fixed upon for the conference and they assembled there at an early hour. Philip began by
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 184
Page No 187
urging Quinctius and all who were present not to insist upon destroying all hopes of peace. He then asked for
time to enable him to send ambassadors to the Roman senate, he would either obtain peace on the terms he
proposed or accept whatever conditions the senate offered. This suggestion met with no acceptance whatever,
they said that his only object was to gain time to collect his forces. Quinctius observed that this might have
been true it if had been summer, and the season suitable for a campaign, but as winter was now closing in
nothing would be lost by allowing him sufficient time to send his ambassadors. No agreement that he might
have made with the king would be valid without the ratification of the senate, and whilst the winter
necessarily put a stop to military operations, it would be possible to find what conditions of peace the senate
would sanction. The rest of the negotiators fell in with this view and a two months' armistice was arranged.
The different States decided to send each one envoy to lay the facts before the senate so that they might not
be misled by Philip's false statements. It was further agreed that before the armistice could come into force,
the king's garrisons must be withdrawn from Phocis and Locris. To give greater importance to the mission
Quinctius sent in company with them Amynander, king of the Athamanians, Q. Fabius, his sisterinlaw's
son, Q. Fulvius and Appius Claudius.
On their arrival in Rome the delegates of the allies were received in audience before those from Philip. Their
address to the senate was mainly taken up with personal attacks on the king, but what weighed most with the
senate was their description of that part of the world and the distribution of sea and land. From this they
showed clearly that as long as Philip held Demetrias in Thessaly, Chalcis in Euboea, and Corinth in Achaia
Greece could not be free; Philip himself with as much truth as insolence called these the fetters of Greece.
The king's envoys were then introduced and had commenced a somewhat lengthy address when they were
interrupted by the pointed question: "Is he prepared to evacuate those three cities?" They replied that they
were not mentioned in their instructions. On this they were dismissed and the negotiations broken off, the
question of peace or war being left entirely to Quinctius. As it was quite evident that the senate were not
averse from war, and as Quinctius himself was more anxious for victory than for peace, he refused any
further interview with Philip, and said that he would not admit any envoys from him unless they came to
announce that he was withdrawing entirely from Greece.
When Philip saw that matters must be decided on the battlefield, he called in his forces from all quarters. His
main anxiety was about the cities in Achaia, which were so far away, and he was more uneasy about Argos
than about Corinth. He thought the best course would be to place it in the hands of Nabis, the tyrant of
Lacedaemon, as a deposit to be restored to him should he be victorious, or should he meet with reverses to
remain under the tyrant's rule. He wrote to Philocles, who was governor of Corinth and Argos, bidding him
discuss the matter with Nabis. Philocles took a present with him, and as a further pledge of future friendship
between the king and the tyrant he informed Nabis that Philip wished to form a matrimonial alliance between
his daughters and Nabis' sons. At first the tyrant refused to accept the city unless the Argives themselves, by a
formal decree, summoned him to their assistance. When, however, he heard that at a crowded meeting of
their Assembly the Argives were pouring contempt and even execration on his name, he considered that he
had got a sufficient justification for plundering them and he told Philocles that he might deliver up the city
whenever he chose. The tyrant was admitted into the place in the night without arousing any suspicion; at
daybreak all the commanding positions were occupied and the gates closed. A few of the principal citizens
had escaped at the beginning of the tumult and their property was seized; those who still remained had all
their gold and silver taken away and very heavy fines were imposed upon them. Those who paid up promptly
were dismissed without insult or injury, those who were suspected of concealing or withholding anything
were flogged and tortured like slaves. A meeting of their Assembly was then summoned in which he
promulgated two measures, one for the cancelling of debts and another for the division of landtwo
firebrands with which the revolutionaries were to inflame the lower classes against the aristocracy.
When the city of the Argives was once in his power, the tyrant no longer troubled himself about the man who
had made it over to him or the conditions on which he had accepted it. He despatched emissaries to Quinctius
in Elatea and to Attalus who was wintering in Aegina, to inform them that he was master of Argos. They
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 185
Page No 188
were also to intimate to Quinctius that if he would come to Argos, Nabis felt confident that a complete
understanding would be arrived at. Quinctius' policy was to deprive Philip of all support, and he consented to
visit Nabis, and at the same time sent word to Attalus to meet him in Sicyon. Just at this time his brother
Lucius happened to bring up ten triremes from his winter quarters at Corcyra, and with these Quinctius sailed
from Anticyra to Sicyon. Attalus was already there, and when they met he remarked that the tyrant ought to
go to the Roman commander and not the Roman commander to the tyrant. Quinctius agreed with him, and
declined to enter Argos. Not far from that city is a place called Mycenica, and this was decided upon as the
scene of the conference. Quinctius went with his brother and a few military tribunes, Attalus was attended by
his suite, Nicostratus the chief magistrate of the Achaeans was also present with representatives of the allied
States. They found Nabis waiting for them with the whole of his force. He marched almost to the middle of
the space separating the two camps, fully armed and escorted by an armed bodyguard; Quinctius unarmed,
and the king also unarmed and accompanied by Nicostratus and one of his suite, came forward to meet him.
Nabis began by apologising for having come to the conference in arms and with an armed escort, though he
saw that the king and the Roman commander were unarmed. He was not afraid, he said, of them, but of the
refugees from Argos. Then they began to discuss the terms on which friendly relations might be established.
The Romans made two demands: first, that Nabis should put a stop to hostilities against the Achaeans and,
secondly, that he should furnish assistance against Philip. This he promised to furnish; instead of a definite
peace, an armistice was arranged with the Achaeans, to remain in force until the war with Philip was over.
Attalus then opened a discussion on the question of Argos, which he contended had been treacherously
betrayed by Philocles and was now forcibly retained by Nabis. Nabis replied that he had been invited by the
Argives to go to their defence. Attalus insisted upon a meeting of the Argive Assembly being summoned in
order that the truth might be ascertained. The tyrant raised no objection to this, but when the king declared
that the troops ought to be withdrawn from the city and the Assembly left at liberty, without any
Lacedaemonian being present, to state what the Argives really wanted, Nabis refused to withdraw his men.
The discussion led to no result. A force of 600 Cretans was furnished by the tyrant to the Romans, and an
armistice for four months arranged between Nicostratus the Achaean president and the tyrant of the
Lacedaemonians, after which the conference broke up. From there Quinctius proceeded to Corinth and
marched up to the gate with the Cretan cohort in order that Philocles, the commandant, might see that Nabis
had broken with Philip. Philocles had an interview with the Roman general who pressed him to change sides
at once and surrender the city, and in his reply he gave the impression of postponing rather than refusing
compliance. From Corinth Quinctius went on to Anticyra and sent his brother to learn the attitude of the
Acarnanians. From Argos Attalus proceeded to Sicyon, and this city paid him still greater honour than they
had done before, whilst he on his part determined not to pass by his allies and friends without some token of
his generosity. He had previously secured for them at considerable cost some land which was consecrated to
Apollo, and now he made them a gift of ten talents of silver and a thousand medimni of corn. He then
resumed to his ships at Cenchreae. Nabis, too, went back to Lacedaemon, after leaving a strong garrison at
Argos. He had despoiled the men and now he sent his wife there to despoil the women. She invited the ladies
of rank to her house, sometimes alone, sometimes in family parties, and in this way succeeded by
blandishments and threats in getting from them not only their gold but even their wardrobes and all their
finery.
The History of Rome, Vol. IV
Book 32. The Second Macedonian War 186
Bookmarks
1. Table of Contents, page = 3
2. The History of Rome, Vol. IV, page = 4
3. Livy, page = 4
4. Book 26. The Fate of Capua, page = 4
5. Book 27. Scipio in Spain, page = 36
6. Book 28. The Final Conquest of Spain, page = 68
7. Book 29. Scipio in Africa, page = 98
8. Book 30. Close of the Hannibalic War, page = 121
9. Book 31. Rome and Macedon, page = 146
10. Book 32. The Second Macedonian War, page = 170